I WAS born in the year
1632, in the city of York, of a good family, though not of that country, my
father being a foreigner of Bremen, who settled first at Hull. He got a good
estate by merchandise, and leaving off his trade, lived afterwards at York, from
whence he had married my mother, whose relations were named Robinson, a very
good family in that country, and from whom I was called Robinson Kreutznaer;
but, by the usual corruption of words in England, we are now called - nay we
call ourselves and write our name - Crusoe; and so my companions always called
me.
I had two elder
brothers, one of whom was lieutenant-colonel to an English regiment of foot in
Flanders, formerly commanded by the famous Colonel Lockhart, and was killed at
the battle near Dunkirk against the Spaniards. What became of my second brother
I never knew, any more than my father or mother knew what became of me.
Being the third son of
the family and not bred to any trade, my head began to be filled very early
with rambling thoughts. My father, who was very ancient, had given me a
competent share of learning, as far as house-education and a country free
school generally go, and designed me for the law; but I would be satisfied with
nothing but going to sea; and my inclination to this led me so strongly against
the will, nay, the commands of my father, and against all the entreaties and
persuasions of my mother and other friends, that there seemed to be something
fatal in that propensity of nature, tending directly to the life of misery which
was to befall me.
My father, a wise and
grave man, gave me serious and excellent counsel against what he foresaw was my
design. He called me one morning into his chamber, where he was confined by the
gout, and expostulated very warmly with me upon this subject. He asked me what
reasons, more than a mere wandering inclination, I had for leaving father’s
house and my native country, where I might be well introduced, and had a
prospect of raising my fortune by application and industry, with a life of ease
and pleasure. He told me it was men of desperate fortunes on one hand, or of
aspiring, superior fortunes on the other, who went abroad upon adventures, to
rise by enterprise, and make themselves famous in undertakings of a nature out
of the common road; that these things were all either too far above me or too
far below me; that mine was the middle state, or what might be called the upper
station of low life, which he had found, by long experience, was the best state
in the world, the most suited to human happiness, not exposed to the miseries
and hardships, the labour and sufferings of the mechanic part of mankind, and
not embarrassed with the pride, luxury, ambition, and envy of the upper part of
mankind. He told me I might judge of the happiness of this state by this one
thing - viz. that this was the state of life which all other people envied;
that kings have frequently lamented the miserable consequence of being born to
great things, and wished they had been placed in the middle of the two extremes,
between the mean and the great; that the wise man gave his testimony to this,
as the standard of felicity, when he prayed to have neither poverty nor riches.
He bade me observe it,
and I should always find that the calamities of life were shared among the
upper and lower part of mankind, but that the middle station had the fewest
disasters, and was not exposed to so many vicissitudes as the higher or lower
part of mankind; nay, they were not subjected to so many distempers and
uneasinesses, either of body or mind, as those were who, by vicious living,
luxury, and extravagances on the one hand, or by hard labour, want of
necessaries, and mean or insufficient diet on the other hand, bring distemper
upon themselves by the natural consequences of their way of living; that the
middle station of life was calculated for all kind of virtue and all kind of
enjoyments; that peace and plenty were the handmaids of a middle fortune; that
temperance, moderation, quietness, health, society, all agreeable diversions,
and all desirable pleasures, were the blessings attending the middle station of
life; that this way men went silently and smoothly through the world, and
comfortably out of it, not embarrassed with the labours of the hands or of the
head, not sold to a life of slavery for daily bread, nor harassed with
perplexed circumstances, which rob the soul of peace and the body of rest, nor
enraged with the passion of envy, or the secret burning lust of ambition for
great things; but, in easy circumstances, sliding gently through the world, and
sensibly tasting the sweets of living, without the bitter; feeling that they
are happy, and learning by every day’s experience to know it more sensibly,
After this he pressed
me earnestly, and in the most affectionate manner, not to play the young man,
nor to precipitate myself into miseries which nature, and the station of life I
was born in, seemed to have provided against; that I was under no necessity of
seeking my bread; that he would do well for me, and endeavour to enter me fairly
into the station of life which he had just been recommending to me; and that if
I was not very easy and happy in the world, it must be my mere fate or fault
that must hinder it; and that he should have nothing to answer for, having thus
discharged his duty in warning me against measures which he knew would be to my
hurt; in a word, that as he would do very kind things for me if I would stay
and settle at home as he directed, so he would not have so much hand in my
misfortunes as to give me any encouragement to go away; and to close all, he
told me I had my elder brother for an example, to whom he had used the same
earnest persuasions to keep him from going into the Low Country wars, but could
not prevail, his young desires prompting him to run into the army, where he was
killed; and though he said he would not cease to pray for me, yet he would
venture to say to me, that if I did take this foolish step, God would not bless
me, and I should have leisure hereafter to reflect upon having neglected his counsel
when there might be none to assist in my recovery.
I observed in this last
part of his discourse, which was truly prophetic, though I suppose my father
did not know it to be so himself - I say, I observed the tears run down his
face very plentifully, especially when he spoke of my brother who was killed:
and that when he spoke of my having leisure to repent, and none to assist me,
he was so moved that he broke off the discourse, and told me his heart was so
full he could say no more to me.
I was sincerely
affected with this discourse, and, indeed, who could be otherwise? and I
resolved not to think of going abroad any more, but to settle at home according
to my father’s desire. But alas! a few days wore it all off; and, in short, to
prevent any of my father’s further importunities, in a few weeks after I
resolved to run quite away from him. However, I did not act quite so hastily as
the first heat of my resolution prompted; but I took my mother at a time when I
thought her a little more pleasant than ordinary, and told her that my thoughts
were so entirely bent upon seeing the world that I should never settle to
anything with resolution enough to go through with it, and my father had better
give me his consent than force me to go without it; that I was now eighteen
years old, which was too late to go apprentice to a trade or clerk to an
attorney; that I was sure if I did I should never serve out my time, but I
should certainly run away from my master before my time was out, and go to sea;
and if she would speak to my father to let me go one voyage abroad, if I came
home again, and did not like it, I would go no more; and I would promise, by a
double diligence, to recover the time that I had lost.
This put my mother into
a great passion; she told me she knew it would be to no purpose to speak to my
father upon any such subject; that he knew too well what was my interest to
give his consent to anything so much for my hurt; and that she wondered how I
could think of any such thing after the discourse I had had with my father, and
such kind and tender expressions as she knew my father had used to me; and
that, in short, if I would ruin myself, there was no help for me; but I might
depend I should never have their consent to it; that for her part she would not
have so much hand in my destruction; and I should never have it to say that my
mother was willing when my father was not.
Though my mother
refused to move it to my father, yet I heard afterwards that she reported all
the discourse to him, and that my father, after showing a great concern at it,
said to her, with a sigh, "That boy might be happy if he would stay at
home; but if he goes abroad, he will be the most miserable wretch that ever was
born: I can give no consent to it."
It was not till almost
a year after this that I broke loose, though, in the meantime, I continued
obstinately deaf to all proposals of settling to business, and frequently
expostulated with my father and mother about their being so positively
determined against what they knew my inclinations prompted me to. But being one
day at Hull, where I went casually, and without any purpose of making an
elopement at that time; but, I say, being there, and one of my companions being
about to sail to London in his father’s ship, and prompting me to go with them
with the common allurement of seafaring men, that it should cost me nothing for
my passage, I consulted neither father nor mother any more, nor so much as sent
them word of it; but leaving them to hear of it as they might, without asking
God’s blessing or my father’s, without any consideration of circumstances or
consequences, and in an ill hour, God knows, on the 1st of September 1651, I
went on board a ship bound for London. Never any young adventurer’s
misfortunes, I believe, began sooner, or continued longer than mine. The ship
was no sooner out of the Humber than the wind began to blow and the sea to rise
in a most frightful manner; and, as I had never been at sea before, I was most
inexpressibly sick in body and terrified in mind. I began now seriously to
reflect upon what I had done, and how justly I was overtaken by the judgment of
Heaven for my wicked leaving my father’s house, and abandoning my duty. All the
good counsels of my parents, my father’s tears and my mother’s entreaties, came
now fresh into my mind; and my conscience, which was not yet come to the pitch
of hardness to which it has since, reproached me with the contempt of advice,
and the breach of my duty to God and my father.
All this while the
storm increased, and the sea went very high, though nothing like what I have
seen many times since; no, nor what I saw a few days after; but it was enough
to affect me then, who was but a young sailor, and had never known anything of
the matter. I expected every wave would have swallowed us up, and that every
time the ship fell down, as I thought it did, in the trough or hollow of the
sea, we should never rise more; in this agony of mind, I made many vows and
resolutions that if it would please God to spare my life in this one voyage, if
ever I got once my foot upon dry land again, I would go directly home to my
father, and never set it into a ship again while I lived; that I would take his
advice, and never run myself into such miseries as these any more. Now I saw
plainly the goodness of his observations about the middle station of life, how
easy, how comfortably he had lived all his days, and never had been exposed to
tempests at sea or troubles on shore; and I resolved that I would, like a true
repenting prodigal, go home to my father.
These wise and sober
thoughts continued all the while the storm lasted, and indeed some time after;
but the next day the wind was abated, and the sea calmer, and I began to be a
little inured to it; however, I was very grave for all that day, being also a
little sea-sick still; but towards night the weather cleared up, the wind was
quite over, and a charming fine evening followed; the sun went down perfectly
clear, and rose so the next morning; and having little or no wind, and a smooth
sea, the sun shining upon it, the sight was, as I thought, the most delightful
that ever I saw.
I had slept well in the
night, and was now no more sea-sick, but very cheerful, looking with wonder
upon the sea that was so rough and terrible the day before, and could be so
calm and so pleasant in so little a time after. And now, lest my good
resolutions should continue, my companion, who had enticed me away, comes to
me; "Well, Bob," says he, clapping me upon the shoulder, "how do
you do after it? I warrant you were frighted, wer’n’t you, last night, when it
blew but a capful of wind?" "A capful d’you call it?" said I;
"’twas a terrible storm." "A storm, you fool you," replies
he; "do you call that a storm? why, it was nothing at all; give us but a
good ship and sea-room, and we think nothing of such a squall of wind as that;
but you’re but a fresh-water sailor, Bob. Come, let us make a bowl of punch,
and we’ll forget all that; d’ye see what charming weather ’tis now?" To
make short this sad part of my story, we went the way of all sailors; the punch
was made and I was made half drunk with it: and in that one night’s wickedness
I drowned all my repentance, all my reflections upon my past conduct, all my
resolutions for the future. In a word, as the sea was returned to its
smoothness of surface and settled calmness by the abatement of that storm, so
the hurry of my thoughts being over, my fears and apprehensions of being
swallowed up by the sea being forgotten, and the current of my former desires
returned, I entirely forgot the vows and promises that I made in my distress. I
found, indeed, some intervals of reflection; and the serious thoughts did, as
it were, endeavour to return again sometimes; but I shook them off, and roused
myself from them as it were from a distemper, and applying myself to drinking
and company, soon mastered the return of those fits - for so I called them; and
I had in five or six days got as complete a victory over conscience as any
young fellow that resolved not to be troubled with it could desire. But I was
to have another trial for it still; and Providence, as in such cases generally
it does, resolved to leave me entirely without excuse; for if I would not take
this for a deliverance, the next was to be such a one as the worst and most
hardened wretch among us would confess both the danger and the mercy of.
The sixth day of our
being at sea we came into Yarmouth Roads; the wind having been contrary and the
weather calm, we had made but little way since the storm. Here we were obliged
to come to an anchor, and here we lay, the wind continuing contrary - viz. at
south-west - for seven or eight days, during which time a great many ships from
Newcastle came into the same Roads, as the common harbour where the ships might
wait for a wind for the river.
We had not, however,
rid here so long but we should have tided it up the river, but that the wind
blew too fresh, and after we had lain four or five days, blew very hard.
However, the Roads being reckoned as good as a harbour, the anchorage good, and
our ground- tackle very strong, our men were unconcerned, and not in the least
apprehensive of danger, but spent the time in rest and mirth, after the manner
of the sea; but the eighth day, in the morning, the wind increased, and we had
all hands at work to strike our topmasts, and make everything snug and close,
that the ship might ride as easy as possible. By noon the sea went very high
indeed, and our ship rode forecastle in, shipped several seas, and we thought
once or twice our anchor had come home; upon which our master ordered out the
sheet-anchor, so that we rode with two anchors ahead, and the cables veered out
to the bitter end.
By this time it blew a
terrible storm indeed; and now I began to see terror and amazement in the faces
even of the seamen themselves. The master, though vigilant in the business of
preserving the ship, yet as he went in and out of his cabin by me, I could hear
him softly to himself say, several times, "Lord be merciful to us! we
shall be all lost! we shall be all undone!" and the like. During these
first hurries I was stupid, lying still in my cabin, which was in the steerage,
and cannot describe my temper: I could ill resume the first penitence which I
had so apparently trampled upon and hardened myself against: I thought the
bitterness of death had been past, and that this would be nothing like the
first; but when the master himself came by me, as I said just now, and said we
should be all lost, I was dreadfully frighted. I got up out of my cabin and
looked out; but such a dismal sight I never saw: the sea ran mountains high,
and broke upon us every three or four minutes; when I could look about, I could
see nothing but distress round us; two ships that rode near us, we found, had
cut their masts by the board, being deep laden; and our men cried out that a
ship which rode about a mile ahead of us was foundered. Two more ships, being
driven from their anchors, were run out of the Roads to sea, at all adventures,
and that with not a mast standing. The light ships fared the best, as not so
much labouring in the sea; but two or three of them drove, and came close by
us, running away with only their spritsail out before the wind.
Towards evening the
mate and boatswain begged the master of our ship to let them cut away the fore-mast,
which he was very unwilling to do; but the boatswain protesting to him that if
he did not the ship would founder, he consented; and when they had cut away the
fore-mast, the main-mast stood so loose, and shook the ship so much, they were
obliged to cut that away also, and make a clear deck.
Any one may judge what
a condition I must be in at all this, who was but a young sailor, and who had
been in such a fright before at but a little. But if I can express at this
distance the thoughts I had about me at that time, I was in tenfold more horror
of mind upon account of my former convictions, and the having returned from
them to the resolutions I had wickedly taken at first, than I was at death
itself; and these, added to the terror of the storm, put me into such a
condition that I can by no words describe it. But the worst was not come yet;
the storm continued with such fury that the seamen themselves acknowledged they
had never seen a worse. We had a good ship, but she was deep laden, and
wallowed in the sea, so that the seamen every now and then cried out she would
founder. It was my advantage in one respect, that I did not know what they
meant by founder till I inquired. However, the storm was so violent that I saw,
what is not often seen, the master, the boatswain, and some others more
sensible than the rest, at their prayers, and expecting every moment when the
ship would go to the bottom. In the middle of the night, and under all the rest
of our distresses, one of the men that had been down to see cried out we had
sprung a leak; another said there was four feet water in the hold. Then all
hands were called to the pump. At that word, my heart, as I thought, died
within me: and I fell backwards upon the side of my bed where I sat, into the
cabin. However, the men roused me, and told me that I, that was able to do
nothing before, was as well able to pump as another; at which I stirred up and
went to the pump, and worked very heartily. While this was doing the master,
seeing some light colliers, who, not able to ride out the storm were obliged to
slip and run away to sea, and would come near us, ordered to fire a gun as a
signal of distress. I, who knew nothing what they meant, thought the ship had
broken, or some dreadful thing happened. In a word, I was so surprised that I
fell down in a swoon. As this was a time when everybody had his own life to
think of, nobody minded me, or what was become of me; but another man stepped
up to the pump, and thrusting me aside with his foot, let me lie, thinking I
had been dead; and it was a great while before I came to myself.
We worked on; but the
water increasing in the hold, it was apparent that the ship would founder; and
though the storm began to abate a little, yet it was not possible she could
swim till we might run into any port; so the master continued firing guns for
help; and a light ship, who had rid it out just ahead of us, ventured a boat
out to help us. It was with the utmost hazard the boat came near us; but it was
impossible for us to get on board, or for the boat to lie near the ship’s side,
till at last the men rowing very heartily, and venturing their lives to save
ours, our men cast them a rope over the stern with a buoy to it, and then
veered it out a great length, which they, after much labour and hazard, took
hold of, and we hauled them close under our stern, and got all into their boat.
It was to no purpose for them or us, after we were in the boat, to think of
reaching their own ship; so all agreed to let her drive, and only to pull her
in towards shore as much as we could; and our master promised them, that if the
boat was staved upon shore, he would make it good to their master: so partly
rowing and partly driving, our boat went away to the northward, sloping towards
the shore almost as far as Winterton Ness.
We were not much more
than a quarter of an hour out of our ship till we saw her sink, and then I
understood for the first time what was meant by a ship foundering in the sea. I
must acknowledge I had hardly eyes to look up when the seamen told me she was
sinking; for from the moment that they rather put me into the boat than that I
might be said to go in, my heart was, as it were, dead within me, partly with
fright, partly with horror of mind, and the thoughts of what was yet before me.
While we were in this
condition - the men yet labouring at the oar to bring the boat near the shore -
we could see (when, our boat mounting the waves, we were able to see the shore)
a great many people running along the strand to assist us when we should come
near; but we made but slow way towards the shore; nor were we able to reach the
shore till, being past the lighthouse at Winterton, the shore falls off to the
westward towards Cromer, and so the land broke off a little the violence of the
wind. Here we got in, and though not without much difficulty, got all safe on
shore, and walked afterwards on foot to Yarmouth, where, as unfortunate men, we
were used with great humanity, as well by the magistrates of the town, who
assigned us good quarters, as by particular merchants and owners of ships, and
had money given us sufficient to carry us either to London or back to Hull as
we thought fit.
Had I now had the sense
to have gone back to Hull, and have gone home, I had been happy, and my father,
as in our blessed Saviour’s parable, had even killed the fatted calf for me;
for hearing the ship I went away in was cast away in Yarmouth Roads, it was a
great while before he had any assurances that I was not drowned.
But my ill fate pushed
me on now with an obstinacy that nothing could resist; and though I had several
times loud calls from my reason and my more composed judgment to go home, yet I
had no power to do it. I know not what to call this, nor will I urge that it is
a secret overruling decree, that hurries us on to be the instruments of our own
destruction, even though it be before us, and that we rush upon it with our
eyes open. Certainly, nothing but some such decreed unavoidable misery, which
it was impossible for me to escape, could have pushed me forward against the
calm reasonings and persuasions of my most retired thoughts, and against two
such visible instructions as I had met with in my first attempt.
My comrade, who had
helped to harden me before, and who was the master’s son, was now less forward
than I. The first time he spoke to me after we were at Yarmouth, which was not
till two or three days, for we were separated in the town to several quarters;
I say, the first time he saw me, it appeared his tone was altered; and, looking
very melancholy, and shaking his head, he asked me how I did, and telling his
father who I was, and how I had come this voyage only for a trial, in order to
go further abroad, his father, turning to me with a very grave and concerned
tone "Young man," says he, "you ought never to go to sea any
more; you ought to take this for a plain and visible token that you are not to
be a seafaring man." "Why, sir," said I, "will you go to
sea no more?" "That is another case," said he; "it is my
calling, and therefore my duty; but as you made this voyage on trial, you see
what a taste Heaven has given you of what you are to expect if you persist.
Perhaps this has all befallen us on your account, like Jonah in the ship of
Tarshish. Pray," continues he, "what are you; and on what account did
you go to sea?" Upon that I told him some of my story; at the end of which
he burst out into a strange kind of passion: "What had I done," says
he, "that such an unhappy wretch should come into my ship? I would not set
my foot in the same ship with thee again for a thousand pounds." This
indeed was, as I said, an excursion of his spirits, which were yet agitated by
the sense of his loss, and was farther than he could have authority to go.
However, he afterwards talked very gravely to me, exhorting me to go back to my
father, and not tempt Providence to my ruin, telling me I might see a visible
hand of Heaven against me. "And, young man," said he, "depend
upon it, if you do not go back, wherever you go, you will meet with nothing but
disasters and disappointments, till your father’s words are fulfilled upon
you."
We parted soon after;
for I made him little answer, and I saw him no more; which way he went I knew
not. As for me, having some money in my pocket, I travelled to London by land;
and there, as well as on the road, had many struggles with myself what course
of life I should take, and whether I should go home or to sea.
As to going home, shame
opposed the best motions that offered to my thoughts, and it immediately
occurred to me how I should be laughed at among the neighbours, and should be
ashamed to see, not my father and mother only, but even everybody else; from
whence I have since often observed, how incongruous and irrational the common
temper of mankind is, especially of youth, to that reason which ought to guide
them in such cases - viz. that they are not ashamed to sin, and yet are ashamed
to repent; not ashamed of the action for which they ought justly to be esteemed
fools, but are ashamed of the returning, which only can make them be esteemed
wise men.
In this state of life,
however, I remained some time, uncertain what measures to take, and what course
of life to lead. An irresistible reluctance continued to going home; and as I
stayed away a while, the remembrance of the distress I had been in wore off,
and as that abated, the little motion I had in my desires to return wore off
with it, till at last I quite laid aside the thoughts of it, and looked out for
a voyage.
THAT evil influence
which carried me first away from my father’s house - which hurried me into the
wild and indigested notion of raising my fortune, and that impressed those
conceits so forcibly upon me as to make me deaf to all good advice, and to the
entreaties and even the commands of my father - I say, the same influence,
whatever it was, presented the most unfortunate of all enterprises to my view;
and I went on board a vessel bound to the coast of Africa; or, as our sailors
vulgarly called it, a voyage to Guinea.
It was my great
misfortune that in all these adventures I did not ship myself as a sailor;
when, though I might indeed have worked a little harder than ordinary, yet at
the same time I should have learnt the duty and office of a fore-mast man, and
in time might have qualified myself for a mate or lieutenant, if not for a
master. But as it was always my fate to choose for the worse, so I did here;
for having money in my pocket and good clothes upon my back, I would always go
on board in the habit of a gentleman; and so I neither had any business in the
ship, nor learned to do any.
It was my lot first of
all to fall into pretty good company in London, which does not always happen to
such loose and misguided young fellows as I then was; the devil generally not
omitting to lay some snare for them very early; but it was not so with me. I
first got acquainted with the master of a ship who had been on the coast of
Guinea; and who, having had very good success there, was resolved to go again.
This captain taking a fancy to my conversation, which was not at all
disagreeable at that time, hearing me say I had a mind to see the world, told
me if I would go the voyage with him I should be at no expense; I should be his
messmate and his companion; and if I could carry anything with me, I should
have all the advantage of it that the trade would admit; and perhaps I might
meet with some encouragement.
I embraced the offer;
and entering into a strict friendship with this captain, who was an honest,
plain-dealing man, I went the voyage with him, and carried a small adventure
with me, which, by the disinterested honesty of my friend the captain, I
increased very considerably; for I carried about 40 pounds in such toys and trifles
as the captain directed me to buy. These 40 pounds I had mustered together by
the assistance of some of my relations whom I corresponded with; and who, I
believe, got my father, or at least my mother, to contribute so much as that to
my first adventure.
This was the only
voyage which I may say was successful in all my adventures, which I owe to the
integrity and honesty of my friend the captain; under whom also I got a
competent knowledge of the mathematics and the rules of navigation, learned how
to keep an account of the ship’s course, take an observation, and, in short, to
understand some things that were needful to be understood by a sailor; for, as
he took delight to instruct me, I took delight to learn; and, in a word, this
voyage made me both a sailor and a merchant; for I brought home five pounds
nine ounces of gold-dust for my adventure, which yielded me in London, at my
return, almost 300 pounds; and this filled me with those aspiring thoughts
which have since so completed my ruin.
Yet even in this voyage
I had my misfortunes too; particularly, that I was continually sick, being
thrown into a violent calenture by the excessive heat of the climate; our
principal trading being upon the coast, from latitude of 15 degrees north even
to the line itself.
I was now set up for a
Guinea trader; and my friend, to my great misfortune, dying soon after his
arrival, I resolved to go the same voyage again, and I embarked in the same
vessel with one who was his mate in the former voyage, and had now got the
command of the ship. This was the unhappiest voyage that ever man made; for
though I did not carry quite 100 pounds of my new-gained wealth, so that I had
200 pounds left, which I had lodged with my friend’s widow, who was very just
to me, yet I fell into terrible misfortunes. The first was this: our ship
making her course towards the Canary Islands, or rather between those islands
and the African shore, was surprised in the grey of the morning by a Turkish
rover of Sallee, who gave chase to us with all the sail she could make. We
crowded also as much canvas as our yards would spread, or our masts carry, to
get clear; but finding the pirate gained upon us, and would certainly come up
with us in a few hours, we prepared to fight; our ship having twelve guns, and
the rogue eighteen. About three in the afternoon he came up with us, and
bringing to, by mistake, just athwart our quarter, instead of athwart our
stern, as he intended, we brought eight of our guns to bear on that side, and
poured in a broadside upon him, which made him sheer off again, after returning
our fire, and pouring in also his small shot from near two hundred men which he
had on board. However, we had not a man touched, all our men keeping close. He
prepared to attack us again, and we to defend ourselves. But laying us on board
the next time upon our other quarter, he entered sixty men upon our decks, who
immediately fell to cutting and hacking the sails and rigging. We plied them
with small shot, half-pikes, powder-chests, and such like, and cleared our deck
of them twice. However, to cut short this melancholy part of our story, our
ship being disabled, and three of our men killed, and eight wounded, we were
obliged to yield, and were carried all prisoners into Sallee, a port belonging
to the Moors.
The usage I had there
was not so dreadful as at first I apprehended; nor was I carried up the country
to the emperor’s court, as the rest of our men were, but was kept by the
captain of the rover as his proper prize, and made his slave, being young and
nimble, and fit for his business. At this surprising change of my
circumstances, from a merchant to a miserable slave, I was perfectly
overwhelmed; and now I looked back upon my father’s prophetic discourse to me,
that I should be miserable and have none to relieve me, which I thought was now
so effectually brought to pass that I could not be worse; for now the hand of
Heaven had overtaken me, and I was undone without redemption; but, alas! this
was but a taste of the misery I was to go through, as will appear in the sequel
of this story.
As my new patron, or
master, had taken me home to his house, so I was in hopes that he would take me
with him when he went to sea again, believing that it would some time or other
be his fate to be taken by a Spanish or Portugal man-of-war; and that then I
should be set at liberty. But this hope of mine was soon taken away; for when
he went to sea, he left me on shore to look after his little garden, and do the
common drudgery of slaves about his house; and when he came home again from his
cruise, he ordered me to lie in the cabin to look after the ship.
Here I meditated
nothing but my escape, and what method I might take to effect it, but found no
way that had the least probability in it; nothing presented to make the
supposition of it rational; for I had nobody to communicate it to that would
embark with me - no fellow-slave, no Englishman, Irishman, or Scotchman there
but myself; so that for two years, though I often pleased myself with the
imagination, yet I never had the least encouraging prospect of putting it in
practice.
After about two years,
an odd circumstance presented itself, which put the old thought of making some
attempt for my liberty again in my head. My patron lying at home longer than
usual without fitting out his ship, which, as I heard, was for want of money,
he used constantly, once or twice a week, sometimes oftener if the weather was
fair, to take the ship’s pinnace and go out into the road a- fishing; and as he
always took me and young Maresco with him to row the boat, we made him very
merry, and I proved very dexterous in catching fish; insomuch that sometimes he
would send me with a Moor, one of his kinsmen, and the youth - the Maresco, as
they called him - to catch a dish of fish for him.
It happened one time,
that going a-fishing in a calm morning, a fog rose so thick that, though we
were not half a league from the shore, we lost sight of it; and rowing we knew
not whither or which way, we laboured all day, and all the next night; and when
the morning came we found we had pulled off to sea instead of pulling in for
the shore; and that we were at least two leagues from the shore. However, we
got well in again, though with a great deal of labour and some danger; for the
wind began to blow pretty fresh in the morning; but we were all very hungry.
But our patron, warned
by this disaster, resolved to take more care of himself for the future; and
having lying by him the longboat of our English ship that he had taken, he
resolved he would not go a- fishing any more without a compass and some
provision; so he ordered the carpenter of his ship, who also was an English
slave, to build a little state-room, or cabin, in the middle of the long- boat,
like that of a barge, with a place to stand behind it to steer, and haul home
the main-sheet; the room before for a hand or two to stand and work the sails.
She sailed with what we call a shoulder-of-mutton sail; and the boom jibed over
the top of the cabin, which lay very snug and low, and had in it room for him
to lie, with a slave or two, and a table to eat on, with some small lockers to
put in some bottles of such liquor as he thought fit to drink; and his bread,
rice, and coffee.
We went frequently out
with this boat a-fishing; and as I was most dexterous to catch fish for him, he
never went without me. It happened that he had appointed to go out in this
boat, either for pleasure or for fish, with two or three Moors of some
distinction in that place, and for whom he had provided extraordinarily, and
had, therefore, sent on board the boat overnight a larger store of provisions
than ordinary; and had ordered me to get ready three fusees with powder and
shot, which were on board his ship, for that they designed some sport of
fowling as well as fishing.
I got all things ready
as he had directed, and waited the next morning with the boat washed clean, her
ancient and pendants out, and everything to accommodate his guests; when
by-and-by my patron came on board alone, and told me his guests had put off going
from some business that fell out, and ordered me, with the man and boy, as
usual, to go out with the boat and catch them some fish, for that his friends
were to sup at his house, and commanded that as soon as I got some fish I
should bring it home to his house; all which I prepared to do.
This moment my former
notions of deliverance darted into my thoughts, for now I found I was likely to
have a little ship at my command; and my master being gone, I prepared to
furnish myself, not for fishing business, but for a voyage; though I knew not,
neither did I so much as consider, whither I should steer - anywhere to get out
of that place was my desire.
My first contrivance
was to make a pretence to speak to this Moor, to get something for our
subsistence on board; for I told him we must not presume to eat of our patron’s
bread. He said that was true; so he brought a large basket of rusk or biscuit,
and three jars of fresh water, into the boat. I knew where my patron’s case of
bottles stood, which it was evident, by the make, were taken out of some
English prize, and I conveyed them into the boat while the Moor was on shore,
as if they had been there before for our master. I conveyed also a great lump
of beeswax into the boat, which weighed about half a hundred-weight, with a
parcel of twine or thread, a hatchet, a saw, and a hammer, all of which were of
great use to us afterwards, especially the wax, to make candles. Another trick
I tried upon him, which he innocently came into also: his name was Ismael, which
they call Muley, or Moely; so I called to him - "Moely," said I,
"our patron’s guns are on board the boat; can you not get a little powder
and shot? It may be we may kill some alcamies (a fowl like our curlews) for
ourselves, for I know he keeps the gunner’s stores in the ship."
"Yes," says he, "I’ll bring some;" and accordingly he
brought a great leather pouch, which held a pound and a half of powder, or
rather more; and another with shot, that had five or six pounds, with some
bullets, and put all into the boat. At the same time I had found some powder of
my master’s in the great cabin, with which I filled one of the large bottles in
the case, which was almost empty, pouring what was in it into another; and thus
furnished with everything needful, we sailed out of the port to fish. The
castle, which is at the entrance of the port, knew who we were, and took no
notice of us; and we were not above a mile out of the port before we hauled in
our sail and set us down to fish. The wind blew from the N.N.E., which was
contrary to my desire, for had it blown southerly I had been sure to have made
the coast of Spain, and at least reached to the bay of Cadiz; but my
resolutions were, blow which way it would, I would be gone from that horrid
place where I was, and leave the rest to fate.
After we had fished
some time and caught nothing - for when I had fish on my hook I would not pull
them up, that he might not see them - I said to the Moor, "This will not
do; our master will not be thus served; we must stand farther off." He,
thinking no harm, agreed, and being in the head of the boat, set the sails;
and, as I had the helm, I ran the boat out near a league farther, and then
brought her to, as if I would fish; when, giving the boy the helm, I stepped
forward to where the Moor was, and making as if I stooped for something behind
him, I took him by surprise with my arm under his waist, and tossed him clear
overboard into the sea. He rose immediately, for he swam like a cork, and
called to me, begged to be taken in, told me he would go all over the world
with me. He swam so strong after the boat that he would have reached me very
quickly, there being but little wind; upon which I stepped into the cabin, and
fetching one of the fowling-pieces, I presented it at him, and told him I had
done him no hurt, and if he would be quiet I would do him none.
"But," said I, "you swim well enough to reach to the shore, and
the sea is calm; make the best of your way to shore, and I will do you no harm;
but if you come near the boat I’ll shoot you through the head, for I am
resolved to have my liberty;" so he turned himself about, and swam for the
shore, and I make no doubt but he reached it with ease, for he was an excellent
swimmer.
I could have been
content to have taken this Moor with me, and have drowned the boy, but there
was no venturing to trust him. When he was gone, I turned to the boy, whom they
called Xury, and said to him, "Xury, if you will be faithful to me, I’ll
make you a great man; but if you will not stroke your face to be true to
me" - that is, swear by Mahomet and his father’s beard - "I must
throw you into the sea too." The boy smiled in my face, and spoke so
innocently that I could not distrust him, and swore to be faithful to me, and
go all over the world with me.
While I was in view of
the Moor that was swimming, I stood out directly to sea with the boat, rather
stretching to windward, that they might think me gone towards the Straits’
mouth (as indeed any one that had been in their wits must have been supposed to
do): for who would have supposed we were sailed on to the southward, to the
truly Barbarian coast, where whole nations of negroes were sure to surround us
with their canoes and destroy us; where we could not go on shore but we should
be devoured by savage beasts, or more merciless savages of human kind.
But as soon as it grew
dusk in the evening, I changed my course, and steered directly south and by
east, bending my course a little towards the east, that I might keep in with
the shore; and having a fair, fresh gale of wind, and a smooth, quiet sea, I
made such sail that I believe by the next day, at three o’clock in the
afternoon, when I first made the land, I could not be less than one hundred and
fifty miles south of Sallee; quite beyond the Emperor of Morocco’s dominions,
or indeed of any other king thereabouts, for we saw no people.
Yet such was the fright
I had taken of the Moors, and the dreadful apprehensions I had of falling into
their hands, that I would not stop, or go on shore, or come to an anchor; the
wind continuing fair till I had sailed in that manner five days; and then the
wind shifting to the southward, I concluded also that if any of our vessels
were in chase of me, they also would now give over; so I ventured to make to
the coast, and came to an anchor in the mouth of a little river, I knew not
what, nor where, neither what latitude, what country, what nation, or what
river. I neither saw, nor desired to see any people; the principal thing I
wanted was fresh water. We came into this creek in the evening, resolving to
swim on shore as soon as it was dark, and discover the country; but as soon as
it was quite dark, we heard such dreadful noises of the barking, roaring, and
howling of wild creatures, of we knew not what kinds, that the poor boy was
ready to die with fear, and begged of me not to go on shore till day.
"Well, Xury," said I, "then I won’t; but it may be that we may
see men by day, who will be as bad to us as those lions." "Then we
give them the shoot gun," says Xury, laughing, "make them run
wey." Such English Xury spoke by conversing among us slaves. However, I
was glad to see the boy so cheerful, and I gave him a dram (out of our patron’s
case of bottles) to cheer him up. After all, Xury’s advice was good, and I took
it; we dropped our little anchor, and lay still all night; I say still, for we
slept none; for in two or three hours we saw vast great creatures (we knew not
what to call them) of many sorts, come down to the sea-shore and run into the
water, wallowing and washing themselves for the pleasure of cooling themselves;
and they made such hideous howlings and yellings, that I never indeed heard the
like.
Xury was dreadfully
frighted, and indeed so was I too; but we were both more frighted when we heard
one of these mighty creatures come swimming towards our boat; we could not see
him, but we might hear him by his blowing to be a monstrous huge and furious
beast. Xury said it was a lion, and it might be so for aught I know; but poor
Xury cried to me to weigh the anchor and row away; "No," says I,
"Xury; we can slip our cable, with the buoy to it, and go off to sea; they
cannot follow us far." I had no sooner said so, but I perceived the
creature (whatever it was) within two oars’ length, which something surprised
me; however, I immediately stepped to the cabin door, and taking up my gun,
fired at him; upon which he immediately turned about and swam towards the shore
again.
But it is impossible to
describe the horrid noises, and hideous cries and howlings that were raised, as
well upon the edge of the shore as higher within the country, upon the noise or
report of the gun, a thing I have some reason to believe those creatures had
never heard before: this convinced me that there was no going on shore for us
in the night on that coast, and how to venture on shore in the day was another
question too; for to have fallen into the hands of any of the savages had been
as bad as to have fallen into the hands of the lions and tigers; at least we
were equally apprehensive of the danger of it.
Be that as it would, we
were obliged to go on shore somewhere or other for water, for we had not a pint
left in the boat; when and where to get to it was the point. Xury said, if I
would let him go on shore with one of the jars, he would find if there was any
water, and bring some to me. I asked him why he would go? why I should not go,
and he stay in the boat? The boy answered with so much affection as made me
love him ever after. Says he, "If wild mans come, they eat me, you go wey."
"Well, Xury," said I, "we will both go and if the wild mans
come, we will kill them, they shall eat neither of us." So I gave Xury a
piece of rusk bread to eat, and a dram out of our patron’s case of bottles
which I mentioned before; and we hauled the boat in as near the shore as we
thought was proper, and so waded on shore, carrying nothing but our arms and
two jars for water.
I did not care to go
out of sight of the boat, fearing the coming of canoes with savages down the
river; but the boy seeing a low place about a mile up the country, rambled to
it, and by-and-by I saw him come running towards me. I thought he was pursued by
some savage, or frighted with some wild beast, and I ran forward towards him to
help him; but when I came nearer to him I saw something hanging over his
shoulders, which was a creature that he had shot, like a hare, but different in
colour, and longer legs; however, we were very glad of it, and it was very good
meat; but the great joy that poor Xury came with, was to tell me he had found
good water and seen no wild mans.
But we found afterwards
that we need not take such pains for water, for a little higher up the creek
where we were we found the water fresh when the tide was out, which flowed but
a little way up; so we filled our jars, and feasted on the hare he had killed,
and prepared to go on our way, having seen no footsteps of any human creature in
that part of the country.
As I had been one
voyage to this coast before, I knew very well that the islands of the Canaries,
and the Cape de Verde Islands also, lay not far off from the coast. But as I
had no instruments to take an observation to know what latitude we were in, and
not exactly knowing, or at least remembering, what latitude they were in, I
knew not where to look for them, or when to stand off to sea towards them;
otherwise I might now easily have found some of these islands. But my hope was,
that if I stood along this coast till I came to that part where the English
traded, I should find some of their vessels upon their usual design of trade,
that would relieve and take us in.
By the best of my
calculation, that place where I now was must be that country which, lying
between the Emperor of Morocco’s dominions and the negroes, lies waste and
uninhabited, except by wild beasts; the negroes having abandoned it and gone
farther south for fear of the Moors, and the Moors not thinking it worth inhabiting
by reason of its barrenness; and indeed, both forsaking it because of the
prodigious number of tigers, lions, leopards, and other furious creatures which
harbour there; so that the Moors use it for their hunting only, where they go
like an army, two or three thousand men at a time; and indeed for near a
hundred miles together upon this coast we saw nothing but a waste, uninhabited
country by day, and heard nothing but howlings and roaring of wild beasts by
night.
Once or twice in the
daytime I thought I saw the Pico of Teneriffe, being the high top of the
Mountain Teneriffe in the Canaries, and had a great mind to venture out, in
hopes of reaching thither; but having tried twice, I was forced in again by
contrary winds, the sea also going too high for my little vessel; so, I
resolved to pursue my first design, and keep along the shore.
Several times I was
obliged to land for fresh water, after we had left this place; and once in
particular, being early in morning, we came to an anchor under a little point
of land, which was pretty high; and the tide beginning to flow, we lay still to
go farther in. Xury, whose eyes were more about him than it seems mine were,
calls softly to me, and tells me that we had best go farther off the shore;
"For," says he, "look, yonder lies a dreadful monster on the
side of that hillock, fast asleep." I looked where he pointed, and saw a
dreadful monster indeed, for it was a terrible, great lion that lay on the side
of the shore, under the shade of a piece of the hill that hung as it were a
little over him. "Xury," says I, "you shall on shore and kill
him." Xury, looked frighted, and said, "Me kill! he eat me at one
mouth!" - one mouthful he meant. However, I said no more to the boy, but
bade him lie still, and I took our biggest gun, which was almost musket-bore,
and loaded it with a good charge of powder, and with two slugs, and laid it
down; then I loaded another gun with two bullets; and the third (for we had
three pieces) I loaded with five smaller bullets. I took the best aim I could
with the first piece to have shot him in the head, but he lay so with his leg
raised a little above his nose, that the slugs hit his leg about the knee and
broke the bone. He started up, growling at first, but finding his leg broken,
fell down again; and then got upon three legs, and gave the most hideous roar
that ever I heard. I was a little surprised that I had not hit him on the head;
however, I took up the second piece immediately, and though he began to move
off, fired again, and shot him in the head, and had the pleasure to see him
drop and make but little noise, but lie struggling for life. Then Xury took
heart, and would have me let him go on shore. "Well, go," said I: so
the boy jumped into the water and taking a little gun in one hand, swam to
shore with the other hand, and coming close to the creature, put the muzzle of
the piece to his ear, and shot him in the head again, which despatched him
quite.
This was game indeed to
us, but this was no food; and I was very sorry to lose three charges of powder
and shot upon a creature that was good for nothing to us. However, Xury said he
would have some of him; so he comes on board, and asked me to give him the
hatchet. "For what, Xury?" said I. "Me cut off his head,"
said he. However, Xury could not cut off his head, but he cut off a foot, and
brought it with him, and it was a monstrous great one.
I bethought myself,
however, that, perhaps the skin of him might, one way or other, be of some
value to us; and I resolved to take off his skin if I could. So Xury and I went
to work with him; but Xury was much the better workman at it, for I knew very
ill how to do it. Indeed, it took us both up the whole day, but at last we got
off the hide of him, and spreading it on the top of our cabin, the sun
effectually dried it in two days’ time, and it afterwards served me to lie
upon.
AFTER this stop, we
made on to the southward continually for ten or twelve days, living very
sparingly on our provisions, which began to abate very much, and going no
oftener to the shore than we were obliged to for fresh water. My design in this
was to make the river Gambia or Senegal, that is to say anywhere about the Cape
de Verde, where I was in hopes to meet with some European ship; and if I did
not, I knew not what course I had to take, but to seek for the islands, or
perish there among the negroes. I knew that all the ships from Europe, which
sailed either to the coast of Guinea or to Brazil, or to the East Indies, made this
cape, or those islands; and, in a word, I put the whole of my fortune upon this
single point, either that I must meet with some ship or must perish.
When I had pursued this
resolution about ten days longer, as I have said, I began to see that the land
was inhabited; and in two or three places, as we sailed by, we saw people stand
upon the shore to look at us; we could also perceive they were quite black and
naked. I was once inclined to have gone on shore to them; but Xury was my
better counsellor, and said to me, "No go, no go." However, I hauled
in nearer the shore that I might talk to them, and I found they ran along the
shore by me a good way. I observed they had no weapons in their hand, except
one, who had a long slender stick, which Xury said was a lance, and that they
could throw them a great way with good aim; so I kept at a distance, but talked
with them by signs as well as I could; and particularly made signs for
something to eat: they beckoned to me to stop my boat, and they would fetch me some
meat. Upon this I lowered the top of my sail and lay by, and two of them ran up
into the country, and in less than half-an- hour came back, and brought with
them two pieces of dried flesh and some corn, such as is the produce of their
country; but we neither knew what the one or the other was; however, we were
willing to accept it, but how to come at it was our next dispute, for I would
not venture on shore to them, and they were as much afraid of us; but they took
a safe way for us all, for they brought it to the shore and laid it down, and
went and stood a great way off till we fetched it on board, and then came close
to us again.
We made signs of thanks
to them, for we had nothing to make them amends; but an opportunity offered
that very instant to oblige them wonderfully; for while we were lying by the
shore came two mighty creatures, one pursuing the other (as we took it) with
great fury from the mountains towards the sea; whether it was the male pursuing
the female, or whether they were in sport or in rage, we could not tell, any
more than we could tell whether it was usual or strange, but I believe it was
the latter; because, in the first place, those ravenous creatures seldom appear
but in the night; and, in the second place, we found the people terribly
frighted, especially the women. The man that had the lance or dart did not fly
from them, but the rest did; however, as the two creatures ran directly into
the water, they did not offer to fall upon any of the negroes, but plunged
themselves into the sea, and swam about, as if they had come for their
diversion; at last one of them began to come nearer our boat than at first I
expected; but I lay ready for him, for I had loaded my gun with all possible
expedition, and bade Xury load both the others. As soon as he came fairly
within my reach, I fired, and shot him directly in the head; immediately he
sank down into the water, but rose instantly, and plunged up and down, as if he
were struggling for life, and so indeed he was; he immediately made to the
shore; but between the wound, which was his mortal hurt, and the strangling of
the water, he died just before he reached the shore.
It is impossible to
express the astonishment of these poor creatures at the noise and fire of my
gun: some of them were even ready to die for fear, and fell down as dead with
the very terror; but when they saw the creature dead, and sunk in the water,
and that I made signs to them to come to the shore, they took heart and came,
and began to search for the creature. I found him by his blood staining the
water; and by the help of a rope, which I slung round him, and gave the negroes
to haul, they dragged him on shore, and found that it was a most curious
leopard, spotted, and fine to an admirable degree; and the negroes held up
their hands with admiration, to think what it was I had killed him with.
The other creature,
frighted with the flash of fire and the noise of the gun, swam on shore, and
ran up directly to the mountains from whence they came; nor could I, at that
distance, know what it was. I found quickly the negroes wished to eat the flesh
of this creature, so I was willing to have them take it as a favour from me;
which, when I made signs to them that they might take him, they were very
thankful for. Immediately they fell to work with him; and though they had no
knife, yet, with a sharpened piece of wood, they took off his skin as readily,
and much more readily, than we could have done with a knife. They offered me
some of the flesh, which I declined, pointing out that I would give it them;
but made signs for the skin, which they gave me very freely, and brought me a
great deal more of their provisions, which, though I did not understand, yet I
accepted. I then made signs to them for some water, and held out one of my jars
to them, turning it bottom upward, to show that it was empty, and that I wanted
to have it filled. They called immediately to some of their friends, and there
came two women, and brought a great vessel made of earth, and burnt, as I
supposed, in the sun, this they set down to me, as before, and I sent Xury on
shore with my jars, and filled them all three. The women were as naked as the
men.
I was now furnished
with roots and corn, such as it was, and water; and leaving my friendly
negroes, I made forward for about eleven days more, without offering to go near
the shore, till I saw the land run out a great length into the sea, at about
the distance of four or five leagues before me; and the sea being very calm, I
kept a large offing to make this point. At length, doubling the point, at about
two leagues from the land, I saw plainly land on the other side, to seaward;
then I concluded, as it was most certain indeed, that this was the Cape de
Verde, and those the islands called, from thence, Cape de Verde Islands.
However, they were at a great distance, and I could not well tell what I had
best to do; for if I should be taken with a fresh of wind, I might neither
reach one or other.
In this dilemma, as I
was very pensive, I stepped into the cabin and sat down, Xury having the helm;
when, on a sudden, the boy cried out, "Master, master, a ship with a
sail!" and the foolish boy was frighted out of his wits, thinking it must
needs be some of his master’s ships sent to pursue us, but I knew we were far
enough out of their reach. I jumped out of the cabin, and immediately saw, not
only the ship, but that it was a Portuguese ship; and, as I thought, was bound
to the coast of Guinea, for negroes. But, when I observed the course she
steered, I was soon convinced they were bound some other way, and did not
design to come any nearer to the shore; upon which I stretched out to sea as
much as I could, resolving to speak with them if possible.
With all the sail I
could make, I found I should not be able to come in their way, but that they
would be gone by before I could make any signal to them: but after I had
crowded to the utmost, and began to despair, they, it seems, saw by the help of
their glasses that it was some European boat, which they supposed must belong to
some ship that was lost; so they shortened sail to let me come up. I was
encouraged with this, and as I had my patron’s ancient on board, I made a waft
of it to them, for a signal of distress, and fired a gun, both which they saw;
for they told me they saw the smoke, though they did not hear the gun. Upon
these signals they very kindly brought to, and lay by for me; and in about
three hours; time I came up with them.
They asked me what I
was, in Portuguese, and in Spanish, and in French, but I understood none of
them; but at last a Scotch sailor, who was on board, called to me: and I
answered him, and told him I was an Englishman, that I had made my escape out
of slavery from the Moors, at Sallee; they then bade me come on board, and very
kindly took me in, and all my goods.
It was an inexpressible
joy to me, which any one will believe, that I was thus delivered, as I esteemed
it, from such a miserable and almost hopeless condition as I was in; and I
immediately offered all I had to the captain of the ship, as a return for my
deliverance; but he generously told me he would take nothing from me, but that
all I had should be delivered safe to me when I came to the Brazils.
"For," says he, "I have saved your life on no other terms than I
would be glad to be saved myself: and it may, one time or other, be my lot to
be taken up in the same condition. Besides," said he, "when I carry
you to the Brazils, so great a way from your own country, if I should take from
you what you have, you will be starved there, and then I only take away that
life I have given. No, no," says he: "Seignior Inglese" (Mr.
Englishman), "I will carry you thither in charity, and those things will
help to buy your subsistence there, and your passage home again."
As he was charitable in
this proposal, so he was just in the performance to a tittle; for he ordered
the seamen that none should touch anything that I had: then he took everything
into his own possession, and gave me back an exact inventory of them, that I
might have them, even to my three earthen jars.
As to my boat, it was a
very good one; and that he saw, and told me he would buy it of me for his ship’s
use; and asked me what I would have for it? I told him he had been so generous
to me in everything that I could not offer to make any price of the boat, but
left it entirely to him: upon which he told me he would give me a note of hand
to pay me eighty pieces of eight for it at Brazil; and when it came there, if
any one offered to give more, he would make it up. He offered me also sixty
pieces of eight more for my boy Xury, which I was loth to take; not that I was
unwilling to let the captain have him, but I was very loth to sell the poor boy’s
liberty, who had assisted me so faithfully in procuring my own. However, when I
let him know my reason, he owned it to be just, and offered me this medium,
that he would give the boy an obligation to set him free in ten years, if he
turned Christian: upon this, and Xury saying he was willing to go to him, I let
the captain have him.
We had a very good
voyage to the Brazils, and I arrived in the Bay de Todos los Santos, or All
Saints’ Bay, in about twenty-two days after. And now I was once more delivered
from the most miserable of all conditions of life; and what to do next with
myself I was to consider.
The generous treatment
the captain gave me I can never enough remember: he would take nothing of me
for my passage, gave me twenty ducats for the leopard’s skin, and forty for the
lion’s skin, which I had in my boat, and caused everything I had in the ship to
be punctually delivered to me; and what I was willing to sell he bought of me,
such as the case of bottles, two of my guns, and a piece of the lump of beeswax
- for I had made candles of the rest: in a word, I made about two hundred and twenty
pieces of eight of all my cargo; and with this stock I went on shore in the
Brazils.
I had not been long
here before I was recommended to the house of a good honest man like himself,
who had an ingenio, as they call it (that is, a plantation and a sugar-house).
I lived with him some time, and acquainted myself by that means with the manner
of planting and making of sugar; and seeing how well the planters lived, and
how they got rich suddenly, I resolved, if I could get a licence to settle
there, I would turn planter among them: resolving in the meantime to find out
some way to get my money, which I had left in London, remitted to me. To this
purpose, getting a kind of letter of naturalisation, I purchased as much land
that was uncured as my money would reach, and formed a plan for my plantation
and settlement; such a one as might be suitable to the stock which I proposed
to myself to receive from England.
I had a neighbour, a
Portuguese, of Lisbon, but born of English parents, whose name was Wells, and
in much such circumstances as I was. I call him my neighbour, because his
plantation lay next to mine, and we went on very sociably together. My stock
was but low, as well as his; and we rather planted for food than anything else,
for about two years. However, we began to increase, and our land began to come
into order; so that the third year we planted some tobacco, and made each of us
a large piece of ground ready for planting canes in the year to come. But we
both wanted help; and now I found, more than before, I had done wrong in
parting with my boy Xury.
But, alas! for me to do
wrong that never did right, was no great wonder. I hail no remedy but to go on:
I had got into an employment quite remote to my genius, and directly contrary
to the life I delighted in, and for which I forsook my father’s house, and
broke through all his good advice. Nay, I was coming into the very middle
station, or upper degree of low life, which my father advised me to before, and
which, if I resolved to go on with, I might as well have stayed at home, and
never have fatigued myself in the world as I had done; and I used often to say
to myself, I could have done this as well in England, among my friends, as have
gone five thousand miles off to do it among strangers and savages, in a
wilderness, and at such a distance as never to hear from any part of the world
that had the least knowledge of me.
In this manner I used
to look upon my condition with the utmost regret. I had nobody to converse
with, but now and then this neighbour; no work to be done, but by the labour of
my hands; and I used to say, I lived just like a man cast away upon some
desolate island, that had nobody there but himself. But how just has it been -
and how should all men reflect, that when they compare their present conditions
with others that are worse, Heaven may oblige them to make the exchange, and be
convinced of their former felicity by their experience - I say, how just has it
been, that the truly solitary life I reflected on, in an island of mere
desolation, should be my lot, who had so often unjustly compared it with the
life which I then led, in which, had I continued, I had in all probability been
exceeding prosperous and rich.
I was in some degree
settled in my measures for carrying on the plantation before my kind friend,
the captain of the ship that took me up at sea, went back - for the ship
remained there, in providing his lading and preparing for his voyage, nearly
three months - when telling him what little stock I had left behind me in
London, he gave me this friendly and sincere advice:- "Seignior
Inglese," says he (for so he always called me), "if you will give me
letters, and a procuration in form to me, with orders to the person who has
your money in London to send your effects to Lisbon, to such persons as I shall
direct, and in such goods as are proper for this country, I will bring you the
produce of them, God willing, at my return; but, since human affairs are all subject
to changes and disasters, I would have you give orders but for one hundred
pounds sterling, which, you say, is half your stock, and let the hazard be run
for the first; so that, if it come safe, you may order the rest the same way,
and, if it miscarry, you may have the other half to have recourse to for your
supply."
This was so wholesome
advice, and looked so friendly, that I could not but be convinced it was the
best course I could take; so I accordingly prepared letters to the gentlewoman
with whom I had left my money, and a procuration to the Portuguese captain, as
he desired.
I wrote the English
captain’s widow a full account of all my adventures - my slavery, escape, and
how I had met with the Portuguese captain at sea, the humanity of his behaviour,
and what condition I was now in, with all other necessary directions for my
supply; and when this honest captain came to Lisbon, he found means, by some of
the English merchants there, to send over, not the order only, but a full
account of my story to a merchant in London, who represented it effectually to
her; whereupon she not only delivered the money, but out of her own pocket sent
the Portugal captain a very handsome present for his humanity and charity to
me.
The merchant in London,
vesting this hundred pounds in English goods, such as the captain had written
for, sent them directly to him at Lisbon, and he brought them all safe to me to
the Brazils; among which, without my direction (for I was too young in my
business to think of them), he had taken care to have all sorts of tools,
ironwork, and utensils necessary for my plantation, and which were of great use
to me.
When this cargo arrived
I thought my fortune made, for I was surprised with the joy of it; and my stood
steward, the captain, had laid out the five pounds, which my friend had sent
him for a present for himself, to purchase and bring me over a servant, under
bond for six years’ service, and would not accept of any consideration, except
a little tobacco, which I would have him accept, being of my own produce.
Neither was this all;
for my goods being all English manufacture, such as cloths, stuffs, baize, and
things particularly valuable and desirable in the country, I found means to
sell them to a very great advantage; so that I might say I had more than four
times the value of my first cargo, and was now infinitely beyond my poor
neighbour - I mean in the advancement of my plantation; for the first thing I
did, I bought me a negro slave, and an European servant also - I mean another
besides that which the captain brought me from Lisbon.
But as abused
prosperity is oftentimes made the very means of our greatest adversity, so it
was with me. I went on the next year with great success in my plantation: I
raised fifty great rolls of tobacco on my own ground, more than I had disposed
of for necessaries among my neighbours; and these fifty rolls, being each of
above a hundredweight, were well cured, and laid by against the return of the
fleet from Lisbon: and now increasing in business and wealth, my head began to
be full of projects and undertakings beyond my reach; such as are, indeed,
often the ruin of the best heads in business. Had I continued in the station I
was now in, I had room for all the happy things to have yet befallen me for
which my father so earnestly recommended a quiet, retired life, and of which he
had so sensibly described the middle station of life to be full of; but other
things attended me, and I was still to be the wilful agent of all my own
miseries; and particularly, to increase my fault, and double the reflections
upon myself, which in my future sorrows I should have leisure to make, all
these miscarriages were procured by my apparent obstinate adhering to my
foolish inclination of wandering abroad, and pursuing that inclination, in
contradiction to the clearest views of doing myself good in a fair and plain
pursuit of those prospects, and those measures of life, which nature and
Providence concurred to present me with, and to make my duty.
As I had once done thus
in my breaking away from my parents, so I could not be content now, but I must
go and leave the happy view I had of being a rich and thriving man in my new
plantation, only to pursue a rash and immoderate desire of rising faster than
the nature of the thing admitted; and thus I cast myself down again into the
deepest gulf of human misery that ever man fell into, or perhaps could be
consistent with life and a state of health in the world.
To come, then, by the
just degrees to the particulars of this part of my story. You may suppose, that
having now lived almost four years in the Brazils, and beginning to thrive and
prosper very well upon my plantation, I had not only learned the language, but
had contracted acquaintance and friendship among my fellow-planters, as well as
among the merchants at St. Salvador, which was our port; and that, in my
discourses among them, I had frequently given them an account of my two voyages
to the coast of Guinea: the manner of trading with the negroes there, and how easy
it was to purchase upon the coast for trifles - such as beads, toys, knives,
scissors, hatchets, bits of glass, and the like - not only gold-dust, Guinea
grains, elephants’ teeth, &c., but negroes, for the service of the Brazils,
in great numbers.
They listened always
very attentively to my discourses on these heads, but especially to that part
which related to the buying of negroes, which was a trade at that time, not
only not far entered into, but, as far as it was, had been carried on by
assientos, or permission of the kings of Spain and Portugal, and engrossed in
the public stock: so that few negroes were bought, and these excessively dear.
It happened, being in
company with some merchants and planters of my acquaintance, and talking of
those things very earnestly, three of them came to me next morning, and told me
they had been musing very much upon what I had discoursed with them of the last
night, and they came to make a secret proposal to me; and, after enjoining me
to secrecy, they told me that they had a mind to fit out a ship to go to
Guinea; that they had all plantations as well as I, and were straitened for
nothing so much as servants; that as it was a trade that could not be carried
on, because they could not publicly sell the negroes when they came home, so
they desired to make but one voyage, to bring the negroes on shore privately,
and divide them among their own plantations; and, in a word, the question was
whether I would go their supercargo in the ship, to manage the trading part upon
the coast of Guinea; and they offered me that I should have my equal share of
the negroes, without providing any part of the stock.
This was a fair
proposal, it must be confessed, had it been made to any one that had not had a
settlement and a plantation of his own to look after, which was in a fair way
of coming to be very considerable, and with a good stock upon it; but for me,
that was thus entered and established, and had nothing to do but to go on as I
had begun, for three or four years more, and to have sent for the other hundred
pounds from England; and who in that time, and with that little addition, could
scarce have failed of being worth three or four thousand pounds sterling, and
that increasing too - for me to think of such a voyage was the most
preposterous thing that ever man in such circumstances could be guilty of.
But I, that was born to
be my own destroyer, could no more resist the offer than I could restrain my
first rambling designs when my father’ good counsel was lost upon me. In a
word, I told them I would go with all my heart, if they would undertake to look
after my plantation in my absence, and would dispose of it to such as I should
direct, if I miscarried. This they all engaged to do, and entered into writings
or covenants to do so; and I made a formal will, disposing of my plantation and
effects in case of my death, making the captain of the ship that had saved my
life, as before, my universal heir, but obliging him to dispose of my effects
as I had directed in my will; one half of the produce being to himself, and the
other to be shipped to England.
In short, I took all
possible caution to preserve my effects and to keep up my plantation. Had I
used half as much prudence to have looked into my own interest, and have made a
judgment of what I ought to have done and not to have done, I had certainly
never gone away from so prosperous an undertaking, leaving all the probable
views of a thriving circumstance, and gone upon a voyage to sea, attended with
all its common hazards, to say nothing of the reasons I had to expect
particular misfortunes to myself.
But I was hurried on,
and obeyed blindly the dictates of my fancy rather than my reason; and,
accordingly, the ship being fitted out, and the cargo furnished, and all things
done, as by agreement, by my partners in the voyage, I went on board in an evil
hour, the 1st September 1659, being the same day eight years that I went from
my father and mother at Hull, in order to act the rebel to their authority, and
the fool to my own interests.
Our ship was about one
hundred and twenty tons burden, carried six guns and fourteen men, besides the
master, his boy, and myself. We had on board no large cargo of goods, except of
such toys as were fit for our trade with the negroes, such as beads, bits of
glass, shells, and other trifles, especially little looking-glasses, knives,
scissors, hatchets, and the like.
The same day I went on
board we set sail, standing away to the northward upon our own coast, with
design to stretch over for the African coast when we came about ten or twelve
degrees of northern latitude, which, it seems, was the manner of course in
those days. We had very good weather, only excessively hot, all the way upon
our own coast, till we came to the height of Cape St. Augustino; from whence,
keeping further off at sea, we lost sight of land, and steered as if we were
bound for the isle Fernando de Noronha, holding our course N.E. by N., and
leaving those isles on the east. In this course we passed the line in about
twelve days’ time, and were, by our last observation, in seven degrees
twenty-two minutes northern latitude, when a violent tornado, or hurricane,
took us quite out of our knowledge. It began from the south-east, came about to
the north-west, and then settled in the north-east; from whence it blew in such
a terrible manner, that for twelve days together we could do nothing but drive,
and, scudding away before it, let it carry us whither fate and the fury of the
winds directed; and, during these twelve days, I need not say that I expected
every day to be swallowed up; nor, indeed, did any in the ship expect to save
their lives.
In this distress we
had, besides the terror of the storm, one of our men die of the calenture, and
one man and the boy washed overboard. About the twelfth day, the weather
abating a little, the master made an observation as well as he could, and found
that he was in about eleven degrees north latitude, but that he was twenty-two
degrees of longitude difference west from Cape St. Augustino; so that he found
he was upon the coast of Guiana, or the north part of Brazil, beyond the river
Amazon, toward that of the river Orinoco, commonly called the Great River; and
began to consult with me what course he should take, for the ship was leaky, and
very much disabled, and he was going directly back to the coast of Brazil.
I was positively
against that; and looking over the charts of the sea-coast of America with him,
we concluded there was no inhabited country for us to have recourse to till we
came within the circle of the Caribbee Islands, and therefore resolved to stand
away for Barbadoes; which, by keeping off at sea, to avoid the indraft of the
Bay or Gulf of Mexico, we might easily perform, as we hoped, in about fifteen
days’ sail; whereas we could not possibly make our voyage to the coast of
Africa without some assistance both to our ship and to ourselves.
With this design we
changed our course, and steered away N.W. by W., in order to reach some of our
English islands, where I hoped for relief. But our voyage was otherwise
determined; for, being in the latitude of twelve degrees eighteen minutes, a
second storm came upon us, which carried us away with the same impetuosity
westward, and drove us so out of the way of all human commerce, that, had all
our lives been saved as to the sea, we were rather in danger of being devoured
by savages than ever returning to our own country.
In this distress, the
wind still blowing very hard, one of our men early in the morning cried out,
"Land!" and we had no sooner run out of the cabin to look out, in
hopes of seeing whereabouts in the world we were, than the ship struck upon a
sand, and in a moment her motion being so stopped, the sea broke over her in
such a manner that we expected we should all have perished immediately; and we
were immediately driven into our close quarters, to shelter us from the very
foam and spray of the sea.
It is not easy for any
one who has not been in the like condition to describe or conceive the
consternation of men in such circumstances. We knew nothing where we were, or
upon what land it was we were driven - whether an island or the main, whether
inhabited or not inhabited. As the rage of the wind was still great, though
rather less than at first, we could not so much as hope to have the ship hold
many minutes without breaking into pieces, unless the winds, by a kind of
miracle, should turn immediately about. In a word, we sat looking upon one
another, and expecting death every moment, and every man, accordingly,
preparing for another world; for there was little or nothing more for us to do
in this. That which was our present comfort, and all the comfort we had, was
that, contrary to our expectation, the ship did not break yet, and that the
master said the wind began to abate.
Now, though we thought
that the wind did a little abate, yet the ship having thus struck upon the
sand, and sticking too fast for us to expect her getting off, we were in a
dreadful condition indeed, and had nothing to do but to think of saving our lives
as well as we could. We had a boat at our stern just before the storm, but she
was first staved by dashing against the ship’s rudder, and in the next place
she broke away, and either sunk or was driven off to sea; so there was no hope
from her. We had another boat on board, but how to get her off into the sea was
a doubtful thing. However, there was no time to debate, for we fancied that the
ship would break in pieces every minute, and some told us she was actually
broken already.
In this distress the mate
of our vessel laid hold of the boat, and with the help of the rest of the men
got her slung over the ship’s side; and getting all into her, let go, and
committed ourselves, being eleven in number, to God’s mercy and the wild sea;
for though the storm was abated considerably, yet the sea ran dreadfully high
upon the shore, and might be well called den wild zee, as the Dutch call the
sea in a storm.
And now our case was
very dismal indeed; for we all saw plainly that the sea went so high that the
boat could not live, and that we should be inevitably drowned. As to making
sail, we had none, nor if we had could we have done anything with it; so we
worked at the oar towards the land, though with heavy hearts, like men going to
execution; for we all knew that when the boat came near the shore she would be
dashed in a thousand pieces by the breach of the sea. However, we committed our
souls to God in the most earnest manner; and the wind driving us towards the
shore, we hastened our destruction with our own hands, pulling as well as we
could towards land.
What the shore was,
whether rock or sand, whether steep or shoal, we knew not. The only hope that
could rationally give us the least shadow of expectation was, if we might find
some bay or gulf, or the mouth of some river, where by great chance we might
have run our boat in, or got under the lee of the land, and perhaps made smooth
water. But there was nothing like this appeared; but as we made nearer and
nearer the shore, the land looked more frightful than the sea.
After we had rowed, or
rather driven about a league and a half, as we reckoned it, a raging wave,
mountain-like, came rolling astern of us, and plainly bade us expect the coup
de grace. It took us with such a fury, that it overset the boat at once; and
separating us as well from the boat as from one another, gave us no time to
say, "O God!" for we were all swallowed up in a moment.
Nothing can describe
the confusion of thought which I felt when I sank into the water; for though I
swam very well, yet I could not deliver myself from the waves so as to draw
breath, till that wave having driven me, or rather carried me, a vast way on
towards the shore, and having spent itself, went back, and left me upon the
land almost dry, but half dead with the water I took in. I had so much presence
of mind, as well as breath left, that seeing myself nearer the mainland than I
expected, I got upon my feet, and endeavoured to make on towards the land as
fast as I could before another wave should return and take me up again; but I
soon found it was impossible to avoid it; for I saw the sea come after me as
high as a great hill, and as furious as an enemy, which I had no means or
strength to contend with: my business was to hold my breath, and raise myself
upon the water if I could; and so, by swimming, to preserve my breathing, and
pilot myself towards the shore, if possible, my greatest concern now being that
the sea, as it would carry me a great way towards the shore when it came on,
might not carry me back again with it when it gave back towards the sea.
The wave that came upon
me again buried me at once twenty or thirty feet deep in its own body, and I
could feel myself carried with a mighty force and swiftness towards the shore -
a very great way; but I held my breath, and assisted myself to swim still
forward with all my might. I was ready to burst with holding my breath, when,
as I felt myself rising up, so, to my immediate relief, I found my head and
hands shoot out above the surface of the water; and though it was not two
seconds of time that I could keep myself so, yet it relieved me greatly, gave
me breath, and new courage. I was covered again with water a good while, but
not so long but I held it out; and finding the water had spent itself, and
began to return, I struck forward against the return of the waves, and felt
ground again with my feet. I stood still a few moments to recover breath, and
till the waters went from me, and then took to my heels and ran with what
strength I had further towards the shore. But neither would this deliver me
from the fury of the sea, which came pouring in after me again; and twice more
I was lifted up by the waves and carried forward as before, the shore being
very flat.
The last time of these
two had well-nigh been fatal to me, for the sea having hurried me along as
before, landed me, or rather dashed me, against a piece of rock, and that with
such force, that it left me senseless, and indeed helpless, as to my own deliverance;
for the blow taking my side and breast, beat the breath as it were quite out of
my body; and had it returned again immediately, I must have been strangled in
the water; but I recovered a little before the return of the waves, and seeing
I should be covered again with the water, I resolved to hold fast by a piece of
the rock, and so to hold my breath, if possible, till the wave went back. Now,
as the waves were not so high as at first, being nearer land, I held my hold
till the wave abated, and then fetched another run, which brought me so near
the shore that the next wave, though it went over me, yet did not so swallow me
up as to carry me away; and the next run I took, I got to the mainland, where,
to my great comfort, I clambered up the cliffs of the shore and sat me down
upon the grass, free from danger and quite out of the reach of the water.
I was now landed and
safe on shore, and began to look up and thank God that my life was saved, in a
case wherein there was some minutes before scarce any room to hope. I believe
it is impossible to express, to the life, what the ecstasies and transports of
the soul are, when it is so saved, as I may say, out of the very grave: and I
do not wonder now at the custom, when a malefactor, who has the halter about his
neck, is tied up, and just going to be turned off, and has a reprieve brought
to him - I say, I do not wonder that they bring a surgeon with it, to let him
blood that very moment they tell him of it, that the surprise may not drive the
animal spirits from the heart and overwhelm him.
"For sudden joys, like griefs, confound at first."
I walked about on the
shore lifting up my hands, and my whole being, as I may say, wrapped up in a
contemplation of my deliverance; making a thousand gestures and motions, which
I cannot describe; reflecting upon all my comrades that were drowned, and that
there should not be one soul saved but myself; for, as for them, I never saw
them afterwards, or any sign of them, except three of their hats, one cap, and
two shoes that were not fellows.
I cast my eye to the
stranded vessel, when, the breach and froth of the sea being so big, I could
hardly see it, it lay so far of; and considered, Lord! how was it possible I
could get on shore
After I had solaced my
mind with the comfortable part of my condition, I began to look round me, to
see what kind of place I was in, and what was next to be done; and I soon found
my comforts abate, and that, in a word, I had a dreadful deliverance; for I was
wet, had no clothes to shift me, nor anything either to eat or drink to comfort
me; neither did I see any prospect before me but that of perishing with hunger
or being devoured by wild beasts; and that which was particularly afflicting to
me was, that I had no weapon, either to hunt and kill any creature for my
sustenance, or to defend myself against any other creature that might desire to
kill me for theirs. In a word, I had nothing about me but a knife, a
tobacco-pipe, and a little tobacco in a box. This was all my provisions; and this
threw me into such terrible agonies of mind, that for a while I ran about like
a madman. Night coming upon me, I began with a heavy heart to consider what
would be my lot if there were any ravenous beasts in that country, as at night
they always come abroad for their prey.
All the remedy that
offered to my thoughts at that time was to get up into a thick bushy tree like
a fir, but thorny, which grew near me, and where I resolved to sit all night,
and consider the next day what death I should die, for as yet I saw no prospect
of life. I walked about a furlong from the shore, to see if I could find any
fresh water to drink, which I did, to my great joy; and having drank, and put a
little tobacco into my mouth to prevent hunger, I went to the tree, and getting
up into it, endeavoured to place myself so that if I should sleep I might not
fall. And having cut me a short stick, like a truncheon, for my defence, I took
up my lodging; and having been excessively fatigued, I fell fast asleep, and
slept as comfortably as, I believe, few could have done in my condition, and
found myself more refreshed with it than, I think, I ever was on such an
occasion.
WHEN I waked it was
broad day, the weather clear, and the storm abated, so that the sea did not
rage and swell as before. But that which surprised me most was, that the ship
was lifted off in the night from the sand where she lay by the swelling of the
tide, and was driven up almost as far as the rock which I at first mentioned,
where I had been so bruised by the wave dashing me against it. This being
within about a mile from the shore where I was, and the ship seeming to stand
upright still, I wished myself on board, that at least I might save some
necessary things for my use.
When I came down from
my apartment in the tree, I looked about me again, and the first thing I found
was the boat, which lay, as the wind and the sea had tossed her up, upon the
land, about two miles on my right hand. I walked as far as I could upon the
shore to have got to her; but found a neck or inlet of water between me and the
boat which was about half a mile broad; so I came back for the present, being
more intent upon getting at the ship, where I hoped to find something for my
present subsistence.
A little after noon I
found the sea very calm, and the tide ebbed so far out that I could come within
a quarter of a mile of the ship. And here I found a fresh renewing of my grief;
for I saw evidently that if we had kept on board we had been all safe - that is
to say, we had all got safe on shore, and I had not been so miserable as to be
left entirety destitute of all comfort and company as I now was. This forced
tears to my eyes again; but as there was little relief in that, I resolved, if
possible, to get to the ship; so I pulled off my clothes - for the weather was
hot to extremity - and took the water. But when I came to the ship my
difficulty was still greater to know how to get on board; for, as she lay
aground, and high out of the water, there was nothing within my reach to lay
hold of. I swam round her twice, and the second time I spied a small piece of
rope, which I wondered I did not see at first, hung down by the fore-chains so
low, as that with great difficulty I got hold of it, and by the help of that
rope I got up into the forecastle of the ship. Here I found that the ship was
bulged, and had a great deal of water in her hold, but that she lay so on the
side of a bank of hard sand, or, rather earth, that her stern lay lifted up
upon the bank, and her head low, almost to the water. By this means all her
quarter was free, and all that was in that part was dry; for you may be sure my
first work was to search, and to see what was spoiled and what was free. And,
first, I found that all the ship’s provisions were dry and untouched by the
water, and being very well disposed to eat, I went to the bread room and filled
my pockets with biscuit, and ate it as I went about other things, for I had no
time to lose. I also found some rum in the great cabin, of which I took a large
dram, and which I had, indeed, need enough of to spirit me for what was before
me. Now I wanted nothing but a boat to furnish myself with many things which I
foresaw would be very necessary to me.
It was in vain to sit
still and wish for what was not to be had; and this extremity roused my
application. We had several spare yards, and two or three large spars of wood,
and a spare topmast or two in the ship; I resolved to fall to work with these,
and I flung as many of them overboard as I could manage for their weight, tying
every one with a rope, that they might not drive away. When this was done I
went down the ship’s side, and pulling them to me, I tied four of them together
at both ends as well as I could, in the form of a raft, and laying two or three
short pieces of plank upon them crossways, I found I could walk upon it very
well, but that it was not able to bear any great weight, the pieces being too
light. So I went to work, and with a carpenter’s saw I cut a spare topmast into
three lengths, and added them to my raft, with a great deal of labour and
pains. But the hope of furnishing myself with necessaries encouraged me to go
beyond what I should have been able to have done upon another occasion.
My raft was now strong
enough to bear any reasonable weight. My next care was what to load it with,
and how to preserve what I laid upon it from the surf of the sea; but I was not
long considering this. I first laid all the planks or boards upon it that I
could get, and having considered well what I most wanted, I got three of the
seamen’s chests, which I had broken open, and emptied, and lowered them down
upon my raft; the first of these I filled with provisions - viz. bread, rice,
three Dutch cheeses, five pieces of dried goat’s flesh (which we lived much
upon), and a little remainder of European corn, which had been laid by for some
fowls which we brought to sea with us, but the fowls were killed. There had
been some barley and wheat together; but, to my great disappointment, I found
afterwards that the rats had eaten or spoiled it all. As for liquors, I found
several, cases of bottles belonging to our skipper, in which were some cordial
waters; and, in all, about five or six gallons of rack. These I stowed by
themselves, there being no need to put them into the chest, nor any room for
them. While I was doing this, I found the tide begin to flow, though very calm;
and I had the mortification to see my coat, shirt, and waistcoat, which I had
left on the shore, upon the sand, swim away. As for my breeches, which were
only linen, and open- kneed, I swam on board in them and my stockings. However,
this set me on rummaging for clothes, of which I found enough, but took no more
than I wanted for present use, for I had others things which my eye was more
upon - as, first, tools to work with on shore. And it was after long searching
that I found out the carpenter’s chest, which was, indeed, a very useful prize
to me, and much more valuable than a shipload of gold would have been at that
time. I got it down to my raft, whole as it was, without losing time to look
into it, for I knew in general what it contained.
My next care was for
some ammunition and arms. There were two very good fowling-pieces in the great
cabin, and two pistols. These I secured first, with some powder-horns and a
small bag of shot, and two old rusty swords. I knew there were three barrels of
powder in the ship, but knew not where our gunner had stowed them; but with
much search I found them, two of them dry and good, the third had taken water.
Those two I got to my raft with the arms. And now I thought myself pretty well
freighted, and began to think how I should get to shore with them, having
neither sail, oar, nor rudder; and the least capful of wind would have overset all
my navigation.
I had three
encouragements - 1st, a smooth, calm sea; 2ndly, the tide rising, and setting
in to the shore; 3rdly, what little wind there was blew me towards the land.
And thus, having found two or three broken oars belonging to the boat - and,
besides the tools which were in the chest, I found two saws, an axe, and a
hammer; with this cargo I put to sea. For a mile or thereabouts my raft went
very well, only that I found it drive a little distant from the place where I
had landed before; by which I perceived that there was some indraft of the
water, and consequently I hoped to find some creek or river there, which I
might make use of as a port to get to land with my cargo.
As I imagined, so it
was. There appeared before me a little opening of the land, and I found a
strong current of the tide set into it; so I guided my raft as well as I could,
to keep in the middle of the stream.
But here I had like to
have suffered a second shipwreck, which, if I had, I think verily would have
broken my heart; for, knowing nothing of the coast, my raft ran aground at one
end of it upon a shoal, and not being aground at the other end, it wanted but a
little that all my cargo had slipped off towards the end that was afloat, and
to fallen into the water. I did my utmost, by setting my back against the
chests, to keep them in their places, but could not thrust off the raft with
all my strength; neither durst I stir from the posture I was in; but holding up
the chests with all my might, I stood in that manner near half-an-hour, in
which time the rising of the water brought me a little more upon a level; and a
little after, the water still-rising, my raft floated again, and I thrust her
off with the oar I had into the channel, and then driving up higher, I at length
found myself in the mouth of a little river, with land on both sides, and a
strong current of tide running up. I looked on both sides for a proper place to
get to shore, for I was not willing to be driven too high up the river: hoping
in time to see some ships at sea, and therefore resolved to place myself as
near the coast as I could.
At length I spied a
little cove on the right shore of the creek, to which with great pain and
difficulty I guided my raft, and at last got so near that, reaching ground with
my oar, I could thrust her directly in. But here I had like to have dipped all
my cargo into the sea again; for that shore lying pretty steep - that is to say
sloping - there was no place to land, but where one end of my float, if it ran
on shore, would lie so high, and the other sink lower, as before, that it would
endanger my cargo again. All that I could do was to wait till the tide was at
the highest, keeping the raft with my oar like an anchor, to hold the side of
it fast to the shore, near a flat piece of ground, which I expected the water
would flow over; and so it did. As soon as I found water enough - for my raft
drew about a foot of water - I thrust her upon that flat piece of ground, and
there fastened or moored her, by sticking my two broken oars into the ground,
one on one side near one end, and one on the other side near the other end; and
thus I lay till the water ebbed away, and left my raft and all my cargo safe on
shore.
My next work was to
view the country, and seek a proper place for my habitation, and where to stow
my goods to secure them from whatever might happen. Where I was, I yet knew
not; whether on the continent or on an island; whether inhabited or not
inhabited; whether in danger of wild beasts or not. There was a hill not above
a mile from me, which rose up very steep and high, and which seemed to overtop
some other hills, which lay as in a ridge from it northward. I took out one of
the fowling-pieces, and one of the pistols, and a horn of powder; and thus
armed, I travelled for discovery up to the top of that hill, where, after I had
with great labour and difficulty got to the top, I saw any fate, to my great
affliction - viz. that I was in an island environed every way with the sea: no
land to be seen except some rocks, which lay a great way off; and two small
islands, less than this, which lay about three leagues to the west.
I found also that the
island I was in was barren, and, as I saw good reason to believe, uninhabited
except by wild beasts, of whom, however, I saw none. Yet I saw abundance of
fowls, but knew not their kinds; neither when I killed them could I tell what
was fit for food, and what not. At my coming back, I shot at a great bird which
I saw sitting upon a tree on the side of a great wood. I believe it was the
first gun that had been fired there since the creation of the world. I had no
sooner fired, than from all parts of the wood there arose an innumerable number
of fowls, of many sorts, making a confused screaming and crying, and every one
according to his usual note, but not one of them of any kind that I knew. As
for the creature I killed, I took it to be a kind of hawk, its colour and beak
resembling it, but it had no talons or claws more than common. Its flesh was
carrion, and fit for nothing.
Contented with this
discovery, I came back to my raft, and fell to work to bring my cargo on shore,
which took me up the rest of that day. What to do with myself at night I knew
not, nor indeed where to rest, for I was afraid to lie down on the ground, not
knowing but some wild beast might devour me, though, as I afterwards found,
there was really no need for those fears.
However, as well as I
could, I barricaded myself round with the chest and boards that I had brought
on shore, and made a kind of hut for that night’s lodging. As for food, I yet
saw not which way to supply myself, except that I had seen two or three
creatures like hares run out of the wood where I shot the fowl.
I now began to consider
that I might yet get a great many things out of the ship which would be useful
to me, and particularly some of the rigging and sails, and such other things as
might come to land; and I resolved to make another voyage on board the vessel,
if possible. And as I knew that the first storm that blew must necessarily
break her all in pieces, I resolved to set all other things apart till I had
got everything out of the ship that I could get. Then I called a council - that
is to say in my thoughts - whether I should take back the raft; but this
appeared impracticable: so I resolved to go as before, when the tide was down;
and I did so, only that I stripped before I went from my hut, having nothing on
but my chequered shirt, a pair of linen drawers, and a pair of pumps on my
feet.
I got on board the ship
as before, and prepared a second raft; and, having had experience of the first,
I neither made this so unwieldy, nor loaded it so hard, but yet I brought away
several things very useful to me; as first, in the carpenters stores I found
two or three bags full of nails and spikes, a great screw- jack, a dozen or two
of hatchets, and, above all, that most useful thing called a grindstone. All
these I secured, together with several things belonging to the gunner,
particularly two or three iron crows, and two barrels of musket bullets, seven
muskets, another fowling-piece, with some small quantity of powder more; a
large bagful of small shot, and a great roll of sheet-lead; but this last was
so heavy, I could not hoist it up to get it over the ship’s side.
Besides these things, I
took all the men’s clothes that I could find, and a spare fore-topsail, a
hammock, and some bedding; and with this I loaded my second raft, and brought
them all safe on shore, to my very great comfort.
I was under some
apprehension, during my absence from the land, that at least my provisions
might be devoured on shore: but when I came back I found no sign of any
visitor; only there sat a creature like a wild cat upon one of the chests,
which, when I came towards it, ran away a little distance, and then stood
still. She sat very composed and unconcerned, and looked full in my face, as if
she had a mind to be acquainted with me. I presented my gun at her, but, as she
did not understand it, she was perfectly unconcerned at it, nor did she offer
to stir away; upon which I tossed her a bit of biscuit, though by the way, I
was not very free of it, for my store was not great: however, I spared her a
bit, I say, and she went to it, smelled at it, and ate it, and looked (as if
pleased) for more; but I thanked her, and could spare no more: so she marched
off.
Having got my second
cargo on shore - though I was fain to open the barrels of powder, and bring
them by parcels, for they were too heavy, being large casks - I went to work to
make me a little tent with the sail and some poles which I cut for that
purpose: and into this tent I brought everything that I knew would spoil either
with rain or sun; and I piled all the empty chests and casks up in a circle
round the tent, to fortify it from any sudden attempt, either from man or
beast.
When I had done this, I
blocked up the door of the tent with some boards within, and an empty chest set
up on end without; and spreading one of the beds upon the ground, laying my two
pistols just at my head, and my gun at length by me, I went to bed for the
first time, and slept very quietly all night, for I was very weary and heavy;
for the night before I had slept little, and had laboured very hard all day to
fetch all those things from the ship, and to get them on shore.
I had the biggest
magazine of all kinds now that ever was laid up, I believe, for one man: but I
was not satisfied still, for while the ship sat upright in that posture, I
thought I ought to get everything out of her that I could; so every day at low
water I went on board, and brought away something or other; but particularly
the third time I went I brought away as much of the rigging as I could, as also
all the small ropes and rope-twine I could get, with a piece of spare canvas,
which was to mend the sails upon occasion, and the barrel of wet gunpowder. In
a word, I brought away all the sails, first and last; only that I was fain to
cut them in pieces, and bring as much at a time as I could, for they were no more
useful to be sails, but as mere canvas only.
But that which
comforted me more still, was, that last of all, after I had made five or six
such voyages as these, and thought I had nothing more to expect from the ship
that was worth my meddling with - I say, after all this, I found a great
hogshead of bread, three large runlets of rum, or spirits, a box of sugar, and
a barrel of fine flour; this was surprising to me, because I had given over
expecting any more provisions, except what was spoiled by the water. I soon
emptied the hogshead of the bread, and wrapped it up, parcel by parcel, in
pieces of the sails, which I cut out; and, in a word, I got all this safe on
shore also.
The next day I made
another voyage, and now, having plundered the ship of what was portable and fit
to hand out, I began with the cables. Cutting the great cable into pieces, such
as I could move, I got two cables and a hawser on shore, with all the ironwork
I could get; and having cut down the spritsail-yard, and the mizzen- yard, and
everything I could, to make a large raft, I loaded it with all these heavy
goods, and came away. But my good luck began now to leave me; for this raft was
so unwieldy, and so overladen, that, after I had entered the little cove where
I had landed the rest of my goods, not being able to guide it so handily as I
did the other, it overset, and threw me and all my cargo into the water. As for
myself, it was no great harm, for I was near the shore; but as to my cargo, it
was a great part of it lost, especially the iron, which I expected would have
been of great use to me; however, when the tide was out, I got most of the
pieces of the cable ashore, and some of the iron, though with infinite labour;
for I was fain to dip for it into the water, a work which fatigued me very
much. After this, I went every day on board, and brought away what I could get.
I had been now thirteen
days on shore, and had been eleven times on board the ship, in which time I had
brought away all that one pair of hands could well be supposed capable to
bring; though I believe verily, had the calm weather held, I should have
brought away the whole ship, piece by piece. But preparing the twelfth time to
go on board, I found the wind began to rise: however, at low water I went on
board, and though I thought I had rummaged the cabin so effectually that
nothing more could be found, yet I discovered a locker with drawers in it, in
one of which I found two or three razors, and one pair of large scissors, with
some ten or a dozen of good knives and forks: in another I found about
thirty-six pounds value in money - some European coin, some Brazil, some pieces
of eight, some gold, and some silver.
I smiled to myself at
the sight of this money: "O drug!" said I, aloud, "what art thou
good for? Thou art not worth to me - no, not the taking off the ground; one of
those knives is worth all this heap; I have no manner of use for thee - e’en
remain where thou art, and go to the bottom as a creature whose life is not
worth saying." However, upon second thoughts I took it away; and wrapping
all this in a piece of canvas, I began to think of making another raft; but
while I was preparing this, I found the sky overcast, and the wind began to
rise, and in a quarter of an hour it blew a fresh gale from the shore. It
presently occurred to me that it was in vain to pretend to make a raft with the
wind offshore; and that it was my business to be gone before the tide of flood
began, otherwise I might not be able to reach the shore at all. Accordingly, I
let myself down into the water, and swam across the channel, which lay between
the ship and the sands, and even that with difficulty enough, partly with the
weight of the things I had about me, and partly the roughness of the water; for
the wind rose very hastily, and before it was quite high water it blew a storm.
But I had got home to
my little tent, where I lay, with all my wealth about me, very secure. It blew
very hard all night, and in the morning, when I looked out, behold, no more
ship was to be seen! I was a little surprised, but recovered myself with the
satisfactory reflection that I had lost no time, nor abated any diligence, to
get everything out of her that could be useful to me; and that, indeed, there
was little left in her that I was able to bring away, if I had had more time.
I now gave over any
more thoughts of the ship, or of anything out of her, except what might drive
on shore from her wreck; as, indeed, divers pieces of her afterwards did; but
those things were of small use to me.
My thoughts were now
wholly employed about securing myself against either savages, if any should
appear, or wild beasts, if any were in the island; and I had many thoughts of
the method how to do this, and what kind of dwelling to make - whether I should
make me a cave in the earth, or a tent upon the earth; and, in short, I
resolved upon both; the manner and description of which, it may not be improper
to give an account of.
I soon found the place
I was in was not fit for my settlement, because it was upon a low, moorish
ground, near the sea, and I believed it would not be wholesome, and more
particularly because there was no fresh water near it; so I resolved to find a
more healthy and more convenient spot of ground.
I consulted several
things in my situation, which I found would he proper for me: 1st, health and
fresh water, I just now mentioned; 2ndly, shelter from the heat of the sun;
3rdly, security from ravenous creatures, whether man or beast; 4thly, a view to
the sea, that if God sent any ship in sight, I might not lose any advantage for
my deliverance, of which I was not willing to banish all my expectation yet.
In search of a place
proper for this, I found a little plain on the side of a rising hill, whose
front towards this little plain was steep as a house-side, so that nothing
could come down upon me from the top. On the one side of the rock there was a
hollow place, worn a little way in, like the entrance or door of a cave but
there was not really any cave or way into the rock at all.
On the flat of the
green, just before this hollow place, I resolved to pitch my tent. This plain
was not above a hundred yards broad, and about twice as long, and lay like a
green before my door; and, at the end of it, descended irregularly every way
down into the low ground by the seaside. It was on the N.N.W. side of the hill;
so that it was sheltered from the heat every day, till it came to a W. and by
S. sun, or thereabouts, which, in those countries, is near the setting.
Before I set up my tent
I drew a half-circle before the hollow place, which took in about ten yards in
its semi-diameter from the rock, and twenty yards in its diameter from its
beginning and ending.
In this half-circle I
pitched two rows of strong stakes, driving them into the ground till they stood
very firm like piles, the biggest end being out of the ground above five feet
and a half, and sharpened on the top. The two rows did not stand above six
inches from one another.
Then I took the pieces
of cable which I had cut in the ship, and laid them in rows, one upon another,
within the circle, between these two rows of stakes, up to the top, placing
other stakes in the inside, leaning against them, about two feet and a half
high, like a spur to a post; and this fence was so strong, that neither man nor
beast could get into it or over it. This cost me a great deal of time and
labour, especially to cut the piles in the woods, bring them to the place, and
drive them into the earth.
The entrance into this
place I made to be, not by a door, but by a short ladder to go over the top;
which ladder, when I was in, I lifted over after me; and so I was completely
fenced in and fortified, as I thought, from all the world, and consequently
slept secure in the night, which otherwise I could not have done; though, as it
appeared afterwards, there was no need of all this caution from the enemies
that I apprehended danger from.
Into this fence or
fortress, with infinite labour, I carried all my riches, all my provisions,
ammunition, and stores, of which you have the account above; and I made a large
tent, which to preserve me from the rains that in one part of the year are very
violent there, I made double - one smaller tent within, and one larger tent
above it; and covered the uppermost with a large tarpaulin, which I had saved
among the sails.
And now I lay no more
for a while in the bed which I had brought on shore, but in a hammock, which
was indeed a very good one, and belonged to the mate of the ship.
Into this tent I
brought all my provisions, and everything that would spoil by the wet; and
having thus enclosed all my goods, I made up the entrance, which till now I had
left open, and so passed and repassed, as I said, by a short ladder.
When I had done this, I
began to work my way into the rock, and bringing all the earth and stones that
I dug down out through my tent, I laid them up within my fence, in the nature
of a terrace, so that it raised the ground within about a foot and a half; and
thus I made me a cave, just behind my tent, which served me like a cellar to my
house.
It cost me much labour
and many days before all these things were brought to perfection; and therefore
I must go back to some other things which took up some of my thoughts. At the
same time it happened, after I had laid my scheme for the setting up my tent,
and making the cave, that a storm of rain falling from a thick, dark cloud, a
sudden flash of lightning happened, and after that a great clap of thunder, as
is naturally the effect of it. I was not so much surprised with the lightning
as I was with the thought which darted into my mind as swift as the lightning
itself - Oh, my powder! My very heart sank within me when I thought that, at
one blast, all my powder might be destroyed; on which, not my defence only, but
the providing my food, as I thought, entirely depended. I was nothing near so
anxious about my own danger, though, had the powder took fire, I should never
have known who had hurt me.
Such impression did
this make upon me, that after the storm was over I laid aside all my works, my
building and fortifying, and applied myself to make bags and boxes, to separate
the powder, and to keep it a little and a little in a parcel, in the hope that,
whatever might come, it might not all take fire at once; and to keep it so apart
that it should not be possible to make one part fire another. I finished this
work in about a fortnight; and I think my powder, which in all was about two
hundred and forty pounds weight, was divided in not less than a hundred
parcels. As to the barrel that had been wet, I did not apprehend any danger
from that; so I placed it in my new cave, which, in my fancy, I called my
kitchen; and the rest I hid up and down in holes among the rocks, so that no
wet might come to it, marking very carefully where I laid it.
In the interval of time
while this was doing, I went out once at least every day with my gun, as well
to divert myself as to see if I could kill anything fit for food; and, as near
as I could, to acquaint myself with what the island produced. The first time I
went out, I presently discovered that there were goats in the island, which was
a great satisfaction to me; but then it was attended with this misfortune to me
- viz. that they were so shy, so subtle, and so swift of foot, that it was the
most difficult thing in the world to come at them; but I was not discouraged at
this, not doubting but I might now and then shoot one, as it soon happened; for
after I had found their haunts a little, I laid wait in this manner for them: I
observed if they saw me in the valleys, though they were upon the rocks, they
would run away, as in a terrible fright; but if they were feeding in the
valleys, and I was upon the rocks, they took no notice of me; from whence I
concluded that, by the position of their optics, their sight was so directed
downward that they did not readily see objects that were above them; so
afterwards I took this method - I always climbed the rocks first, to get above
them, and then had frequently a fair mark.
The first shot I made
among these creatures, I killed a she-goat, which had a little kid by her,
which she gave suck to, which grieved me heartily; for when the old one fell,
the kid stood stock still by her, till I came and took her up; and not only so,
but when I carried the old one with me, upon my shoulders, the kid followed me
quite to my enclosure; upon which I laid down the dam, and took the kid in my
arms, and carried it over my pale, in hopes to have bred it up tame; but it
would not eat; so I was forced to kill it and eat it myself. These two supplied
me with flesh a great while, for I ate sparingly, and saved my provisions, my
bread especially, as much as possibly I could.
Having now fixed my
habitation, I found it absolutely necessary to provide a place to make a fire
in, and fuel to burn: and what I did for that, and also how I enlarged my cave,
and what conveniences I made, I shall give a full account of in its place; but
I must now give some little account of myself, and of my thoughts about living,
which, it may well be supposed, were not a few.
I had a dismal prospect
of my condition; for as I was not cast away upon that island without being
driven, as is said, by a violent storm, quite out of the course of our intended
voyage, and a great way, viz. some hundreds of leagues, out of the ordinary
course of the trade of mankind, I had great reason to consider it as a
determination of Heaven, that in this desolate place, and in this desolate
manner, I should end my life. The tears would run plentifully down my face when
I made these reflections; and sometimes I would expostulate with myself why
Providence should thus completely ruin His creatures, and render them so
absolutely miserable; so without help, abandoned, so entirely depressed, that
it could hardly be rational to be thankful for such a life.
But something always
returned swift upon me to check these thoughts, and to reprove me; and
particularly one day, walking with my gun in my hand by the seaside, I was very
pensive upon the subject of my present condition, when reason, as it were,
expostulated with me the other way, thus: "Well, you are in a desolate
condition, it is true; but, pray remember, where are the rest of you? Did not
you come, eleven of you in the boat? Where are the ten? Why were they not
saved, and you lost? Why were you singled out? Is it better to be here or
there?" And then I pointed to the sea. All evils are to be considered with
the good that is in them, and with what worse attends them.
Then it occurred to me
again, how well I was furnished for my subsistence, and what would have been my
case if it had not happened (which was a hundred thousand to one) that the ship
floated from the place where she first struck, and was driven so near to the
shore that I had time to get all these things out of her; what would have been
my case, if I had been forced to have lived in the condition in which I at
first came on shore, without necessaries of life, or necessaries to supply and
procure them? "Particularly," said I, aloud (though to myself),
"what should I have done without a gun, without ammunition, without any
tools to make anything, or to work with, without clothes, bedding, a tent, or
any manner of covering?" and that now I had all these to sufficient
quantity, and was in a fair way to provide myself in such a manner as to live
without my gun, when my ammunition was spent: so that I had a tolerable view of
subsisting, without any want, as long as I lived; for I considered from the
beginning how I would provide for the accidents that might happen, and for the
time that was to come, even not only after my ammunition should be spent, but
even after my health and strength should decay.
I confess I had not
entertained any notion of my ammunition being destroyed at one blast - I mean
my powder being blown up by lightning; and this made the thoughts of it so
surprising to me, when it lightened and thundered, as I observed just now.
And now being about to
enter into a melancholy relation of a scene of silent life, such, perhaps, as
was never heard of in the world before, I shall take it from its beginning, and
continue it in its order. It was by my account the 30th of September, when, in
the manner as above said, I first set foot upon this horrid island; when the
sun, being to us in its autumnal equinox, was almost over my head; for I
reckoned myself, by observation, to be in the latitude of nine degrees
twenty-two minutes north of the line.
After I had been there
about ten or twelve days, it came into my thoughts that I should lose my reckoning
of time for want of books, and pen and ink, and should even forget the Sabbath
days; but to prevent this, I cut with my knife upon a large post, in capital
letters - and making it into a great cross, I set it up on the shore where I
first landed - "I came on shore here on the 30th September 1659."
Upon the sides of this
square post I cut every day a notch with my knife, and every seventh notch was
as long again as the rest, and every first day of the month as long again as
that long one; and thus I kept my calendar, or weekly, monthly, and yearly
reckoning of time.
In the next place, we
are to observe that among the many things which I brought out of the ship, in
the several voyages which, as above mentioned, I made to it, I got several
things of less value, but not at all less useful to me, which I omitted setting
down before; as, in particular, pens, ink, and paper, several parcels in the
captain’s, mate’s, gunner’s and carpenter’s keeping; three or four compasses,
some mathematical instruments, dials, perspectives, charts, and books of
navigation, all which I huddled together, whether I might want them or no;
also, I found three very good Bibles, which came to me in my cargo from
England, and which I had packed up among my things; some Portuguese books also;
and among them two or three Popish prayer-books, and several other books, all
which I carefully secured. And I must not forget that we had in the ship a dog
and two cats, of whose eminent history I may have occasion to say something in
its place; for I carried both the cats with me; and as for the dog, he jumped
out of the ship of himself, and swam on shore to me the day after I went on
shore with my first cargo, and was a trusty servant to me many years; I wanted
nothing that he could fetch me, nor any company that he could make up to me; I
only wanted to have him talk to me, but that would not do. As I observed
before, I found pens, ink, and paper, and I husbanded them to the utmost; and I
shall show that while my ink lasted, I kept things very exact, but after that
was gone I could not, for I could not make any ink by any means that I could
devise.
And this put me in mind
that I wanted many things notwithstanding all that I had amassed together; and
of these, ink was one; as also a spade, pickaxe, and shovel, to dig or remove
the earth; needles, pins, and thread; as for linen, I soon learned to want that
without much difficulty.
This want of tools made
every work I did go on heavily; and it was near a whole year before I had
entirely finished my little pale, or surrounded my habitation. The piles, or
stakes, which were as heavy as I could well lift, were a long time in cutting
and preparing in the woods, and more, by far, in bringing home; so that I spent
sometimes two days in cutting and bringing home one of those posts, and a third
day in driving it into the ground; for which purpose I got a heavy piece of
wood at first, but at last bethought myself of one of the iron crows; which,
however, though I found it, made driving those posts or piles very laborious
and tedious work. But what need I have been concerned at the tediousness of
anything I had to do, seeing I had time enough to do it in? nor had I any other
employment, if that had been over, at least that I could foresee, except the
ranging the island to seek for food, which I did, more or less, every day.
I now began to consider
seriously my condition, and the circumstances I was reduced to; and I drew up
the state of my affairs in writing, not so much to leave them to any that were
to come after me - for I was likely to have but few heirs - as to deliver my
thoughts from daily poring over them, and afflicting my mind; and as my reason
began now to master my despondency, I began to comfort myself as well as I
could, and to set the good against the evil, that I might have something to
distinguish my case from worse; and I stated very impartially, like debtor and
creditor, the comforts I enjoyed against the miseries I suffered, thus:-
Evil : I am cast upon a
horrible, desolate island, void of all hope of recovery.
Good : But I am alive; and not
drowned, as all my ship’s company were.
Evil : I am singled out and
separated, as it were, from all the world, to be miserable.
Good : But I am singled out, too,
from all the ship’s crew, to be spared from death; and He that miraculously
saved me from death can deliver me from this condition.
Evil : I am divided from
mankind - a solitaire; one banished from human society.
Good : But I am not starved, and
perishing on a barren place, affording no sustenance.
Evil : I have no clothes to
cover me.
Good : But I am in a hot climate,
where, if I had clothes, I could hardly wear them.
Evil : I am without any
defence, or means to resist any violence of man or beast.
Good : But I am cast on an island
where I see no wild beasts to hurt me, as I saw on the coast of Africa; and
what if I had been shipwrecked there?
Evil : I have no soul to speak
to or relieve me.
Good : But God wonderfully sent
the ship in near enough to the shore, that I have got out as many necessary
things as will either supply my wants or enable me to supply myself, even as
long as I live.
Upon the whole, here
was an undoubted testimony that there was scarce any condition in the world so
miserable but there was something negative or something positive to be thankful
for in it; and let this stand as a direction from the experience of the most
miserable of all conditions in this world: that we may always find in it
something to comfort ourselves from, and to set, in the description of good and
evil, on the credit side of the account.
Having now brought my
mind a little to relish my condition, and given over looking out to sea, to see
if I could spy a ship - I say, giving over these things, I begun to apply
myself to arrange my way of living, and to make things as easy to me as I
could.
I have already
described my habitation, which was a tent under the side of a rock, surrounded
with a strong pale of posts and cables: but I might now rather call it a wall,
for I raised a kind of wall up against it of turfs, about two feet thick on the
outside; and after some time (I think it was a year and a half) I raised
rafters from it, leaning to the rock, and thatched or covered it with boughs of
trees, and such things as I could get, to keep out the rain; which I found at
some times of the year very violent.
I have already observed
how I brought all my goods into this pale, and into the cave which I had made
behind me. But I must observe, too, that at first this was a confused heap of
goods, which, as they lay in no order, so they took up all my place; I had no
room to turn myself: so I set myself to enlarge my cave, and work farther into
the earth; for it was a loose sandy rock, which yielded easily to the labour I
bestowed on it: and so when I found I was pretty safe as to beasts of prey, I
worked sideways, to the right hand, into the rock; and then, turning to the
right again, worked quite out, and made me a door to come out on the outside of
my pale or fortification. This gave me not only egress and regress, as it was a
back way to my tent and to my storehouse, but gave me room to store my goods.
And now I began to
apply myself to make such necessary things as I found I most wanted,
particularly a chair and a table; for without these I was not able to enjoy the
few comforts I had in the world; I could not write or eat, or do several
things, with so much pleasure without a table: so I went to work. And here I
must needs observe, that as reason is the substance and origin of the
mathematics, so by stating and squaring everything by reason, and by making the
most rational judgment of things, every man may be, in time, master of every
mechanic art. I had never handled a tool in my life; and yet, in time, by
labour, application, and contrivance, I found at last that I wanted nothing but
I could have made it, especially if I had had tools. However, I made abundance
of things, even without tools; and some with no more tools than an adze and a
hatchet, which perhaps were never made that way before, and that with infinite
labour. For example, if I wanted a board, I had no other way but to cut down a
tree, set it on an edge before me, and hew it flat on either side with my axe,
till I brought it to be thin as a plank, and then dub it smooth with my adze.
It is true, by this method I could make but one board out of a whole tree; but
this I had no remedy for but patience, any more than I had for the prodigious
deal of time and labour which it took me up to make a plank or board: but my
time or labour was little worth, and so it was as well employed one way as
another.
However, I made me a
table and a chair, as I observed above, in the first place; and this I did out
of the short pieces of boards that I brought on my raft from the ship. But when
I had wrought out some boards as above, I made large shelves, of the breadth of
a foot and a half, one over another all along one side of my cave, to lay all
my tools, nails and ironwork on; and, in a word, to separate everything at
large into their places, that I might come easily at them. I knocked pieces
into the wall of the rock to hang my guns and all things that would hang up; so
that, had my cave been to be seen, it looked like a general magazine of all
necessary things; and had everything so ready at my hand, that it was a great
pleasure to me to see all my goods in such order, and especially to find my
stock of all necessaries so great.
And now it was that I
began to keep a journal of every day’s employment; for, indeed, at first I was
in too much hurry, and not only hurry as to labour, but in too much
discomposure of mind; and my journal would have been full of many dull things;
for example, I must have said thus: "30TH. - After I had got to shore, and
escaped drowning, instead of being thankful to God for my deliverance, having
first vomited, with the great quantity of salt water which had got into my
stomach, and recovering myself a little, I ran about the shore wringing my
hands and beating my head and face, exclaiming at my misery, and crying out, ’I
was undone, undone!’ till, tired and faint, I was forced to lie down on the
ground to repose, but durst not sleep for fear of being devoured."
Some days after this,
and after I had been on board the ship, and got all that I could out of her,
yet I could not forbear getting up to the top of a little mountain and looking
out to sea, in hopes of seeing a ship; then fancy at a vast distance I spied a
sail, please myself with the hopes of it, and then after looking steadily, till
I was almost blind, lose it quite, and sit down and weep like a child, and thus
increase my misery by my folly.
But having gotten over
these things in some measure, and having settled my household staff and
habitation, made me a table and a chair, and all as handsome about me as I
could, I began to keep my journal; of which I shall here give you the copy
(though in it will be told all these particulars over again) as long as it
lasted; for having no more ink, I was forced to leave it off.
SEPTEMBER 30, 1659. -
I, poor miserable Robinson Crusoe, being shipwrecked during a dreadful storm in
the offing, came on shore on this dismal, unfortunate island, which I called
"The Island of Despair"; all the rest of the ship’s company being
drowned, and myself almost dead.
All the rest of the day
I spent in afflicting myself at the dismal circumstances I was brought to -
viz. I had neither food, house, clothes, weapon, nor place to fly to; and in
despair of any relief, saw nothing but death before me - either that I should
be devoured by wild beasts, murdered by savages, or starved to death for want
of food. At the approach of night I slept in a tree, for fear of wild
creatures; but slept soundly, though it rained all night.
OCTOBER 1. - In the
morning I saw, to my great surprise, the ship had floated with the high tide,
and was driven on shore again much nearer the island; which, as it was some
comfort, on one hand - for, seeing her set upright, and not broken to pieces, I
hoped, if the wind abated, I might get on board, and get some food and
necessaries out of her for my relief - so, on the other hand, it renewed my
grief at the loss of my comrades, who, I imagined, if we had all stayed on
board, might have saved the ship, or, at least, that they would not have been
all drowned as they were; and that, had the men been saved, we might perhaps
have built us a boat out of the ruins of the ship to have carried us to some
other part of the world. I spent great part of this day in perplexing myself on
these things; but at length, seeing the ship almost dry, I went upon the sand
as near as I could, and then swam on board. This day also it continued raining,
though with no wind at all.
FROM THE 1ST OF OCTOBER
TO THE 24TH. - All these days entirely spent in many several voyages to get all
I could out of the ship, which I brought on shore every tide of flood upon
rafts. Much rain also in the days, though with some intervals of fair weather;
but it seems this was the rainy season.
OCT. 20. - I overset my
raft, and all the goods I had got upon it; but, being in shoal water, and the
things being chiefly heavy, I recovered many of them when the tide was out.
OCT. 25. - It rained
all night and all day, with some gusts of wind; during which time the ship
broke in pieces, the wind blowing a little harder than before, and was no more
to be seen, except the wreck of her, and that only at low water. I spent this
day in covering and securing the goods which I had saved, that the rain might
not spoil them.
OCT. 26. - I walked about
the shore almost all day, to find out a place to fix my habitation, greatly
concerned to secure myself from any attack in the night, either from wild
beasts or men. Towards night, I fixed upon a proper place, under a rock, and
marked out a semicircle for my encampment; which I resolved to strengthen with
a work, wall, or fortification, made of double piles, lined within with cables,
and without with turf.
From the 26th to the
30th I worked very hard in carrying all my goods to my new habitation, though
some part of the time it rained exceedingly hard.
The 31st, in the
morning, I went out into the island with my gun, to seek for some food, and
discover the country; when I killed a she-goat, and her kid followed me home,
which I afterwards killed also, because it would not feed.
NOVEMBER 1. - I set up
my tent under a rock, and lay there for the first night; making it as large as
I could, with stakes driven in to swing my hammock upon.
NOV. 2. - I set up all
my chests and boards, and the pieces of timber which made my rafts, and with
them formed a fence round me, a little within the place I had marked out for my
fortification.
NOV. 3. - I went out
with my gun, and killed two fowls like ducks, which were very good food. In the
afternoon went to work to make me a table.
NOV. 4. - This morning
I began to order my times of work, of going out with my gun, time of sleep, and
time of diversion - viz. every morning I walked out with my gun for two or
three hours, if it did not rain; then employed myself to work till about eleven
o’clock; then eat what I had to live on; and from twelve to two I lay down to
sleep, the weather being excessively hot; and then, in the evening, to work
again. The working part of this day and of the next were wholly employed in making
my table, for I was yet but a very sorry workman, though time and necessity
made me a complete natural mechanic soon after, as I believe they would do any
one else.
NOV. 5. - This day went
abroad with my gun and my dog, and killed a wild cat; her skin pretty soft, but
her flesh good for nothing; every creature that I killed I took of the skins
and preserved them. Coming back by the sea-shore, I saw many sorts of
sea-fowls, which I did not understand; but was surprised, and almost
frightened, with two or three seals, which, while I was gazing at, not well
knowing what they were, got into the sea, and escaped me for that time.
NOV. 6. - After my
morning walk I went to work with my table again, and finished it, though not to
my liking; nor was it long before I learned to mend it.
NOV. 7. - Now it began
to be settled fair weather. The 7th, 8th, 9th, 10th, and part of the 12th (for
the 11th was Sunday) I took wholly up to make me a chair, and with much ado
brought it to a tolerable shape, but never to please me; and even in the making
I pulled it in pieces several times.
NOTE. - I soon
neglected my keeping Sundays; for, omitting my mark for them on my post, I
forgot which was which.
NOV. 13. - This day it
rained, which refreshed me exceedingly, and cooled the earth; but it was
accompanied with terrible thunder and lightning, which frightened me
dreadfully, for fear of my powder. As soon as it was over, I resolved to
separate my stock of powder into as many little parcels as possible, that it
might not be in danger.
NOV. 14, 15, 16. -
These three days I spent in making little square chests, or boxes, which might
hold about a pound, or two pounds at most, of powder; and so, putting the
powder in, I stowed it in places as secure and remote from one another as
possible. On one of these three days I killed a large bird that was good to
eat, but I knew not what to call it.
NOV. 17. - This day I
began to dig behind my tent into the rock, to make room for my further
conveniency.
NOTE. - Three things I
wanted exceedingly for this work - viz. a pickaxe, a shovel, and a wheelbarrow
or basket; so I desisted from my work, and began to consider how to supply that
want, and make me some tools. As for the pickaxe, I made use of the iron crows,
which were proper enough, though heavy; but the next thing was a shovel or
spade; this was so absolutely necessary, that, indeed, I could do nothing
effectually without it; but what kind of one to make I knew not.
NOV. 18. - The next
day, in searching the woods, I found a tree of that wood, or like it, which in
the Brazils they call the iron- tree, for its exceeding hardness. Of this, with
great labour, and almost spoiling my axe, I cut a piece, and brought it home,
too, with difficulty enough, for it was exceeding heavy. The excessive hardness
of the wood, and my having no other way, made me a long while upon this
machine, for I worked it effectually by little and little into the form of a
shovel or spade; the handle exactly shaped like ours in England, only that the
board part having no iron shod upon it at bottom, it would not last me so long;
however, it served well enough for the uses which I had occasion to put it to;
but never was a shovel, I believe, made after that fashion, or so long in
making.
I was still deficient,
for I wanted a basket or a wheelbarrow. A basket I could not make by any means,
having no such things as twigs that would bend to make wicker-ware - at least,
none yet found out; and as to a wheelbarrow, I fancied I could make all but the
wheel; but that I had no notion of; neither did I know how to go about it;
besides, I had no possible way to make the iron gudgeons for the spindle or
axis of the wheel to run in; so I gave it over, and so, for carrying away the
earth which I dug out of the cave, I made me a thing like a hod which the
labourers carry mortar in when they serve the bricklayers. This was not so
difficult to me as the making the shovel: and yet this and the shovel, and the
attempt which I made in vain to make a wheelbarrow, took me up no less than
four days - I mean always excepting my morning walk with my gun, which I seldom
failed, and very seldom failed also bringing home something fit to eat.
NOV. 23. - My other
work having now stood still, because of my making these tools, when they were
finished I went on, and working every day, as my strength and time allowed, I
spent eighteen days entirely in widening and deepening my cave, that it might
hold my goods commodiously.
NOTE. - During all this
time I worked to make this room or cave spacious enough to accommodate me as a
warehouse or magazine, a kitchen, a dining-room, and a cellar. As for my
lodging, I kept to the tent; except that sometimes, in the wet season of the year,
it rained so hard that I could not keep myself dry, which caused me afterwards
to cover all my place within my pale with long poles, in the form of rafters,
leaning against the rock, and load them with flags and large leaves of trees,
like a thatch.
DECEMBER 10. - I began
now to think my cave or vault finished, when on a sudden (it seems I had made
it too large) a great quantity of earth fell down from the top on one side; so
much that, in short, it frighted me, and not without reason, too, for if I had
been under it, I had never wanted a gravedigger. I had now a great deal of work
to do over again, for I had the loose earth to carry out; and, which was of
more importance, I had the ceiling to prop up, so that I might be sure no more
would come down.
DEC. 11. - This day I
went to work with it accordingly, and got two shores or posts pitched upright
to the top, with two pieces of boards across over each post; this I finished
the next day; and setting more posts up with boards, in about a week more I had
the roof secured, and the posts, standing in rows, served me for partitions to
part off the house.
DEC. 17. - From this
day to the 20th I placed shelves, and knocked up nails on the posts, to hang
everything up that could be hung up; and now I began to be in some order within
doors.
DEC. 20. - Now I
carried everything into the cave, and began to furnish my house, and set up
some pieces of boards like a dresser, to order my victuals upon; but boards
began to be very scarce with me; also, I made me another table.
DEC. 24. - Much rain
all night and all day. No stirring out.
DEC. 25. - Rain all
day.
DEC. 26. - No rain, and
the earth much cooler than before, and pleasanter.
DEC. 27. - Killed a
young goat, and lamed another, so that I caught it and led it home in a string;
when I had it at home, I bound and splintered up its leg, which was broke.
N.B. - I took such care
of it that it lived, and the leg grew well and as strong as ever; but, by my
nursing it so long, it grew tame, and fed upon the little green at my door, and
would not go away. This was the first time that I entertained a thought of
breeding up some tame creatures, that I might have food when my powder and shot
was all spent.
DEC. 28,29,30,31. -
Great heats, and no breeze, so that there was no stirring abroad, except in the
evening, for food; this time I spent in putting all my things in order within
doors.
JANUARY 1. - Very hot
still: but I went abroad early and late with my gun, and lay still in the
middle of the day. This evening, going farther into the valleys which lay
towards the centre of the island, I found there were plenty of goats, though
exceedingly shy, and hard to come at; however, I resolved to try if I could not
bring my dog to hunt them down.
JAN. 2. - Accordingly, the
next day I went out with my dog, and set him upon the goats, but I was
mistaken, for they all faced about upon the dog, and he knew his danger too
well, for he would not come near them.
JAN. 3. - I began my
fence or wall; which, being still jealous of my being attacked by somebody, I
resolved to make very thick and strong.
N.B. - This wall being
described before, I purposely omit what was said in the journal; it is
sufficient to observe, that I was no less time than from the 2nd of January to
the 14th of April working, finishing, and perfecting this wall, though it was
no more than about twenty-four yards in length, being a half-circle from one
place in the rock to another place, about eight yards from it, the door of the
cave being in the centre behind it.
All this time I worked
very hard, the rains hindering me many days, nay, sometimes weeks together; but
I thought I should never be perfectly secure till this wall was finished; and
it is scarce credible what inexpressible labour everything was done with,
especially the bringing piles out of the woods and driving them into the
ground; for I made them much bigger than I needed to have done.
When this wall was
finished, and the outside double fenced, with a turf wall raised up close to
it, I perceived myself that if any people were to come on shore there, they
would not perceive anything like a habitation; and it was very well I did so,
as may be observed hereafter, upon a very remarkable occasion.
During this time I made
my rounds in the woods for game every day when the rain permitted me, and made
frequent discoveries in these walks of something or other to my advantage;
particularly, I found a kind of wild pigeons, which build, not as wood-pigeons
in a tree, but rather as house-pigeons, in the holes of the rocks; and taking
some young ones, I endeavoured to breed them up tame, and did so; but when they
grew older they flew away, which perhaps was at first for want of feeding them,
for I had nothing to give them; however, I frequently found their nests, and
got their young ones, which were very good meat. And now, in the managing my
household affairs, I found myself wanting in many things, which I thought at
first it was impossible for me to make; as, indeed, with some of them it was:
for instance, I could never make a cask to be hooped. I had a small runlet or
two, as I observed before; but I could never arrive at the capacity of making
one by them, though I spent many weeks about it; I could neither put in the
heads, or join the staves so true to one another as to make them hold water; so
I gave that also over. In the next place, I was at a great loss for candles; so
that as soon as ever it was dark, which was generally by seven o’clock, I was
obliged to go to bed. I remembered the lump of beeswax with which I made
candles in my African adventure; but I had none of that now; the only remedy I
had was, that when I had killed a goat I saved the tallow, and with a little
dish made of clay, which I baked in the sun, to which I added a wick of some
oakum, I made me a lamp; and this gave me light, though not a clear, steady
light, like a candle. In the middle of all my labours it happened that,
rummaging my things, I found a little bag which, as I hinted before, had been
filled with corn for the feeding of poultry - not for this voyage, but before,
as I suppose, when the ship came from Lisbon. The little remainder of corn that
had been in the bag was all devoured by the rats, and I saw nothing in the bag
but husks and dust; and being willing to have the bag for some other use (I
think it was to put powder in, when I divided it for fear of the lightning, or
some such use), I shook the husks of corn out of it on one side of my
fortification, under the rock.
It was a little before
the great rains just now mentioned that I threw this stuff away, taking no
notice, and not so much as remembering that I had thrown anything there, when,
about a month after, or thereabouts, I saw some few stalks of something green
shooting out of the ground, which I fancied might be some plant I had not seen;
but I was surprised, and perfectly astonished, when, after a little longer
time, I saw about ten or twelve ears come out, which were perfect green barley,
of the same kind as our European - nay, as our English barley.
It is impossible to
express the astonishment and confusion of my thoughts on this occasion. I had
hitherto acted upon no religious foundation at all; indeed, I had very few
notions of religion in my head, nor had entertained any sense of anything that
had befallen me otherwise than as chance, or, as we lightly say, what pleases
God, without so much as inquiring into the end of Providence in these things,
or His order in governing events for the world. But after I saw barley grow
there, in a climate which I knew was not proper for corn, and especially that I
knew not how it came there, it startled me strangely, and I began to suggest
that God had miraculously caused His grain to grow without any help of seed
sown, and that it was so directed purely for my sustenance on that wild,
miserable place.
This touched my heart a
little, and brought tears out of my eyes, and I began to bless myself that such
a prodigy of nature should happen upon my account; and this was the more
strange to me, because I saw near it still, all along by the side of the rock,
some other straggling stalks, which proved to be stalks of rice, and which I
knew, because I had seen it grow in Africa when I was ashore there.
I not only thought
these the pure productions of Providence for my support, but not doubting that
there was more in the place, I went all over that part of the island, where I
had been before, peering in every corner, and under every rock, to see for more
of it, but I could not find any. At last it occurred to my thoughts that I shook
a bag of chickens’ meat out in that place; and then the wonder began to cease;
and I must confess my religious thankfulness to God’s providence began to
abate, too, upon the discovering that all this was nothing but what was common;
though I ought to have been as thankful for so strange and unforeseen a
providence as if it had been miraculous; for it was really the work of
Providence to me, that should order or appoint that ten or twelve grains of
corn should remain unspoiled, when the rats had destroyed all the rest, as if
it had been dropped from heaven; as also, that I should throw it out in that
particular place, where, it being in the shade of a high rock, it sprang up
immediately; whereas, if I had thrown it anywhere else at that time, it had been
burnt up and destroyed.
I carefully saved the
ears of this corn, you may be sure, in their season, which was about the end of
June; and, laying up every corn, I resolved to sow them all again, hoping in
time to have some quantity sufficient to supply me with bread. But it was not
till the fourth year that I could allow myself the least grain of this corn to
eat, and even then but sparingly, as I shall say afterwards, in its order; for
I lost all that I sowed the first season by not observing the proper time; for
I sowed it just before the dry season, so that it never came up at all, at
least not as it would have done; of which in its place.
Besides this barley,
there were, as above, twenty or thirty stalks of rice, which I preserved with
the same care and for the same use, or to the same purpose - to make me bread,
or rather food; for I found ways to cook it without baking, though I did that
also after some time.
But to return to my
Journal.
I worked excessive hard
these three or four months to get my wall done; and the 14th of April I closed
it up, contriving to go into it, not by a door but over the wall, by a ladder,
that there might be no sign on the outside of my habitation.
APRIL 16. - I finished
the ladder; so I went up the ladder to the top, and then pulled it up after me,
and let it down in the inside. This was a complete enclosure to me; for within
I had room enough, and nothing could come at me from without, unless it could
first mount my wall.
The very next day after
this wall was finished I had almost had all my labour overthrown at once, and
myself killed. The case was thus: As I was busy in the inside, behind my tent,
just at the entrance into my cave, I was terribly frighted with a most
dreadful, surprising thing indeed; for all on a sudden I found the earth come
crumbling down from the roof of my cave, and from the edge of the hill over my
head, and two of the posts I had set up in the cave cracked in a frightful
manner. I was heartily scared; but thought nothing of what was really the
cause, only thinking that the top of my cave was fallen in, as some of it had
done before: and for fear I should be buried in it I ran forward to my ladder,
and not thinking myself safe there neither, I got over my wall for fear of the
pieces of the hill, which I expected might roll down upon me. I had no sooner
stepped do ground, than I plainly saw it was a terrible earthquake, for the
ground I stood on shook three times at about eight minutes’ distance, with
three such shocks as would have overturned the strongest building that could be
supposed to have stood on the earth; and a great piece of the top of a rock
which stood about half a mile from me next the sea fell down with such a
terrible noise as I never heard in all my life. I perceived also the very sea
was put into violent motion by it; and I believe the shocks were stronger under
the water than on the island.
I was so much amazed
with the thing itself, having never felt the like, nor discoursed with any one
that had, that I was like one dead or stupefied; and the motion of the earth
made my stomach sick, like one that was tossed at sea; but the noise of the
falling of the rock awakened me, as it were, and rousing me from the stupefied
condition I was in, filled me with horror; and I thought of nothing then but
the hill falling upon my tent and all my household goods, and burying all at
once; and this sunk my very soul within me a second time.
After the third shock
was over, and I felt no more for some time, I began to take courage; and yet I
had not heart enough to go over my wall again, for fear of being buried alive,
but sat still upon the ground greatly cast down and disconsolate, not knowing
what to do. All this while I had not the least serious religious thought;
nothing but the common "Lord have mercy upon me!" and when it was
over that went away too.
While I sat thus, I
found the air overcast and grow cloudy, as if it would rain. Soon after that
the wind arose by little and little, so that in less than half-an-hour it blew
a most dreadful hurricane; the sea was all on a sudden covered over with foam
and froth; the shore was covered with the breach of the water, the trees were
torn up by the roots, and a terrible storm it was. This held about three hours,
and then began to abate; and in two hours more it was quite calm, and began to
rain very hard. All this while I sat upon the ground very much terrified and
dejected; when on a sudden it came into my thoughts, that these winds and rain
being the consequences of the earthquake, the earthquake itself was spent and
over, and I might venture into my cave again. With this thought my spirits
began to revive; and the rain also helping to persuade me, I went in and sat
down in my tent. But the rain was so violent that my tent was ready to be
beaten down with it; and I was forced to go into my cave, though very much
afraid and uneasy, for fear it should fall on my head. This violent rain forced
me to a new work - viz. to cut a hole through my new fortification, like a
sink, to let the water go out, which would else have flooded my cave. After I
had been in my cave for some time, and found still no more shocks of the
earthquake follow, I began to be more composed. And now, to support my spirits,
which indeed wanted it very much, I went to my little store, and took a small
sup of rum; which, however, I did then and always very sparingly, knowing I
could have no more when that was gone. It continued raining all that night and
great part of the next day, so that I could not stir abroad; but my mind being
more composed, I began to think of what I had best do; concluding that if the
island was subject to these earthquakes, there would be no living for me in a
cave, but I must consider of building a little hut in an open place which I
might surround with a wall, as I had done here, and so make myself secure from
wild beasts or men; for I concluded, if I stayed where I was, I should
certainly one time or other be buried alive.
With these thoughts, I
resolved to remove my tent from the place where it stood, which was just under
the hanging precipice of the hill; and which, if it should be shaken again,
would certainly fall upon my tent; and I spent the two next days, being the
19th and 20th of April, in contriving where and how to remove my habitation.
The fear of being swallowed up alive made me that I never slept in quiet; and
yet the apprehension of lying abroad without any fence was almost equal to it;
but still, when I looked about, and saw how everything was put in order, how
pleasantly concealed I was, and how safe from danger, it made me very loath to
remove. In the meantime, it occurred to me that it would require a vast deal of
time for me to do this, and that I must be contented to venture where I was,
till I had formed a camp for myself, and had secured it so as to remove to it.
So with this resolution I composed myself for a time, and resolved that I would
go to work with all speed to build me a wall with piles and cables, &c., in
a circle, as before, and set my tent up in it when it was finished; but that I
would venture to stay where I was till it was finished, and fit to remove. This
was the 21st.
APRIL 22. - The next
morning I begin to consider of means to put this resolve into execution; but I
was at a great loss about my tools. I had three large axes, and abundance of
hatchets (for we carried the hatchets for traffic with the Indians); but with
much chopping and cutting knotty hard wood, they were all full of notches, and
dull; and though I had a grindstone, I could not turn it and grind my tools
too. This cost me as much thought as a statesman would have bestowed upon a
grand point of politics, or a judge upon the life and death of a man. At length
I contrived a wheel with a string, to turn it with my foot, that I might have
both my hands at liberty.
NOTE. - I had never
seen any such thing in England, or at least, not to take notice how it was
done, though since I have observed, it is very common there; besides that, my
grindstone was very large and heavy. This machine cost me a full week’s work to
bring it to perfection.
APRIL 28, 29. - These
two whole days I took up in grinding my tools, my machine for turning my
grindstone performing very well.
APRIL 30. - Having
perceived my bread had been low a great while, now I took a survey of it, and
reduced myself to one biscuit cake a day, which made my heart very heavy.
MAY 1. - In the
morning, looking towards the sea side, the tide being low, I saw something lie
on the shore bigger than ordinary, and it looked like a cask; when I came to
it, I found a small barrel, and two or three pieces of the wreck of the ship,
which were driven on shore by the late hurricane; and looking towards the wreck
itself, I thought it seemed to lie higher out of the water than it used to do.
I examined the barrel which was driven on shore, and soon found it was a barrel
of gunpowder; but it had taken water, and the powder was caked as hard as a
stone; however, I rolled it farther on shore for the present, and went on upon
the sands, as near as I could to the wreck of the ship, to look for more.
WHEN I came down to the
ship I found it strangely removed. The forecastle, which lay before buried in
sand, was heaved up at least six feet, and the stern, which was broke in pieces
and parted from the rest by the force of the sea, soon after I had left
rummaging her, was tossed as it were up, and cast on one side; and the sand was
thrown so high on that side next her stern, that whereas there was a great
place of water before, so that I could not come within a quarter of a mile of
the wreck without swimming I could now walk quite up to her when the tide was
out. I was surprised with this at first, but soon concluded it must be done by
the earthquake; and as by this violence the ship was more broke open than
formerly, so many things came daily on shore, which the sea had loosened, and
which the winds and water rolled by degrees to the land.
This wholly diverted my
thoughts from the design of removing my habitation, and I busied myself
mightily, that day especially, in searching whether I could make any way into
the ship; but I found nothing was to be expected of that kind, for all the inside
of the ship was choked up with sand. However, as I had learned not to despair
of anything, I resolved to pull everything to pieces that I could of the ship,
concluding that everything I could get from her would be of some use or other
to me.
MAY 3. - I began with
my saw, and cut a piece of a beam through, which I thought held some of the
upper part or quarter-deck together, and when I had cut it through, I cleared
away the sand as well as I could from the side which lay highest; but the tide
coming in, I was obliged to give over for that time.
MAY 4. - I went
a-fishing, but caught not one fish that I durst eat of, till I was weary of my
sport; when, just going to leave off, I caught a young dolphin. I had made me a
long line of some rope- yarn, but I had no hooks; yet I frequently caught fish
enough, as much as I cared to eat; all which I dried in the sun, and ate them
dry.
MAY 5. - Worked on the
wreck; cut another beam asunder, and brought three great fir planks off from
the decks, which I tied together, and made to float on shore when the tide of
flood came on.
MAY 6. - Worked on the
wreck; got several iron bolts out of her and other pieces of ironwork. Worked
very hard, and came home very much tired, and had thoughts of giving it over.
MAY 7. - Went to the
wreck again, not with an intent to work, but found the weight of the wreck had
broke itself down, the beams being cut; that several pieces of the ship seemed
to lie loose, and the inside of the hold lay so open that I could see into it;
but it was almost full of water and sand.
MAY 8. - Went to the
wreck, and carried an iron crow to wrench up the deck, which lay now quite
clear of the water or sand. I wrenched open two planks, and brought them on
shore also with the tide. I left the iron crow in the wreck for next day.
MAY 9. - Went to the
wreck, and with the crow made way into the body of the wreck, and felt several
casks, and loosened them with the crow, but could not break them up. I felt
also a roll of English lead, and could stir it, but it was too heavy to remove.
MAY 1 -14. - Went every
day to the wreck; and got a great many pieces of timber, and boards, or plank,
and two or three hundredweight of iron.
MAY 15. - I carried two
hatchets, to try if I could not cut a piece off the roll of lead by placing the
edge of one hatchet and driving it with the other; but as it lay about a foot
and a half in the water, I could not make any blow to drive the hatchet.
MAY 16. - It had blown
hard in the night, and the wreck appeared more broken by the force of the
water; but I stayed so long in the woods, to get pigeons for food, that the
tide prevented my going to the wreck that day.
MAY 17. - I saw some
pieces of the wreck blown on shore, at a great distance, near two miles off me,
but resolved to see what they were, and found it was a piece of the head, but
too heavy for me to bring away.
MAY 24. - Every day, to
this day, I worked on the wreck; and with hard labour I loosened some things so
much with the crow, that the first flowing tide several casks floated out, and
two of the seamen’s chests; but the wind blowing from the shore, nothing came
to land that day but pieces of timber, and a hogshead, which had some Brazil
pork in it; but the salt water and the sand had spoiled it. I continued this
work every day to the 15th of June, except the time necessary to get food,
which I always appointed, during this part of my employment, to be when the
tide was up, that I might be ready when it was ebbed out; and by this time I
had got timber and plank and ironwork enough to have built a good boat, if I
had known how; and also I got, at several times and in several pieces, near one
hundredweight of the sheet lead.
JUNE 16. - Going down
to the seaside, I found a large tortoise or turtle. This was the first I had
seen, which, it seems, was only my misfortune, not any defect of the place, or
scarcity; for had I happened to be on the other side of the island, I might
have had hundreds of them every day, as I found afterwards; but perhaps had
paid dear enough for them.
JUNE 17. - I spent in
cooking the turtle. I found in her three- score eggs; and her flesh was to me,
at that time, the most savoury and pleasant that ever I tasted in my life,
having had no flesh, but of goats and fowls, since I landed in this horrid
place.
JUNE 18. - Rained all
day, and I stayed within. I thought at this time the rain felt cold, and I was
something chilly; which I knew was not usual in that latitude.
JUNE 19. - Very ill,
and shivering, as if the weather had been cold.
JUNE 20. - No rest all
night; violent pains in my head, and feverish.
JUNE 21. - Very ill;
frighted almost to death with the apprehensions of my sad condition - to be
sick, and no help. Prayed to God, for the first time since the storm off Hull,
but scarce knew what I said, or why, my thoughts being all confused.
JUNE 22. - A little
better; but under dreadful apprehensions of sickness.
JUNE 22. - Very bad
again; cold and shivering, and then a violent headache.
JUNE 24. - Much better.
JUNE 25. - An ague very
violent; the fit held me seven hours; cold fit and hot, with faint sweats after
it.
JUNE 26. - Better; and
having no victuals to eat, took my gun, but found myself very weak. However, I
killed a she-goat, and with much difficulty got it home, and broiled some of
it, and ate, I would fain have stewed it, and made some broth, but had no pot.
JUNE 27. - The ague
again so violent that I lay a-bed all day, and neither ate nor drank. I was
ready to perish for thirst; but so weak, I had not strength to stand up, or to
get myself any water to drink. Prayed to God again, but was light-headed; and
when I was not, I was so ignorant that I knew not what to say; only I lay and
cried, "Lord, look upon me! Lord, pity me! Lord, have mercy upon me!"
I suppose I did nothing else for two or three hours; till, the fit wearing off,
I fell asleep, and did not wake till far in the night. When I awoke, I found
myself much refreshed, but weak, and exceeding thirsty. However, as I had no
water in my habitation, I was forced to lie till morning, and went to sleep
again. In this second sleep I had this terrible dream: I thought that I was
sitting on the ground, on the outside of my wall, where I sat when the storm
blew after the earthquake, and that I saw a man descend from a great black
cloud, in a bright flame of fire, and light upon the ground. He was all over as
bright as a flame, so that I could but just bear to look towards him; his
countenance was most inexpressibly dreadful, impossible for words to describe.
When he stepped upon the ground with his feet, I thought the earth trembled,
just as it had done before in the earthquake, and all the air looked, to my
apprehension, as if it had been filled with flashes of fire. He was no sooner
landed upon the earth, but he moved forward towards me, with a long spear or
weapon in his hand, to kill me; and when he came to a rising ground, at some
distance, he spoke to me - or I heard a voice so terrible that it is impossible
to express the terror of it. All that I can say I understood was this:
"Seeing all these things have not brought thee to repentance, now thou
shalt die;" at which words, I thought he lifted up the spear that was in
his hand to kill me.
No one that shall ever
read this account will expect that I should be able to describe the horrors of
my soul at this terrible vision. I mean, that even while it was a dream, I even
dreamed of those horrors. Nor is it any more possible to describe the
impression that remained upon my mind when I awaked, and found it was but a dream.
I had, alas! no divine
knowledge. What I had received by the good instruction of my father was then
worn out by an uninterrupted series, for eight years, of seafaring wickedness,
and a constant conversation with none but such as were, like myself, wicked and
profane to the last degree. I do not remember that I had, in all that time, one
thought that so much as tended either to looking upwards towards God, or
inwards towards a reflection upon my own ways; but a certain stupidity of soul,
without desire of good, or conscience of evil, had entirely overwhelmed me; and
I was all that the most hardened, unthinking, wicked creature among our common
sailors can be supposed to be; not having the least sense, either of the fear
of God in danger, or of thankfulness to God in deliverance.
In the relating what is
already past of my story, this will be the more easily believed when I shall
add, that through all the variety of miseries that had to this day befallen me,
I never had so much as one thought of it being the hand of God, or that it was
a just punishment for my sin - my rebellious behaviour against my father - or
my present sins, which were great - or so much as a punishment for the general
course of my wicked life. When I was on the desperate expedition on the desert
shores of Africa, I never had so much as one thought of what would become of
me, or one wish to God to direct me whither I should go, or to keep me from the
danger which apparently surrounded me, as well from voracious creatures as
cruel savages. But I was merely thoughtless of a God or a Providence, acted
like a mere brute, from the principles of nature, and by the dictates of common
sense only, and, indeed, hardly that. When I was delivered and taken up at sea
by the Portugal captain, well used, and dealt justly and honourably with, as
well as charitably, I had not the least thankfulness in my thoughts. When,
again, I was shipwrecked, ruined, and in danger of drowning on this island, I
was as far from remorse, or looking on it as a judgment. I only said to myself
often, that I was an unfortunate dog, and born to be always miserable.
It is true, when I got
on shore first here, and found all my ship’s crew drowned and myself spared, I
was surprised with a kind of ecstasy, and some transports of soul, which, had
the grace of God assisted, might have come up to true thankfulness; but it
ended where it began, in a mere common flight of joy, or, as I may say, being
glad I was alive, without the least reflection upon the distinguished goodness
of the hand which had preserved me, and had singled me out to be preserved when
all the rest were destroyed, or an inquiry why Providence had been thus
merciful unto me. Even just the same common sort of joy which seamen generally
have, after they are got safe ashore from a shipwreck, which they drown all in
the next bowl of punch, and forget almost as soon as it is over; and all the
rest of my life was like it. Even when I was afterwards, on due consideration,
made sensible of my condition, how I was cast on this dreadful place, out of
the reach of human kind, out of all hope of relief, or prospect of redemption,
as soon as I saw but a prospect of living and that I should not starve and
perish for hunger, all the sense of my affliction wore off; and I began to be
very easy, applied myself to the works proper for my preservation and supply,
and was far enough from being afflicted at my condition, as a judgment from
heaven, or as the hand of God against me: these were thoughts which very seldom
entered my head.
The growing up of the
corn, as is hinted in my Journal, had at first some little influence upon me,
and began to affect me with seriousness, as long as I thought it had something
miraculous in it; but as soon as ever that part of the thought was removed, all
the impression that was raised from it wore off also, as I have noted already.
Even the earthquake, though nothing could be more terrible in its nature, or
more immediately directing to the invisible Power which alone directs such
things, yet no sooner was the first fright over, but the impression it had made
went off also. I had no more sense of God or His judgments - much less of the
present affliction of my circumstances being from His hand - than if I had been
in the most prosperous condition of life. But now, when I began to be sick, and
a leisurely view of the miseries of death came to place itself before me; when
my spirits began to sink under the burden of a strong distemper, and nature was
exhausted with the violence of the fever; conscience, that had slept so long,
began to awake, and I began to reproach myself with my past life, in which I
had so evidently, by uncommon wickedness, provoked the justice of God to lay me
under uncommon strokes, and to deal with me in so vindictive a manner. These reflections
oppressed me for the second or third day of my distemper; and in the violence,
as well of the fever as of the dreadful reproaches of my conscience, extorted
some words from me like praying to God, though I cannot say they were either a
prayer attended with desires or with hopes: it was rather the voice of mere
fright and distress. My thoughts were confused, the convictions great upon my
mind, and the horror of dying in such a miserable condition raised vapours into
my head with the mere apprehensions; and in these hurries of my soul I knew not
what my tongue might express. But it was rather exclamation, such as,
"Lord, what a miserable creature am I! If I should be sick, I shall
certainly die for want of help; and what will become of me!" Then the
tears burst out of my eyes, and I could say no more for a good while. In this
interval the good advice of my father came to my mind, and presently his
prediction, which I mentioned at the beginning of this story - viz. that if I
did take this foolish step, God would not bless me, and I would have leisure
hereafter to reflect upon having neglected his counsel when there might be none
to assist in my recovery. "Now," said I, aloud, "my dear father’s
words are come to pass; God’s justice has overtaken me, and I have none to help
or hear me. I rejected the voice of Providence, which had mercifully put me in
a posture or station of life wherein I might have been happy and easy; but I
would neither see it myself nor learn to know the blessing of it from my parents.
I left them to mourn over my folly, and now I am left to mourn under the
consequences of it. I abused their help and assistance, who would have lifted
me in the world, and would have made everything easy to me; and now I have
difficulties to struggle with, too great for even nature itself to support, and
no assistance, no help, no comfort, no advice." Then I cried out,
"Lord, be my help, for I am in great distress." This was the first
prayer, if I may call it so, that I had made for many years.
But to return to my
Journal.
JUNE 28. - Having been
somewhat refreshed with the sleep I had had, and the fit being entirely off, I
got up; and though the fright and terror of my dream was very great, yet I
considered that the fit of the ague would return again the next day, and now
was my time to get something to refresh and support myself when I should be
ill; and the first thing I did, I filled a large square case-bottle with water,
and set it upon my table, in reach of my bed; and to take off the chill or aguish
disposition of the water, I put about a quarter of a pint of rum into it, and
mixed them together. Then I got me a piece of the goat’s flesh and broiled it
on the coals, but could eat very little. I walked about, but was very weak, and
withal very sad and heavy-hearted under a sense of my miserable condition,
dreading, the return of my distemper the next day. At night I made my supper of
three of the turtle’s eggs, which I roasted in the ashes, and ate, as we call
it, in the shell, and this was the first bit of meat I had ever asked God’s
blessing to, that I could remember, in my whole life. After I had eaten I tried
to walk, but found myself so weak that I could hardly carry a gun, for I never
went out without that; so I went but a little way, and sat down upon the
ground, looking out upon the sea, which was just before me, and very calm and
smooth. As I sat here some such thoughts as these occurred to me: What is this
earth and sea, of which I have seen so much? Whence is it produced? And what am
I, and all the other creatures wild and tame, human and brutal? Whence are we?
Sure we are all made by some secret Power, who formed the earth and sea, the
air and sky. And who is that? Then it followed most naturally, it is God that
has made all. Well, but then it came on strangely, if God has made all these
things, He guides and governs them all, and all things that concern them; for
the Power that could make all things must certainly have power to guide and
direct them. If so, nothing can happen in the great circuit of His works,
either without His knowledge or appointment.
And if nothing happens
without His knowledge, He knows that I am here, and am in this dreadful
condition; and if nothing happens without His appointment, He has appointed all
this to befall me. Nothing occurred to my thought to contradict any of these
conclusions, and therefore it rested upon me with the greater force, that it
must needs be that God had appointed all this to befall me; that I was brought
into this miserable circumstance by His direction, He having the sole power,
not of me only, but of everything that happened in the world. Immediately it
followed: Why has God done this to me? What have I done to be thus used? My
conscience presently checked me in that inquiry, as if I had blasphemed, and
methought it spoke to me like a voice: "Wretch! dost thou ask what thou
hast done? Look back upon a dreadful misspent life, and ask thyself what thou
hast not done? Ask, why is it that thou wert not long ago destroyed? Why wert
thou not drowned in Yarmouth Roads; killed in the fight when the ship was taken
by the Sallee man-of-war; devoured by the wild beasts on the coast of Africa;
or drowned here, when all the crew perished but thyself? Dost thou ask, what
have I done?" I was struck dumb with these reflections, as one astonished,
and had not a word to say - no, not to answer to myself, but rose up pensive
and sad, walked back to my retreat, and went up over my wall, as if I had been
going to bed; but my thoughts were sadly disturbed, and I had no inclination to
sleep; so I sat down in my chair, and lighted my lamp, for it began to be dark.
Now, as the apprehension of the return of my distemper terrified me very much,
it occurred to my thought that the Brazilians take no physic but their tobacco
for almost all distempers, and I had a piece of a roll of tobacco in one of the
chests, which was quite cured, and some also that was green, and not quite
cured.
I went, directed by
Heaven no doubt; for in this chest I found a cure both for soul and body. I
opened the chest, and found what I looked for, the tobacco; and as the few
books I had saved lay there too, I took out one of the Bibles which I mentioned
before, and which to this time I had not found leisure or inclination to look
into. I say, I took it out, and brought both that and the tobacco with me to
the table. What use to make of the tobacco I knew not, in my distemper, or
whether it was good for it or no: but I tried several experiments with it, as
if I was resolved it should hit one way or other. I first took a piece of leaf,
and chewed it in my mouth, which, indeed, at first almost stupefied my brain,
the tobacco being green and strong, and that I had not been much used to. Then
I took some and steeped it an hour or two in some rum, and resolved to take a
dose of it when I lay down; and lastly., I burnt some upon a pan of coals, and
held my nose close over the smoke of it as long as I could bear it, as well for
the heat as almost for suffocation. In the interval of this operation I took up
the Bible and began to read; but my head was too much disturbed with the
tobacco to bear reading, at least at that time; only, having opened the book
casually, the first words that occurred to me were these, "Call on Me in
the day of trouble, and I will deliver thee, and thou shalt glorify Me."
These words were very apt to my case, and made some impression upon my thoughts
at the time of reading them, though not so much as they did afterwards; for, as
for being delivered, the word had no sound, as I may say, to me; the thing was
so remote, so impossible in my apprehension of things, that I began to say, as
the children of Israel did when they were promised flesh to eat, "Can God
spread a table in the wilderness?" so I began to say, "Can God
Himself deliver me from this place?" And as it was not for many years that
any hopes appeared, this prevailed very often upon my thoughts; but, however,
the words made a great impression upon me, and I mused upon them very often. It
grew now late, and the tobacco had, as I said, dozed my head so much that I
inclined to sleep; so I left my lamp burning in the cave, lest I should want
anything in the night, and went to bed. But before I lay down, I did what I
never had done in all my life - I kneeled down, and prayed to God to fulfil the
promise to me, that if I called upon Him in the day of trouble, He would
deliver me. After my broken and imperfect prayer was over, I drank the rum in
which I had steeped the tobacco, which was so strong and rank of the tobacco
that I could scarcely get it down; immediately upon this I went to bed. I found
presently it flew up into my head violently; but I fell into a sound sleep, and
waked no more till, by the sun, it must necessarily be near three o’clock in
the afternoon the next day - nay, to this hour I am partly of opinion that I
slept all the next day and night, and till almost three the day after; for
otherwise I know not how I should lose a day out of my reckoning in the days of
the week, as it appeared some years after I had done; for if I had lost it by
crossing and recrossing the line, I should have lost more than one day; but
certainly I lost a day in my account, and never knew which way. Be that,
however, one way or the other, when I awaked I found myself exceedingly
refreshed, and my spirits lively and cheerful; when I got up I was stronger
than I was the day before, and my stomach better, for I was hungry; and, in
short, I had no fit the next day, but continued much altered for the better.
This was the 29th.
The 30th was my well
day, of course, and I went abroad with my gun, but did not care to travel too
far. I killed a sea-fowl or two, something like a brandgoose, and brought them
home, but was not very forward to eat them; so I ate some more of the turtle’s
eggs, which were very good. This evening I renewed the medicine, which I had
supposed did me good the day before - the tobacco steeped in rum; only I did
not take so much as before, nor did I chew any of the leaf, or hold my head
over the smoke; however, I was not so well the next day, which was the first of
July, as I hoped I should have been; for I had a little spice of the cold fit,
but it was not much.
JULY 2. - I renewed the
medicine all the three ways; and dosed myself with it as at first, and doubled
the quantity which I drank.
JULY 3. - I missed the
fit for good and all, though I did not recover my full strength for some weeks
after. While I was thus gathering strength, my thoughts ran exceedingly upon
this Scripture, "I will deliver thee"; and the impossibility of my
deliverance lay much upon my mind, in bar of my ever expecting it; but as I was
discouraging myself with such thoughts, it occurred to my mind that I pored so
much upon my deliverance from the main affliction, that I disregarded the
deliverance I had received, and I was as it were made to ask myself such
questions as these - viz. Have I not been delivered, and wonderfully too, from
sickness - from the most distressed condition that could be, and that was so
frightful to me? and what notice had I taken of it? Had I done my part? God had
delivered me, but I had not glorified Him - that is to say, I had not owned and
been thankful for that as a deliverance; and how could I expect greater
deliverance? This touched my heart very much; and immediately I knelt down and
gave God thanks aloud for my recovery from my sickness.
JULY 4. - In the
morning I took the Bible; and beginning at the New Testament, I began seriously
to read it, and imposed upon myself to read a while every morning and every
night; not tying myself to the number of chapters, but long as my thoughts
should engage me. It was not long after I set seriously to this work till I
found my heart more deeply and sincerely affected with the wickedness of my
past life. The impression of my dream revived; and the words, "All these
things have not brought thee to repentance," ran seriously through my
thoughts. I was earnestly begging of God to give me repentance, when it
happened providentially, the very day, that, reading the Scripture, I came to
these words: "He is exalted a Prince and a Saviour, to give repentance and
to give remission." I threw down the book; and with my heart as well as my
hands lifted up to heaven, in a kind of ecstasy of joy, I cried out aloud,
"Jesus, thou son of David! Jesus, thou exalted Prince and Saviour! give me
repentance!" This was the first time I could say, in the true sense of the
words, that I prayed in all my life; for now I prayed with a sense of my
condition, and a true Scripture view of hope, founded on the encouragement of
the Word of God; and from this time, I may say, I began to hope that God would
hear me.
Now I began to construe
the words mentioned above, "Call on Me, and I will deliver thee," in
a different sense from what I had ever done before; for then I had no notion of
anything being called deliverance, but my being delivered from the captivity I
was in; for though I was indeed at large in the place, yet the island was
certainly a prison to me, and that in the worse sense in the world. But now I
learned to take it in another sense: now I looked back upon my past life with
such horror, and my sins appeared so dreadful, that my soul sought nothing of
God but deliverance from the load of guilt that bore down all my comfort. As
for my solitary life, it was nothing. I did not so much as pray to be delivered
from it or think of it; it was all of no consideration in comparison to this.
And I add this part here, to hint to whoever shall read it, that whenever they
come to a true sense of things, they will find deliverance from sin a much
greater blessing than deliverance from affliction.
But, leaving this part,
I return to my Journal.
My condition began now
to be, though not less miserable as to my way of living, yet much easier to my
mind: and my thoughts being directed, by a constant reading the Scripture and
praying to God, to things of a higher nature, I had a great deal of comfort
within, which till now I knew nothing of; also, my health and strength
returned, I bestirred myself to furnish myself with everything that I wanted,
and make my way of living as regular as I could.
From the 4th of July to
the 14th I was chiefly employed in walking about with my gun in my hand, a
little and a little at a time, as a man that was gathering up his strength
after a fit of sickness; for it is hardly to be imagined how low I was, and to
what weakness I was reduced. The application which I made use of was perfectly
new, and perhaps which had never cured an ague before; neither can I recommend
it to any to practise, by this experiment: and though it did carry off the fit,
yet it rather contributed to weakening me; for I had frequent convulsions in my
nerves and limbs for some time. I learned from it also this, in particular,
that being abroad in the rainy season was the most pernicious thing to my
health that could be, especially in those rains which came attended with storms
and hurricanes of wind; for as the rain which came in the dry season was almost
always accompanied with such storms, so I found that rain was much more dangerous
than the rain which fell in September and October.
I HAD now been in this
unhappy island above ten months. All possibility of deliverance from this
condition seemed to be entirely taken from me; and I firmly believe that no
human shape had ever set foot upon that place. Having now secured my
habitation, as I thought, fully to my mind, I had a great desire to make a more
perfect discovery of the island, and to see what other productions I might
find, which I yet knew nothing of.
It was on the 15th of
July that I began to take a more particular survey of the island itself. I went
up the creek first, where, as I hinted, I brought my rafts on shore. I found
after I came about two miles up, that the tide did not flow any higher, and that
it was no more than a little brook of running water, very fresh and good; but
this being the dry season, there was hardly any water in some parts of it - at
least not enough to run in any stream, so as it could be perceived. On the
banks of this brook I found many pleasant savannahs or meadows, plain, smooth,
and covered with grass; and on the rising parts of them, next to the higher
grounds, where the water, as might be supposed, never overflowed, I found a
great deal of tobacco, green, and growing to a great and very strong stalk.
There were divers other plants, which I had no notion of or understanding
about, that might, perhaps, have virtues of their own, which I could not find
out. I searched for the cassava root, which the Indians, in all that climate,
make their bread of, but I could find none. I saw large plants of aloes, but
did not understand them. I saw several sugar-canes, but wild, and, for want of
cultivation, imperfect. I contented myself with these discoveries for this
time, and came back, musing with myself what course I might take to know the
virtue and goodness of any of the fruits or plants which I should discover, but
could bring it to no conclusion; for, in short, I had made so little
observation while I was in the Brazils, that I knew little of the plants in the
field; at least, very little that might serve to any purpose now in my
distress.
The next day, the
sixteenth, I went up the same way again; and after going something further than
I had gone the day before, I found the brook and the savannahs cease, and the
country become more woody than before. In this part I found different fruits,
and particularly I found melons upon the ground, in great abundance, and grapes
upon the trees. The vines had spread, indeed, over the trees, and the clusters
of grapes were just now in their prime, very ripe and rich. This was a
surprising discovery, and I was exceeding glad of them; but I was warned by my
experience to eat sparingly of them; remembering that when I was ashore in
Barbary, the eating of grapes killed several of our Englishmen, who were slaves
there, by throwing them into fluxes and fevers. But I found an excellent use
for these grapes; and that was, to cure or dry them in the sun, and keep them
as dried grapes or raisins are kept, which I thought would be, as indeed they
were, wholesome and agreeable to eat when no grapes could be had.
I spent all that
evening there, and went not back to my habitation; which, by the way, was the
first night, as I might say, I had lain from home. In the night, I took my
first contrivance, and got up in a tree, where I slept well; and the next
morning proceeded upon my discovery; travelling nearly four miles, as I might
judge by the length of the valley, keeping still due north, with a ridge of
hills on the south and north side of me. At the end of this march I came to an
opening where the country seemed to descend to the west; and a little spring of
fresh water, which issued out of the side of the hill by me, ran the other way,
that is, due east; and the country appeared so fresh, so green, so flourishing,
everything being in a constant verdure or flourish of spring that it looked
like a planted garden. I descended a little on the side of that delicious vale,
surveying it with a secret kind of pleasure, though mixed with my other
afflicting thoughts, to think that this was all my own; that I was king and
lord of all this country indefensibly, and had a right of possession; and if I
could convey it, I might have it in inheritance as completely as any lord of a
manor in England. I saw here abundance of cocoa trees, orange, and lemon, and
citron trees; but all wild, and very few bearing any fruit, at least not then.
However, the green limes that I gathered were not only pleasant to eat, but
very wholesome; and I mixed their juice afterwards with water, which made it
very wholesome, and very cool and refreshing. I found now I had business enough
to gather and carry home; and I resolved to lay up a store as well of grapes as
limes and lemons, to furnish myself for the wet season, which I knew was
approaching. In order to do this, I gathered a great heap of grapes in one
place, a lesser heap in another place, and a great parcel of limes and lemons
in another place; and taking a few of each with me, I travelled homewards;
resolving to come again, and bring a bag or sack, or what I could make, to
carry the rest home. Accordingly, having spent three days in this journey, I
came home (so I must now call my tent and my cave); but before I got thither
the grapes were spoiled; the richness of the fruit and the weight of the juice
having broken them and bruised them, they were good for little or nothing; as
to the limes, they were good, but I could bring but a few.
The next day, being the
nineteenth, I went back, having made me two small bags to bring home my
harvest; but I was surprised, when coming to my heap of grapes, which were so
rich and fine when I gathered them, to find them all spread about, trod to
pieces, and dragged about, some here, some there, and abundance eaten and
devoured. By this I concluded there were some wild creatures thereabouts, which
had done this; but what they were I knew not. However, as I found there was no
laying them up on heaps, and no carrying them away in a sack, but that one way
they would be destroyed, and the other way they would be crushed with their own
weight, I took another course; for I gathered a large quantity of the grapes,
and hung them trees, that they might cure and dry in the sun; and as for the
limes and lemons, I carried as many back as I could well stand under.
When I came home from
this journey, I contemplated with great pleasure the fruitfulness of that
valley, and the pleasantness of the situation; the security from storms on that
side of the water, and the wood: and concluded that I had pitched upon a place
to fix my abode which was by far the worst part of the country. Upon the whole,
I began to consider of removing my habitation, and looking out for a place
equally safe as where now I was situate, if possible, in that pleasant,
fruitful part of the island.
This thought ran long
in my head, and I was exceeding fond of it for some time, the pleasantness of
the place tempting me; but when I came to a nearer view of it, I considered
that I was now by the seaside, where it was at least possible that something
might happen to my advantage, and, by the same ill fate that brought me hither
might bring some other unhappy wretches to the same place; and though it was
scarce probable that any such thing should ever happen, yet to enclose myself
among the hills and woods in the centre of the island was to anticipate my
bondage, and to render such an affair not only improbable, but impossible; and
that therefore I ought not by any means to remove. However, I was so enamoured of
this place, that I spent much of my time there for the whole of the remaining
part of the month of July; and though upon second thoughts, I resolved not to
remove, yet I built me a little kind of a bower, and surrounded it at a
distance with a strong fence, being a double hedge, as high as I could reach,
well staked and filled between with brushwood; and here I lay very secure,
sometimes two or three nights together; always going over it with a ladder; so
that I fancied now I had my country house and my sea- coast house; and this
work took me up to the beginning of August.
I had but newly
finished my fence, and began to enjoy my labour, when the rains came on, and
made me stick close to my first habitation; for though I had made me a tent
like the other, with a piece of a sail, and spread it very well, yet I had not
the shelter of a hill to keep me from storms, nor a cave behind me to retreat
into when the rains were extraordinary.
About the beginning of
August, as I said, I had finished my bower, and began to enjoy myself. The 3rd
of August, I found the grapes I had hung up perfectly dried, and, indeed, were
excellent good raisins of the sun; so I began to take them down from the trees,
and it was very happy that I did so, for the rains which followed would have
spoiled them, and I had lost the best part of my winter food; for I had above
two hundred large bunches of them. No sooner had I taken them all down, and
carried the most of them home to my cave, than it began to rain; and from
hence, which was the 14th of August, it rained, more or less, every day till
the middle of October; and sometimes so violently, that I could not stir out of
my cave for several days.
In this season I was
much surprised with the increase of my family; I had been concerned for the
loss of one of my cats, who ran away from me, or, as I thought, had been dead,
and I heard no more tidings of her till, to my astonishment, she came home
about the end of August with three kittens. This was the more strange to me
because, though I had killed a wild cat, as I called it, with my gun, yet I
thought it was quite a different kind from our European cats; but the young
cats were the same kind of house-breed as the old one; and both my cats being
females, I thought it very strange. But from these three cats I afterwards came
to be so pestered with cats that I was forced to kill them like vermin or wild
beasts, and to drive them from my house as much as possible.
From the 14th of August
to the 26th, incessant rain, so that I could not stir, and was now very careful
not to be much wet. In this confinement, I began to be straitened for food: but
venturing out twice, I one day killed a goat; and the last day, which was the
26th, found a very large tortoise, which was a treat to me, and my food was
regulated thus: I ate a bunch of raisins for my breakfast; a piece of the goat’s
flesh, or of the turtle, for my dinner, broiled - for, to my great misfortune,
I had no vessel to boil or stew anything; and two or three of the turtle’s eggs
for my supper.
During this confinement
in my cover by the rain, I worked daily two or three hours at enlarging my
cave, and by degrees worked it on towards one side, till I came to the outside
of the hill, and made a door or way out, which came beyond my fence or wall;
and so I came in and out this way. But I was not perfectly easy at lying so
open; for, as I had managed myself before, I was in a perfect enclosure;
whereas now I thought I lay exposed, and open for anything to come in upon me;
and yet I could not perceive that there was any living thing to fear, the
biggest creature that I had yet seen upon the island being a goat.
SEPT. 30. - I was now
come to the unhappy anniversary of my landing. I cast up the notches on my
post, and found I had been on shore three hundred and sixty-five days. I kept
this day as a solemn fast, setting it apart for religious exercise, prostrating
myself on the ground with the most serious humiliation, confessing my sins to
God, acknowledging His righteous judgments upon me, and praying to Him to have
mercy on me through Jesus Christ; and not having tasted the least refreshment
for twelve hours, even till the going down of the sun, I then ate a
biscuit-cake and a bunch of grapes, and went to bed, finishing the day as I
began it. I had all this time observed no Sabbath day; for as at first I had no
sense of religion upon my mind, I had, after some time, omitted to distinguish
the weeks, by making a longer notch than ordinary for the Sabbath day, and so
did not really know what any of the days were; but now, having cast up the days
as above, I found I had been there a year; so I divided it into weeks, and set
apart every seventh day for a Sabbath; though I found at the end of my account
I had lost a day or two in my reckoning. A little after this, my ink began to
fail me, and so I contented myself to use it more sparingly, and to write down
only the most remarkable events of my life, without continuing a daily
memorandum of other things.
The rainy season and
the dry season began now to appear regular to me, and I learned to divide them
so as to provide for them accordingly; but I bought all my experience before I
had it, and this I am going to relate was one of the most discouraging
experiments that I made.
I have mentioned that I
had saved the few ears of barley and rice, which I had so surprisingly found
spring up, as I thought, of themselves, and I believe there were about thirty
stalks of rice, and about twenty of barley; and now I thought it a proper time
to sow it, after the rains, the sun being in its southern position, going from
me. Accordingly, I dug up a piece of ground as well as I could with my wooden
spade, and dividing it into two parts, I sowed my grain; but as I was sowing,
it casually occurred to my thoughts that I would not sow it all at first,
because I did not know when was the proper time for it, so I sowed about
two-thirds of the seed, leaving about a handful of each. It was a great comfort
to me afterwards that I did so, for not one grain of what I sowed this time came
to anything: for the dry months following, the earth having had no rain after
the seed was sown, it had no moisture to assist its growth, and never came up
at all till the wet season had come again, and then it grew as if it had been
but newly sown. Finding my first seed did not grow, which I easily imagined was
by the drought, I sought for a moister piece of ground to make another trial
in, and I dug up a piece of ground near my new bower, and sowed the rest of my
seed in February, a little before the vernal equinox; and this having the rainy
months of March and April to water it, sprung up very pleasantly, and yielded a
very good crop; but having part of the seed left only, and not daring to sow
all that I had, I had but a small quantity at last, my whole crop not amounting
to above half a peck of each kind. But by this experiment I was made master of
my business, and knew exactly when the proper season was to sow, and that I
might expect two seed-times and two harvests every year.
While this corn was growing
I made a little discovery, which was of use to me afterwards. As soon as the
rains were over, and the weather began to settle, which was about the month of
November, I made a visit up the country to my bower, where, though I had not
been some months, yet I found all things just as I left them. The circle or
double hedge that I had made was not only firm and entire, but the stakes which
I had cut out of some trees that grew thereabouts were all shot out and grown
with long branches, as much as a willow-tree usually shoots the first year
after lopping its head. I could not tell what tree to call it that these stakes
were cut from. I was surprised, and yet very well pleased, to see the young
trees grow; and I pruned them, and led them up to grow as much alike as I
could; and it is scarce credible how beautiful a figure they grew into in three
years; so that though the hedge made a circle of about twenty-five yards in
diameter, yet the trees, for such I might now call them, soon covered it, and
it was a complete shade, sufficient to lodge under all the dry season. This
made me resolve to cut some more stakes, and make me a hedge like this, in a
semi-circle round my wall (I mean that of my first dwelling), which I did; and
placing the trees or stakes in a double row, at about eight yards distance from
my first fence, they grew presently, and were at first a fine cover to my
habitation, and afterwards served for a defence also, as I shall observe in its
order.
I found now that the
seasons of the year might generally be divided, not into summer and winter, as
in Europe, but into the rainy seasons and the dry seasons, which were generally
thus:- The half of February, the whole of March, and the half of April - rainy,
the sun being then on or near the equinox.
The half of April, the
whole of May, June, and July, and the half of August - dry, the sun being then
to the north of the line.
The half of August, the
whole of September, and the half of October - rainy, the sun being then come
back.
The half of October,
the whole of November, December, and January, and the half of February - dry,
the sun being then to the south of the line.
The rainy seasons
sometimes held longer or shorter as the winds happened to blow, but this was
the general observation I made. After I had found by experience the ill
consequences of being abroad in the rain, I took care to furnish myself with
provisions beforehand, that I might not be obliged to go out, and I sat within
doors as much as possible during the wet months. This time I found much
employment, and very suitable also to the time, for I found great occasion for
many things which I had no way to furnish myself with but by hard labour and
constant application; particularly I tried many ways to make myself a basket,
but all the twigs I could get for the purpose proved so brittle that they would
do nothing. It proved of excellent advantage to me now, that when I was a boy,
I used to take great delight in standing at a basket-maker’s, in the town where
my father lived, to see them make their wicker-ware; and being, as boys usually
are, very officious to help, and a great observer of the manner in which they
worked those things, and sometimes lending a hand, I had by these means full
knowledge of the methods of it, and I wanted nothing but the materials, when it
came into my mind that the twigs of that tree from whence I cut my stakes that
grew might possibly be as tough as the sallows, willows, and osiers in England,
and I resolved to try. Accordingly, the next day I went to my country house, as
I called it, and cutting some of the smaller twigs, I found them to my purpose
as much as I could desire; whereupon I came the next time prepared with a
hatchet to cut down a quantity, which I soon found, for there was great plenty
of them. These I set up to dry within my circle or hedge, and when they were
fit for use I carried them to my cave; and here, during the next season, I
employed myself in making, as well as I could, a great many baskets, both to
carry earth or to carry or lay up anything, as I had occasion; and though I did
not finish them very handsomely, yet I made them sufficiently serviceable for
my purpose; thus, afterwards, I took care never to be without them; and as my
wicker-ware decayed, I made more, especially strong, deep baskets to place my
corn in, instead of sacks, when I should come to have any quantity of it.
Having mastered this
difficulty, and employed a world of time about it, I bestirred myself to see,
if possible, how to supply two wants. I had no vessels to hold anything that
was liquid, except two runlets, which were almost full of rum, and some glass
bottles - some of the common size, and others which were case bottles, square,
for the holding of water, spirits, &c. I had not so much as a pot to boil
anything, except a great kettle, which I saved out of the ship, and which was
too big for such as I desired it - viz. to make broth, and stew a bit of meat
by itself. The second thing I fain would have had was a tobacco-pipe, but it
was impossible to me to make one; however, I found a contrivance for that, too,
at last. I employed myself in planting my second rows of stakes or piles, and
in this wicker-working all the summer or dry season, when another business took
me up more time than it could be imagined I could spare.
I MENTIONED before that
I had a great mind to see the whole island, and that I had travelled up the
brook, and so on to where I built my bower, and where I had an opening quite to
the sea, on the other side of the island. I now resolved to travel quite across
to the sea-shore on that side; so, taking my gun, a hatchet, and my dog, and a
larger quantity of powder and shot than usual, with two biscuit-cakes and a
great bunch of raisins in my pouch for my store, I began my journey. When I had
passed the vale where my bower stood, as above, I came within view of the sea
to the west, and it being a very clear day, I fairly descried land - whether an
island or a continent I could not tell; but it lay very high, extending from
the W. to the W.S.W. at a very great distance; by my guess it could not be less
than fifteen or twenty leagues off.
I could not tell what
part of the world this might be, otherwise than that I knew it must be part of
America, and, as I concluded by all my observations, must be near the Spanish
dominions, and perhaps was all inhabited by savages, where, if I had landed, I
had been in a worse condition than I was now; and therefore I acquiesced in the
dispositions of Providence, which I began now to own and to believe ordered
everything for the best; I say I quieted my mind with this, and left off
afflicting myself with fruitless wishes of being there.
Besides, after some
thought upon this affair, I considered that if this land was the Spanish coast,
I should certainly, one time or other, see some vessel pass or repass one way
or other; but if not, then it was the savage coast between the Spanish country
and Brazils, where are found the worst of savages; for they are cannibals or
men-eaters, and fail not to murder and devour all the human bodies that fall
into their hands.
With these
considerations, I walked very leisurely forward. I found that side of the
island where I now was much pleasanter than mine - the open or savannah fields
sweet, adorned with flowers and grass, and full of very fine woods. I saw
abundance of parrots, and fain I would have caught one, if possible, to have
kept it to be tame, and taught it to speak to me. I did, after some
painstaking, catch a young parrot, for I knocked it down with a stick, and
having recovered it, I brought it home; but it was some years before I could
make him speak; however, at last I taught him to call me by name very
familiarly. But the accident that followed, though it be a trifle, will be very
diverting in its place.
I was exceedingly
diverted with this journey. I found in the low grounds hares (as I thought them
to be) and foxes; but they differed greatly from all the other kinds I had met
with, nor could I satisfy myself to eat them, though I killed several. But I
had no need to be venturous, for I had no want of food, and of that which was
very good too, especially these three sorts, viz. goats, pigeons, and turtle,
or tortoise, which added to my grapes, Leadenhall market could not have furnished
a table better than I, in proportion to the company; and though my case was
deplorable enough, yet I had great cause for thankfulness that I was not driven
to any extremities for food, but had rather plenty, even to dainties.
I never travelled in
this journey above two miles outright in a day, or thereabouts; but I took so
many turns and re-turns to see what discoveries I could make, that I came weary
enough to the place where I resolved to sit down all night; and then I either
reposed myself in a tree, or surrounded myself with a row of stakes set upright
in the ground, either from one tree to another, or so as no wild creature could
come at me without waking me.
As soon as I came to
the sea-shore, I was surprised to see that I had taken up my lot on the worst
side of the island, for here, indeed, the shore was covered with innumerable
turtles, whereas on the other side I had found but three in a year and a half.
Here was also an infinite number of fowls of many kinds, some which I had seen,
and some which I had not seen before, and many of them very good meat, but such
as I knew not the names of, except those called penguins.
I could have shot as
many as I pleased, but was very sparing of my powder and shot, and therefore had
more mind to kill a she-goat if I could, which I could better feed on; and
though there were many goats here, more than on my side the island, yet it was
with much more difficulty that I could come near them, the country being flat
and even, and they saw me much sooner than when I was on the hills.
I confess this side of
the country was much pleasanter than mine; but yet I had not the least
inclination to remove, for as I was fixed in my habitation it became natural to
me, and I seemed all the while I was here to be as it were upon a journey, and
from home. However, I travelled along the shore of the sea towards the east, I
suppose about twelve miles, and then setting up a great pole upon the shore for
a mark, I concluded I would go home again, and that the next journey I took
should be on the other side of the island east from my dwelling, and so round
till I came to my post again.
I took another way to
come back than that I went, thinking I could easily keep all the island so much
in my view that I could not miss finding my first dwelling by viewing the
country; but I found myself mistaken, for being come about two or three miles,
I found myself descended into a very large valley, but so surrounded with
hills, and those hills covered with wood, that I could not see which was my way
by any direction but that of the sun, nor even then, unless I knew very well
the position of the sun at that time of the day. It happened, to my further
misfortune, that the weather proved hazy for three or four days while I was in
the valley, and not being able to see the sun, I wandered about very
uncomfortably, and at last was obliged to find the seaside, look for my post,
and come back the same way I went: and then, by easy journeys, I turned
homeward, the weather being exceeding hot, and my gun, ammunition, hatchet, and
other things very heavy.
In this journey my dog
surprised a young kid, and seized upon it; and I, running in to take hold of
it, caught it, and saved it alive from the dog. I had a great mind to bring it home
if I could, for I had often been musing whether it might not be possible to get
a kid or two, and so raise a breed of tame goats, which might supply me when my
powder and shot should be all spent. I made a collar for this little creature,
and with a string, which I made of some rope-yam, which I always carried about
me, I led him along, though with some difficulty, till I came to my bower, and
there I enclosed him and left him, for I was very impatient to be at home, from
whence I had been absent above a month.
I cannot express what a
satisfaction it was to me to come into my old hutch, and lie down in my
hammock-bed. This little wandering journey, without settled place of abode, had
been so unpleasant to me, that my own house, as I called it to myself, was a
perfect settlement to me compared to that; and it rendered everything about me
so comfortable, that I resolved I would never go a great way from it again
while it should be my lot to stay on the island.
I reposed myself here a
week, to rest and regale myself after my long journey; during which most of the
time was taken up in the weighty affair of making a cage for my Poll, who began
now to be a mere domestic, and to be well acquainted with me. Then I began to
think of the poor kid which I had penned in within my little circle, and
resolved to go and fetch it home, or give it some food; accordingly I went, and
found it where I left it, for indeed it could not get out, but was almost
starved for want of food. I went and cut boughs of trees, and branches of such
shrubs as I could find, and threw it over, and having fed it, I tied it as I
did before, to lead it away; but it was so tame with being hungry, that I had
no need to have tied it, for it followed me like a dog: and as I continually
fed it, the creature became so loving, so gentle, and so fond, that it became
from that time one of my domestics also, and would never leave me afterwards.
The rainy season of the
autumnal equinox was now come, and I kept the 30th of September in the same
solemn manner as before, being the anniversary of my landing on the island,
having now been there two years, and no more prospect of being delivered than
the first day I came there, I spent the whole day in humble and thankful
acknowledgments of the many wonderful mercies which my solitary condition was
attended with, and without which it might have been infinitely more miserable.
I gave humble and hearty thanks that God had been pleased to discover to me
that it was possible I might be more happy in this solitary condition than I
should have been in the liberty of society, and in all the pleasures of the
world; that He could fully make up to me the deficiencies of my solitary state,
and the want of human society, by His presence and the communications of His
grace to my soul; supporting, comforting, and encouraging me to depend upon His
providence here, and hope for His eternal presence hereafter.
It was now that I began
sensibly to feel how much more happy this life I now led was, with all its
miserable circumstances, than the wicked, cursed, abominable life I led all the
past part of my days; and now I changed both my sorrows and my joys; my very
desires altered, my affections changed their gusts, and my delights were
perfectly new from what they were at my first coming, or, indeed, for the two
years past.
Before, as I walked
about, either on my hunting or for viewing the country, the anguish of my soul
at my condition would break out upon me on a sudden, and my very heart would
die within me, to think of the woods, the mountains, the deserts I was in, and
how I was a prisoner, locked up with the eternal bars and bolts of the ocean,
in an uninhabited wilderness, without redemption. In the midst of the greatest
composure of my mind, this would break out upon me like a storm, and make me
wring my hands and weep like a child. Sometimes it would take me in the middle
of my work, and I would immediately sit down and sigh, and look upon the ground
for an hour or two together; and this was still worse to me, for if I could
burst out into tears, or vent myself by words, it would go off, and the grief,
having exhausted itself, would abate.
But now I began to
exercise myself with new thoughts: I daily read the word of God, and applied
all the comforts of it to my present state. One morning, being very sad, I
opened the Bible upon these words, "I will never, never leave thee, nor
forsake thee." Immediately it occurred that these words were to me; why
else should they be directed in such a manner, just at the moment when I was
mourning over my condition, as one forsaken of God and man? "Well,
then," said I, "if God does not forsake me, of what ill consequence
can it be, or what matters it, though the world should all forsake me, seeing
on the other hand, if I had all the world, and should lose the favour and
blessing of God, there would be no comparison in the loss?"
From this moment I
began to conclude in my mind that it was possible for me to be more happy in
this forsaken, solitary condition than it was probable I should ever have been
in any other particular state in the world; and with this thought I was going
to give thanks to God for bringing me to this place. I know not what it was,
but something shocked my mind at that thought, and I durst not speak the words.
"How canst thou become such a hypocrite," said I, even audibly,
"to pretend to be thankful for a condition which, however thou mayest
endeavour to be contented with, thou wouldst rather pray heartily to be
delivered from?" So I stopped there; but though I could not say I thanked
God for being there, yet I sincerely gave thanks to God for opening my eyes, by
whatever afflicting providences, to see the former condition of my life, and to
mourn for my wickedness, and repent. I never opened the Bible, or shut it, but my
very soul within me blessed God for directing my friend in England, without any
order of mine, to pack it up among my goods, and for assisting me afterwards to
save it out of the wreck of the ship.
Thus, and in this
disposition of mind, I began my third year; and though I have not given the
reader the trouble of so particular an account of my works this year as the
first, yet in general it may be observed that I was very seldom idle, but
having regularly divided my time according to the several daily employments
that were before me, such as: first, my duty to God, and the reading the
Scriptures, which I constantly set apart some time for thrice every day;
secondly, the going abroad with my gun for food, which generally took me up
three hours in every morning, when it did not rain; thirdly, the ordering,
cutting, preserving, and cooking what I had killed or caught for my supply;
these took up great part of the day. Also, it is to be considered, that in the
middle of the day, when the sun was in the zenith, the violence of the heat was
too great to stir out; so that about four hours in the evening was all the time
I could be supposed to work in, with this exception, that sometimes I changed
my hours of hunting and working, and went to work in the morning, and abroad
with my gun in the afternoon.
To this short time
allowed for labour I desire may be added the exceeding laboriousness of my
work; the many hours which, for want of tools, want of help, and want of skill,
everything I did took up out of my time. For example, I was full two and forty
days in making a board for a long shelf, which I wanted in my cave; whereas,
two sawyers, with their tools and a saw-pit, would have cut six of them out of
the same tree in half a day.
My case was this: it
was to be a large tree which was to be cut down, because my board was to be a
broad one. This tree I was three days in cutting down, and two more cutting off
the boughs, and reducing it to a log or piece of timber. With inexpressible
hacking and hewing I reduced both the sides of it into chips till it began to
be light enough to move; then I turned it, and made one side of it smooth and
flat as a board from end to end; then, turning that side downward, cut the
other side til I brought the plank to be about three inches thick, and smooth
on both sides. Any one may judge the labour of my hands in such a piece of
work; but labour and patience carried me through that, and many other things. I
only observe this in particular, to show the reason why so much of my time went
away with so little work - viz. that what might be a little to be done with
help and tools, was a vast labour and required a prodigious time to do alone,
and by hand. But notwithstanding this, with patience and labour I got through
everything that my circumstances made necessary to me to do, as will appear by
what follows.
I was now, in the
months of November and December, expecting my crop of barley and rice. The
ground I had manured and dug up for them was not great; for, as I observed, my
seed of each was not above the quantity of half a peck, for I had lost one
whole crop by sowing in the dry season. But now my crop promised very well,
when on a sudden I found I was in danger of losing it all again by enemies of
several sorts, which it was scarcely possible to keep from it; as, first, the
goats, and wild creatures which I called hares, who, tasting the sweetness of
the blade, lay in it night and day, as soon as it came up, and eat it so close,
that it could get no time to shoot up into stalk.
This I saw no remedy
for but by making an enclosure about it with a hedge; which I did with a great
deal of toil, and the more, because it required speed. However, as my arable
land was but small, suited to my crop, I got it totally well fenced in about
three weeks’ time; and shooting some of the creatures in the daytime, I set my
dog to guard it in the night, tying him up to a stake at the gate, where he
would stand and bark all night long; so in a little time the enemies forsook
the place, and the corn grew very strong and well, and began to ripen apace.
But as the beasts
ruined me before, while my corn was in the blade, so the birds were as likely
to ruin me now, when it was in the ear; for, going along by the place to see
how it throve, I saw my little crop surrounded with fowls, of I know not how
many sorts, who stood, as it were, watching till I should be gone. I
immediately let fly among them, for I always had my gun with me. I had no
sooner shot, but there rose up a little cloud of fowls, which I had not seen at
all, from among the corn itself.
This touched me
sensibly, for I foresaw that in a few days they would devour all my hopes; that
I should be starved, and never be able to raise a crop at all; and what to do I
could not tell; however, I resolved not to lose my corn, if possible, though I
should watch it night and day. In the first place, I went among it to see what
damage was already done, and found they had spoiled a good deal of it; but that
as it was yet too green for them, the loss was not so great but that the
remainder was likely to be a good crop if it could be saved.
I stayed by it to load
my gun, and then coming away, I could easily see the thieves sitting upon all
the trees about me, as if they only waited till I was gone away, and the event
proved it to be so; for as I walked off, as if I was gone, I was no sooner out
of their sight than they dropped down one by one into the corn again. I was so
provoked, that I could not have patience to stay till more came on, knowing
that every grain that they ate now was, as it might be said, a peck-loaf to me
in the consequence; but coming up to the hedge, I fired again, and killed three
of them. This was what I wished for; so I took them up, and served them as we
serve notorious thieves in England - hanged them in chains, for a terror to of
them. It is impossible to imagine that this should have such an effect as it
had, for the fowls would not only not come at the corn, but, in short, they
forsook all that part of the island, and I could never see a bird near the
place as long as my scarecrows hung there. This I was very glad of, you may be
sure, and about the latter end of December, which was our second harvest of the
year, I reaped my corn.
I was sadly put to it
for a scythe or sickle to cut it down, and all I could do was to make one, as
well as I could, out of one of the broadswords, or cutlasses, which I saved
among the arms out of the ship. However, as my first crop was but small, I had
no great difficulty to cut it down; in short, I reaped it in my way, for I cut
nothing off but the ears, and carried it away in a great basket which I had
made, and so rubbed it out with my hands; and at the end of all my harvesting,
I found that out of my half-peck of seed I had near two bushels of rice, and about
two bushels and a half of barley; that is to say, by my guess, for I had no
measure at that time.
However, this was a
great encouragement to me, and I foresaw that, in time, it would please God to
supply me with bread. And yet here I was perplexed again, for I neither knew
how to grind or make meal of my corn, or indeed how to clean it and part it;
nor, if made into meal, how to make bread of it; and if how to make it, yet I
knew not how to bake it. These things being added to my desire of having a good
quantity for store, and to secure a constant supply, I resolved not to taste
any of this crop but to preserve it all for seed against the next season; and
in the meantime to employ all my study and hours of working to accomplish this
great work of providing myself with corn and bread.
It might be truly said,
that now I worked for my bread. I believe few people have thought much upon the
strange multitude of little things necessary in the providing, producing,
curing, dressing, making, and finishing this one article of bread.
I, that was reduced to
a mere state of nature, found this to my daily discouragement; and was made
more sensible of it every hour, even after I had got the first handful of
seed-corn, which, as I have said, came up unexpectedly, and indeed to a
surprise.
First, I had no plough
to turn up the earth - no spade or shovel to dig it. Well, this I conquered by
making me a wooden spade, as I observed before; but this did my work but in a
wooden manner; and though it cost me a great many days to make it, yet, for
want of iron, it not only wore out soon, but made my work the harder, and made
it be performed much worse. However, this I bore with, and was content to work
it out with patience, and bear with the badness of the performance. When the
corn was sown, I had no harrow, but was forced to go over it myself, and drag a
great heavy bough of a tree over it, to scratch it, as it may be called, rather
than rake or harrow it. When it was growing, and grown, I have observed already
how many things I wanted to fence it, secure it, mow or reap it, cure and carry
it home, thrash, part it from the chaff, and save it. Then I wanted a mill to
grind it sieves to dress it, yeast and salt to make it into bread, and an oven
to bake it; but all these things I did without, as shall be observed; and yet
the corn was an inestimable comfort and advantage to me too. All this, as I
said, made everything laborious and tedious to me; but that there was no help
for. Neither was my time so much loss to me, because, as I had divided it, a
certain part of it was every day appointed to these works; and as I had
resolved to use none of the corn for bread till I had a greater quantity by me,
I had the next six months to apply myself wholly, by labour and invention, to furnish
myself with utensils proper for the performing all the operations necessary for
making the corn, when I had it, fit for my use.
BUT first I was to
prepare more land, for I had now seed enough to sow above an acre of ground.
Before I did this, I had a week’s work at least to make me a spade, which, when
it was done, was but a sorry one indeed, and very heavy, and required double
labour to work with it. However, I got through that, and sowed my seed in two
large flat pieces of ground, as near my house as I could find them to my mind,
and fenced them in with a good hedge, the stakes of which were all cut off that
wood which I had set before, and knew it would grow; so that, in a year’s time,
I knew I should have a quick or living hedge, that would want but little
repair. This work did not take me up less than three months, because a great
part of that time was the wet season, when I could not go abroad. Within-doors,
that is when it rained and I could not go out, I found employment in the
following occupations - always observing, that all the while I was at work I
diverted myself with talking to my parrot, and teaching him to speak; and I
quickly taught him to know his own name, and at last to speak it out pretty
loud, "Poll," which was the first word I ever heard spoken in the
island by any mouth but my own. This, therefore, was not my work, but an
assistance to my work; for now, as I said, I had a great employment upon my
hands, as follows: I had long studied to make, by some means or other, some
earthen vessels, which, indeed, I wanted sorely, but knew not where to come at
them. However, considering the heat of the climate, I did not doubt but if I
could find out any clay, I might make some pots that might, being dried in the
sun, be hard enough and strong enough to bear handling, and to hold anything
that was dry, and required to be kept so; and as this was necessary in the
preparing corn, meal, &c., which was the thing I was doing, I resolved to
make some as large as I could, and fit only to stand like jars, to hold what
should be put into them.
It would make the
reader pity me, or rather laugh at me, to tell how many awkward ways I took to
raise this paste; what odd, misshapen, ugly things I made; how many of them
fell in and how many fell out, the clay not being stiff enough to bear its own
weight; how many cracked by the over-violent heat of the sun, being set out too
hastily; and how many fell in pieces with only removing, as well before as
after they were dried; and, in a word, how, after having laboured hard to find
the clay - to dig it, to temper it, to bring it home, and work it - I could not
make above two large earthen ugly things (I cannot call them jars) in about two
months’ labour.
However, as the sun
baked these two very dry and hard, I lifted them very gently up, and set them
down again in two great wicker baskets, which I had made on purpose for them,
that they might not break; and as between the pot and the basket there was a
little room to spare, I stuffed it full of the rice and barley straw; and these
two pots being to stand always dry I thought would hold my dry corn, and
perhaps the meal, when the corn was bruised.
Though I miscarried so
much in my design for large pots, yet I made several smaller things with better
success; such as little round pots, flat dishes, pitchers, and pipkins, and any
things my hand turned to; and the heat of the sun baked them quite hard.
But all this would not
answer my end, which was to get an earthen pot to hold what was liquid, and
bear the fire, which none of these could do. It happened after some time,
making a pretty large fire for cooking my meat, when I went to put it out after
I had done with it, I found a broken piece of one of my earthenware vessels in
the fire, burnt as hard as a stone, and red as a tile. I was agreeably
surprised to see it, and said to myself, that certainly they might be made to
burn whole, if they would burn broken.
This set me to study
how to order my fire, so as to make it burn some pots. I had no notion of a
kiln, such as the potters burn in, or of glazing them with lead, though I had
some lead to do it with; but I placed three large pipkins and two or three pots
in a pile, one upon another, and placed my firewood all round it, with a great
heap of embers under them. I plied the fire with fresh fuel round the outside
and upon the top, till I saw the pots in the inside red-hot quite through, and
observed that they did not crack at all. When I saw them clear red, I let them
stand in that heat about five or six hours, till I found one of them, though it
did not crack, did melt or run; for the sand which was mixed with the clay
melted by the violence of the heat, and would have run into glass if I had gone
on; so I slacked my fire gradually till the pots began to abate of the red
colour; and watching them all night, that I might not let the fire abate too
fast, in the morning I had three very good (I will not say handsome) pipkins,
and two other earthen pots, as hard burnt as could be desired, and one of them
perfectly glazed with the running of the sand.
After this experiment,
I need not say that I wanted no sort of earthenware for my use; but I must needs
say as to the shapes of them, they were very indifferent, as any one may
suppose, when I had no way of making them but as the children make dirt pies,
or as a woman would make pies that never learned to raise paste.
No joy at a thing of so
mean a nature was ever equal to mine, when I found I had made an earthen pot
that would bear the fire; and I had hardly patience to stay till they were cold
before I set one on the fire again with some water in it to boil me some meat,
which it did admirably well; and with a piece of a kid I made some very good
broth, though I wanted oatmeal, and several other ingredients requisite to make
it as good as I would have had it been.
My next concern was to
get me a stone mortar to stamp or beat some corn in; for as to the mill, there
was no thought of arriving at that perfection of art with one pair of hands. To
supply this want, I was at a great loss; for, of all the trades in the world, I
was as perfectly unqualified for a stone-cutter as for any whatever; neither
had I any tools to go about it with. I spent many a day to find out a great
stone big enough to cut hollow, and make fit for a mortar, and could find none
at all, except what was in the solid rock, and which I had no way to dig or cut
out; nor indeed were the rocks in the island of hardness sufficient, but were
all of a sandy, crumbling stone, which neither would bear the weight of a heavy
pestle, nor would break the corn without filling it with sand. So, after a
great deal of time lost in searching for a stone, I gave it over, and resolved
to look out for a great block of hard wood, which I found, indeed, much easier;
and getting one as big as I had strength to stir, I rounded it, and formed it
on the outside with my axe and hatchet, and then with the help of fire and
infinite labour, made a hollow place in it, as the Indians in Brazil make their
canoes. After this, I made a great heavy pestle or beater of the wood called
the iron-wood; and this I prepared and laid by against I had my next crop of
corn, which I proposed to myself to grind, or rather pound into meal to make
bread.
My next difficulty was
to make a sieve or searce, to dress my meal, and to part it from the bran and
the husk; without which I did not see it possible I could have any bread. This
was a most difficult thing even to think on, for to be sure I had nothing like
the necessary thing to make it - I mean fine thin canvas or stuff to searce the
meal through. And here I was at a full stop for many months; nor did I really
know what to do. Linen I had none left but what was mere rags; I had goat’s
hair, but neither knew how to weave it or spin it; and had I known how, here
were no tools to work it with. All the remedy that I found for this was, that
at last I did remember I had, among the seamen’s clothes which were saved out
of the ship, some neckcloths of calico or muslin; and with some pieces of these
I made three small sieves proper enough for the work; and thus I made shift for
some years: how I did afterwards, I shall show in its place.
The baking part was the
next thing to be considered, and how I should make bread when I came to have
corn; for first, I had no yeast. As to that part, there was no supplying the
want, so I did not concern myself much about it. But for an oven I was indeed
in great pain. At length I found out an experiment for that also, which was
this: I made some earthen-vessels very broad but not deep, that is to say,
about two feet diameter, and not above nine inches deep. These I burned in the
fire, as I had done the other, and laid them by; and when I wanted to bake, I
made a great fire upon my hearth, which I had paved with some square tiles of
my own baking and burning also; but I should not call them square.
When the firewood was
burned pretty much into embers or live coals, I drew them forward upon this
hearth, so as to cover it all over, and there I let them lie till the hearth
was very hot. Then sweeping away all the embers, I set down my loaf or loaves,
and whelming down the earthen pot upon them, drew the embers all round the
outside of the pot, to keep in and add to the heat; and thus as well as in the
best oven in the world, I baked my barley-loaves, and became in little time a
good pastrycook into the bargain; for I made myself several cakes and puddings
of the rice; but I made no pies, neither had I anything to put into them
supposing I had, except the flesh either of fowls or goats.
It need not be wondered
at if all these things took me up most part of the third year of my abode here;
for it is to be observed that in the intervals of these things I had my new
harvest and husbandry to manage; for I reaped my corn in its season, and
carried it home as well as I could, and laid it up in the ear, in my large
baskets, till I had time to rub it out, for I had no floor to thrash it on, or
instrument to thrash it with.
And now, indeed, my
stock of corn increasing, I really wanted to build my barns bigger; I wanted a
place to lay it up in, for the increase of the corn now yielded me so much,
that I had of the barley about twenty bushels, and of the rice as much or more;
insomuch that now I resolved to begin to use it freely; for my bread had been
quite gone a great while; also I resolved to see what quantity would be
sufficient for me a whole year, and to sow but once a year.
Upon the whole, I found
that the forty bushels of barley and rice were much more than I could consume
in a year; so I resolved to sow just the same quantity every year that I sowed
the last, in hopes that such a quantity would fully provide me with bread,
&c.
All the while these
things were doing, you may be sure my thoughts ran many times upon the prospect
of land which I had seen from the other side of the island; and I was not
without secret wishes that I were on shore there, fancying that, seeing the
mainland, and an inhabited country, I might find some way or other to convey
myself further, and perhaps at last find some means of escape.
But all this while I
made no allowance for the dangers of such an undertaking, and how I might fall
into the hands of savages, and perhaps such as I might have reason to think far
worse than the lions and tigers of Africa: that if I once came in their power,
I should run a hazard of more than a thousand to one of being killed, and
perhaps of being eaten; for I had heard that the people of the Caribbean coast
were cannibals or man-eaters, and I knew by the latitude that I could not be
far from that shore. Then, supposing they were not cannibals, yet they might
kill me, as many Europeans who had fallen into their hands had been served,
even when they had been ten or twenty together - much more I, that was but one,
and could make little or no defence; all these things, I say, which I ought to
have considered well; and did come into my thoughts afterwards, yet gave me no
apprehensions at first, and my head ran mightily upon the thought of getting
over to the shore.
Now I wished for my boy
Xury, and the long-boat with shoulder-of- mutton sail, with which I sailed
above a thousand miles on the coast of Africa; but this was in vain: then I
thought I would go and look at our ship’s boat, which, as I have said, was
blown up upon the shore a great way, in the storm, when we were first cast
away. She lay almost where she did at first, but not quite; and was turned, by
the force of the waves and the winds, almost bottom upward, against a high
ridge of beachy, rough sand, but no water about her. If I had had hands to have
refitted her, and to have launched her into the water, the boat would have done
well enough, and I might have gone back into the Brazils with her easily
enough; but I might have foreseen that I could no more turn her and set her
upright upon her bottom than I could remove the island; however, I went to the
woods, and cut levers and rollers, and brought them to the boat resolving to
try what I could do; suggesting to myself that if I could but turn her down, I
might repair the damage she had received, and she would be a very good boat,
and I might go to sea in her very easily.
I spared no pains,
indeed, in this piece of fruitless toil, and spent, I think, three or four
weeks about it; at last finding it impossible to heave it up with my little
strength, I fell to digging away the sand, to undermine it, and so to make it
fall down, setting pieces of wood to thrust and guide it right in the fall.
But when I had done
this, I was unable to stir it up again, or to get under it, much less to move
it forward towards the water; so I was forced to give it over; and yet, though
I gave over the hopes of the boat, my desire to venture over for the main
increased, rather than decreased, as the means for it seemed impossible.
This at length put me
upon thinking whether it was not possible to make myself a canoe, or periagua,
such as the natives of those climates make, even without tools, or, as I might
say, without hands, of the trunk of a great tree. This I not only thought
possible, but easy, and pleased myself extremely with the thoughts of making
it, and with my having much more convenience for it than any of the negroes or
Indians; but not at all considering the particular inconveniences which I lay
under more than the Indians did - viz. want of hands to move it, when it was
made, into the water - a difficulty much harder for me to surmount than all the
consequences of want of tools could be to them; for what was it to me, if when
I had chosen a vast tree in the woods, and with much trouble cut it down, if I
had been able with my tools to hew and dub the outside into the proper shape of
a boat, and burn or cut out the inside to make it hollow, so as to make a boat
of it - if, after all this, I must leave it just there where I found it, and
not be able to launch it into the water?
One would have thought
I could not have had the least reflection upon my mind of my circumstances
while I was making this boat, but I should have immediately thought how I
should get it into the sea; but my thoughts were so intent upon my voyage over
the sea in it, that I never once considered how I should get it off the land:
and it was really, in its own nature, more easy for me to guide it over
forty-five miles of sea than about forty-five fathoms of land, where it lay, to
set it afloat in the water.
I went to work upon
this boat the most like a fool that ever man did who had any of his senses
awake. I pleased myself with the design, without determining whether I was ever
able to undertake it; not but that the difficulty of launching my boat came
often into my head; but I put a stop to my inquiries into it by this foolish
answer which I gave myself - "Let me first make it; I warrant I will find
some way or other to get it along when it is done."
This was a most
preposterous method; but the eagerness of my fancy prevailed, and to work I
went. I felled a cedar-tree, and I question much whether Solomon ever had such
a one for the building of the Temple of Jerusalem; it was five feet ten inches
diameter at the lower part next the stump, and four feet eleven inches diameter
at the end of twenty-two feet; after which it lessened for a while, and then
parted into branches. It was not without infinite labour that I felled this
tree; I was twenty days hacking and hewing at it at the bottom; I was fourteen
more getting the branches and limbs and the vast spreading head cut off, which
I hacked and hewed through with axe and hatchet, and inexpressible labour;
after this, it cost me a month to shape it and dub it to a proportion, and to
something like the bottom of a boat, that it might swim upright as it ought to
do. It cost me near three months more to clear the inside, and work it out so
as to make an exact boat of it; this I did, indeed, without fire, by mere
mallet and chisel, and by the dint of hard labour, till I had brought it to be
a very handsome periagua, and big enough to have carried six-and-twenty men,
and consequently big enough to have carried me and all my cargo.
When I had gone through
this work I was extremely delighted with it. The boat was really much bigger
than ever I saw a canoe or periagua, that was made of one tree, in my life. Many
a weary stroke it had cost, you may be sure; and had I gotten it into the
water, I make no question, but I should have begun the maddest voyage, and the
most unlikely to be performed, that ever was undertaken.
But all my devices to
get it into the water failed me; though they cost me infinite labour too. It
lay about one hundred yards from the water, and not more; but the first
inconvenience was, it was up hill towards the creek. Well, to take away this
discouragement, I resolved to dig into the surface of the earth, and so make a
declivity: this I began, and it cost me a prodigious deal of pains (but who
grudge pains who have their deliverance in view?); but when this was worked
through, and this difficulty managed, it was still much the same, for I could
no more stir the canoe than I could the other boat. Then I measured the
distance of ground, and resolved to cut a dock or canal, to bring the water up
to the canoe, seeing I could not bring the canoe down to the water. Well, I
began this work; and when I began to enter upon it, and calculate how deep it
was to be dug, how broad, how the stuff was to be thrown out, I found that, by
the number of hands I had, being none but my own, it must have been ten or
twelve years before I could have gone through with it; for the shore lay so
high, that at the upper end it must have been at least twenty feet deep; so at
length, though with great reluctancy, I gave this attempt over also.
This grieved me
heartily; and now I saw, though too late, the folly of beginning a work before
we count the cost, and before we judge rightly of our own strength to go
through with it.
In the middle of this
work I finished my fourth year in this place, and kept my anniversary with the
same devotion, and with as much comfort as ever before; for, by a constant
study and serious application to the Word of God, and by the assistance of His
grace, I gained a different knowledge from what I had before. I entertained
different notions of things. I looked now upon the world as a thing remote,
which I had nothing to do with, no expectations from, and, indeed, no desires
about: in a word, I had nothing indeed to do with it, nor was ever likely to
have, so I thought it looked, as we may perhaps look upon it hereafter - viz.
as a place I had lived in, but was come out of it; and well might I say, as
Father Abraham to Dives, "Between me and thee is a great gulf fixed."
In the first place, I
was removed from all the wickedness of the world here; I had neither the lusts
of the flesh, the lusts of the eye, nor the pride of life. I had nothing to
covet, for I had all that I was now capable of enjoying; I was lord of the whole
manor; or, if I pleased, I might call myself king or emperor over the whole
country which I had possession of: there were no rivals; I had no competitor,
none to dispute sovereignty or command with me: I might have raised
ship-loadings of corn, but I had no use for it; so I let as little grow as I
thought enough for my occasion. I had tortoise or turtle enough, but now and
then one was as much as I could put to any use: I had timber enough to have
built a fleet of ships; and I had grapes enough to have made wine, or to have
cured into raisins, to have loaded that fleet when it had been built.
But all I could make
use of was all that was valuable: I had enough to eat and supply my wants, and
what was all the rest to me? If I killed more flesh than I could eat, the dog
must eat it, or vermin; if I sowed more corn than I could eat, it must be
spoiled; the trees that I cut down were lying to rot on the ground; I could
make no more use of them but for fuel, and that I had no occasion for but to
dress my food.
In a word, the nature
and experience of things dictated to me, upon just reflection, that all the
good things of this world are no farther good to us than they are for our use;
and that, whatever we may heap up to give others, we enjoy just as much as we
can use, and no more. The most covetous, griping miser in the world would have
been cured of the vice of covetousness if he had been in my case; for I
possessed infinitely more than I knew what to do with. I had no room for
desire, except it was of things which I had not, and they were but trifles,
though, indeed, of great use to me. I had, as I hinted before, a parcel of
money, as well gold as silver, about thirty-six pounds sterling. Alas! there
the sorry, useless stuff lay; I had no more manner of business for it; and
often thought with myself that I would have given a handful of it for a gross
of tobacco-pipes; or for a hand-mill to grind my corn; nay, I would have given
it all for a sixpenny-worth of turnip and carrot seed out of England, or for a
handful of peas and beans, and a bottle of ink. As it was, I had not the least
advantage by it or benefit from it; but there it lay in a drawer, and grew
mouldy with the damp of the cave in the wet seasons; and if I had had the
drawer full of diamonds, it had been the same case - they had been of no manner
of value to me, because of no use.
I had now brought my
state of life to be much easier in itself than it was at first, and much easier
to my mind, as well as to my body. I frequently sat down to meat with thankfulness,
and admired the hand of God’s providence, which had thus spread my table in the
wilderness. I learned to look more upon the bright side of my condition, and
less upon the dark side, and to consider what I enjoyed rather than what I
wanted; and this gave me sometimes such secret comforts, that I cannot express
them; and which I take notice of here, to put those discontented people in mind
of it, who cannot enjoy comfortably what God has given them, because they see
and covet something that He has not given them. All our discontents about what
we want appeared to me to spring from the want of thankfulness for what we
have.
Another reflection was
of great use to me, and doubtless would be so to any one that should fall into
such distress as mine was; and this was, to compare my present condition with
what I at first expected it would be; nay, with what it would certainly have
been, if the good providence of God had not wonderfully ordered the ship to be
cast up nearer to the shore, where I not only could come at her, but could
bring what I got out of her to the shore, for my relief and comfort; without
which, I had wanted for tools to work, weapons for defence, and gunpowder and
shot for getting my food.
I spent whole hours, I
may say whole days, in representing to myself, in the most lively colours, how
I must have acted if I had got nothing out of the ship. How I could not have so
much as got any food, except fish and turtles; and that, as it was long before
I found any of them, I must have perished first; that I should have lived, if I
had not perished, like a mere savage; that if I had killed a goat or a fowl, by
any contrivance, I had no way to flay or open it, or part the flesh from the
skin and the bowels, or to cut it up; but must gnaw it with my teeth, and pull
it with my claws, like a beast.
These reflections made
me very sensible of the goodness of Providence to me, and very thankful for my
present condition, with all its hardships and misfortunes; and this part also I
cannot but recommend to the reflection of those who are apt, in their misery,
to say, "Is any affliction like mine?" Let them consider how much
worse the cases of some people are, and their case might have been, if
Providence had thought fit.
I had another
reflection, which assisted me also to comfort my mind with hopes; and this was
comparing my present situation with what I had deserved, and had therefore
reason to expect from the hand of Providence. I had lived a dreadful life,
perfectly destitute of the knowledge and fear of God. I had been well
instructed by father and mother; neither had they been wanting to me in their
early endeavours to infuse a religious awe of God into my mind, a sense of my
duty, and what the nature and end of my being required of me. But, alas!
falling early into the seafaring life, which of all lives is the most destitute
of the fear of God, though His terrors are always before them; I say, falling
early into the seafaring life, and into seafaring company, all that little
sense of religion which I had entertained was laughed out of me by my
messmates; by a hardened despising of dangers, and the views of death, which
grew habitual to me by my long absence from all manner of opportunities to
converse with anything but what was like myself, or to hear anything that was
good or tended towards it.
So void was I of
everything that was good, or the least sense of what I was, or was to be, that,
in the greatest deliverances I enjoyed - such as my escape from Sallee; my
being taken up by the Portuguese master of the ship; my being planted so well
in the Brazils; my receiving the cargo from England, and the like - I never had
once the words "Thank God!" so much as on my mind, or in my mouth;
nor in the greatest distress had I so much as a thought to pray to Him, or so
much as to say, "Lord, have mercy upon me!" no, nor to mention the
name of God, unless it was to swear by, and blaspheme it.
I had terrible
reflections upon my mind for many months, as I have already observed, on
account of my wicked and hardened life past; and when I looked about me, and
considered what particular providences had attended me since my coming into
this place, and how God had dealt bountifully with me - had not only punished
me less than my iniquity had deserved, but had so plentifully provided for me -
this gave me great hopes that my repentance was accepted, and that God had yet
mercy in store for me.
With these reflections
I worked my mind up, not only to a resignation to the will of God in the
present disposition of my circumstances, but even to a sincere thankfulness for
my condition; and that I, who was yet a living man, ought not to complain,
seeing I had not the due punishment of my sins; that I enjoyed so many mercies
which I had no reason to have expected in that place; that I ought never more
to repine at my condition, but to rejoice, and to give daily thanks for that
daily bread, which nothing but a crowd of wonders could have brought; that I
ought to consider I had been fed even by a miracle, even as great as that of
feeding Elijah by ravens, nay, by a long series of miracles; and that I could
hardly have named a place in the uninhabitable part of the world where I could
have been cast more to my advantage; a place where, as I had no society, which
was my affliction on one hand, so I found no ravenous beasts, no furious wolves
or tigers, to threaten my life; no venomous creatures, or poisons, which I
might feed on to my hurt; no savages to murder and devour me. In a word, as my
life was a life of sorrow one way, so it was a life of mercy another; and I
wanted nothing to make it a life of comfort but to be able to make my sense of
God’s goodness to me, and care over me in this condition, be my daily
consolation; and after I did make a just improvement on these things, I went
away, and was no more sad. I had now been here so long that many things which I
had brought on shore for my help were either quite gone, or very much wasted
and near spent.
My ink, as I observed,
had been gone some time, all but a very little, which I eked out with water, a
little and a little, till it was so pale, it scarce left any appearance of
black upon the paper. As long as it lasted I made use of it to minute down the
days of the month on which any remarkable thing happened to me; and first, by
casting up times past, I remembered that there was a strange concurrence of
days in the various providences which befell me, and which, if I had been
superstitiously inclined to observe days as fatal or fortunate, I might have
had reason to have looked upon with a great deal of curiosity.
First, I had observed
that the same day that I broke away from my father and friends and ran away to
Hull, in order to go to sea, the same day afterwards I was taken by the Sallee
man-of-war, and made a slave; the same day of the year that I escaped out of
the wreck of that ship in Yarmouth Roads, that same day-year afterwards I made
my escape from Sallee in a boat; the same day of the year I was born on - viz.
the 30th of September, that same day I had my life so miraculously saved
twenty-six years after, when I was cast on shore in this island; so that my
wicked life and my solitary life began both on a day.
The next thing to my
ink being wasted was that of my bread - I mean the biscuit which I brought out
of the ship; this I had husbanded to the last degree, allowing myself but one
cake of bread a-day for above a year; and yet I was quite without bread for
near a year before I got any corn of my own, and great reason I had to be
thankful that I had any at all, the getting it being, as has been already
observed, next to miraculous.
My clothes, too, began
to decay; as to linen, I had had none a good while, except some chequered
shirts which I found in the chests of the other seamen, and which I carefully
preserved; because many times I could bear no other clothes on but a shirt; and
it was a very great help to me that I had, among all the men’s clothes of the
ship, almost three dozen of shirts. There were also, indeed, several thick
watch-coats of the seamen’s which were left, but they were too hot to wear; and
though it is true that the weather was so violently hot that there was no need
of clothes, yet I could not go quite naked - no, though I had been inclined to
it, which I was not - nor could I abide the thought of it, though I was alone.
The reason why I could not go naked was, I could not bear the heat of the sun
so well when quite naked as with some clothes on; nay, the very heat frequently
blistered my skin: whereas, with a shirt on, the air itself made some motion,
and whistling under the shirt, was twofold cooler than without it. No more
could I ever bring myself to go out in the heat of the sun without a cap or a
hat; the heat of the sun, beating with such violence as it does in that place,
would give me the headache presently, by darting so directly on my head,
without a cap or hat on, so that I could not bear it; whereas, if I put on my
hat it would presently go away.
Upon these views I
began to consider about putting the few rags I had, which I called clothes,
into some order; I had worn out all the waistcoats I had, and my business was
now to try if I could not make jackets out of the great watch-coats which I had
by me, and with such other materials as I had; so I set to work, tailoring, or
rather, indeed, botching, for I made most piteous work of it. However, I made
shift to make two or three new waistcoats, which I hoped would serve me a great
while: as for breeches or drawers, I made but a very sorry shift indeed till
afterwards.
I have mentioned that I
saved the skins of all the creatures that I killed, I mean four-footed ones,
and I had them hung up, stretched out with sticks in the sun, by which means
some of them were so dry and hard that they were fit for little, but others
were very useful. The first thing I made of these was a great cap for my head,
with the hair on the outside, to shoot off the rain; and this I performed so
well, that after I made me a suit of clothes wholly of these skins - that is to
say, a waistcoat, and breeches open at the knees, and both loose, for they were
rather wanting to keep me cool than to keep me warm. I must not omit to
acknowledge that they were wretchedly made; for if I was a bad carpenter, I was
a worse tailor. However, they were such as I made very good shift with, and
when I was out, if it happened to rain, the hair of my waistcoat and cap being
outermost, I was kept very dry.
After this, I spent a
great deal of time and pains to make an umbrella; I was, indeed, in great want
of one, and had a great mind to make one; I had seen them made in the Brazils,
where they are very useful in the great heats there, and I felt the heats every
jot as great here, and greater too, being nearer the equinox; besides, as I was
obliged to be much abroad, it was a most useful thing to me, as well for the
rains as the heats. I took a world of pains with it, and was a great while
before I could make anything likely to hold: nay, after I had thought I had hit
the way, I spoiled two or three before I made one to my mind: but at last I
made one that answered indifferently well: the main difficulty I found was to
make it let down. I could make it spread, but if it did not let down too, and
draw in, it was not portable for me any way but just over my head, which would
not do. However, at last, as I said, I made one to answer, and covered it with
skins, the hair upwards, so that it cast off the rain like a pent-house, and
kept off the sun so effectually, that I could walk out in the hottest of the
weather with greater advantage than I could before in the coolest, and when I
had no need of it could close it, and carry it under my arm
Thus I lived mighty
comfortably, my mind being entirely composed by resigning myself to the will of
God, and throwing myself wholly upon the disposal of His providence. This made
my life better than sociable, for when I began to regret the want of
conversation I would ask myself, whether thus conversing mutually with my own
thoughts, and (as I hope I may say) with even God Himself, by ejaculations, was
not better than the utmost enjoyment of human society in the world?
I CANNOT say that after
this, for five years, any extraordinary thing happened to me, but I lived on in
the same course, in the same posture and place, as before; the chief things I
was employed in, besides my yearly labour of planting my barley and rice, and
curing my raisins, of both which I always kept up just enough to have
sufficient stock of one year’s provisions beforehand; I say, besides this
yearly labour, and my daily pursuit of going out with my gun, I had one labour,
to make a canoe, which at last I finished: so that, by digging a canal to it of
six feet wide and four feet deep, I brought it into the creek, almost half a
mile. As for the first, which was so vastly big, for I made it without
considering beforehand, as I ought to have done, how I should be able to launch
it, so, never being able to bring it into the water, or bring the water to it,
I was obliged to let it lie where it was as a memorandum to teach me to be
wiser the next time: indeed, the next time, though I could not get a tree
proper for it, and was in a place where I could not get the water to it at any
less distance than, as I have said, near half a mile, yet, as I saw it was
practicable at last, I never gave it over; and though I was near two years
about it, yet I never grudged my labour, in hopes of having a boat to go off to
sea at last.
However, though my
little periagua was finished, yet the size of it was not at all answerable to
the design which I had in view when I made the first; I mean of venturing over
to the terra firma, where it was above forty miles broad; accordingly, the
smallness of my boat assisted to put an end to that design, and now I thought
no more of it. As I had a boat, my next design was to make a cruise round the
island; for as I had been on the other side in one place, crossing, as I have
already described it, over the land, so the discoveries I made in that little
journey made me very eager to see other parts of the coast; and now I had a
boat, I thought of nothing but sailing round the island.
For this purpose, that
I might do everything with discretion and consideration, I fitted up a little
mast in my boat, and made a sail too out of some of the pieces of the ship’s
sails which lay in store, and of which I had a great stock by me. Having fitted
my mast and sail, and tried the boat, I found she would sail very well; then I
made little lockers or boxes at each end of my boat, to put provisions,
necessaries, ammunition, &c., into, to be kept dry, either from rain or the
spray of the sea; and a little, long, hollow place I cut in the inside of the
boat, where I could lay my gun, making a flap to hang down over it to keep it
dry.
I fixed my umbrella
also in the step at the stern, like a mast, to stand over my head, and keep the
heat of the sun off me, like an awning; and thus I every now and then took a
little voyage upon the sea, but never went far out, nor far from the little
creek. At last, being eager to view the circumference of my little kingdom, I
resolved upon my cruise; and accordingly I victualled my ship for the voyage,
putting in two dozen of loaves (cakes I should call them) of barley-bread, an
earthen pot full of parched rice (a food I ate a good deal of), a little bottle
of rum, half a goat, and powder and shot for killing more, and two large
watch-coats, of those which, as I mentioned before, I had saved out of the
seamen’s chests; these I took, one to lie upon, and the other to cover me in
the night.
It was the 6th of
November, in the sixth year of my reign - or my captivity, which you please -
that I set out on this voyage, and I found it much longer than I expected; for
though the island itself was not very large, yet when I came to the east side of
it, I found a great ledge of rocks lie out about two leagues into the sea, some
above water, some under it; and beyond that a shoal of sand, lying dry half a
league more, so that I was obliged to go a great way out to sea to double the
point.
When I first discovered
them, I was going to give over my enterprise, and come back again, not knowing
how far it might oblige me to go out to sea; and above all, doubting how I
should get back again: so I came to an anchor; for I had made a kind of an
anchor with a piece of a broken grappling which I got out of the ship.
Having secured my boat,
I took my gun and went on shore, climbing up a hill, which seemed to overlook
that point where I saw the full extent of it, and resolved to venture.
In my viewing the sea
from that hill where I stood, I perceived a strong, and indeed a most furious
current, which ran to the east, and even came close to the point; and I took
the more notice of it because I saw there might be some danger that when I came
into it I might be carried out to sea by the strength of it, and not be able to
make the island again; and indeed, had I not got first upon this hill, I
believe it would have been so; for there was the same current on the other side
the island, only that it set off at a further distance, and I saw there was a
strong eddy under the shore; so I had nothing to do but to get out of the first
current, and I should presently be in an eddy.
I lay here, however,
two days, because the wind blowing pretty fresh at ESE., and that being just
contrary to the current, made a great breach of the sea upon the point: so that
it was not safe for me to keep too close to the shore for the breach, nor to go
too far off, because of the stream.
The third day, in the
morning, the wind having abated overnight, the sea was calm, and I ventured:
but I am a warning to all rash and ignorant pilots; for no sooner was I come to
the point, when I was not even my boat’s length from the shore, but I found
myself in a great depth of water, and a current like the sluice of a mill; it
carried my boat along with it with such violence that all I could do could not
keep her so much as on the edge of it; but I found it hurried me farther and
farther out from the eddy, which was on my left hand. There was no wind
stirring to help me, and all I could do with my paddles signified nothing: and
now I began to give myself over for lost; for as the current was on both sides
of the island, I knew in a few leagues distance they must join again, and then
I was irrecoverably gone; nor did I see any possibility of avoiding it; so that
I had no prospect before me but of perishing, not by the sea, for that was calm
enough, but of starving from hunger. I had, indeed, found a tortoise on the
shore, as big almost as I could lift, and had tossed it into the boat; and I
had a great jar of fresh water, that is to say, one of my earthen pots; but
what was all this to being driven into the vast ocean, where, to be sure, there
was no shore, no mainland or island, for a thousand leagues at least?
And now I saw how easy
it was for the providence of God to make even the most miserable condition of
mankind worse. Now I looked back upon my desolate, solitary island as the most
pleasant place in the world and all the happiness my heart could wish for was
to be but there again. I stretched out my hands to it, with eager wishes -
"O happy desert!" said I, "I shall never see thee more. O
miserable creature! whither am going?" Then I reproached myself with my
unthankful temper, and that I had repined at my solitary condition; and now
what would I give to be on shore there again! Thus, we never see the true state
of our condition till it is illustrated to us by its contraries, nor know how
to value what we enjoy, but by the want of it. It is scarcely possible to
imagine the consternation I was now in, being driven from my beloved island
(for so it appeared to me now to be) into the wide ocean, almost two leagues,
and in the utmost despair of ever recovering it again. However, I worked hard
till, indeed, my strength was almost exhausted, and kept my boat as much to the
northward, that is, towards the side of the current which the eddy lay on, as
possibly I could; when about noon, as the sun passed the meridian, I thought I
felt a little breeze of wind in my face, springing up from SSE. This cheered my
heart a little, and especially when, in about half- an-hour more, it blew a
pretty gentle gale. By this time I had got at a frightful distance from the
island, and had the least cloudy or hazy weather intervened, I had been undone
another way, too; for I had no compass on board, and should never have known
how to have steered towards the island, if I had but once lost sight of it; but
the weather continuing clear, I applied myself to get up my mast again, and
spread my sail, standing away to the north as much as possible, to get out of
the current.
Just as I had set my
mast and sail, and the boat began to stretch away, I saw even by the clearness
of the water some alteration of the current was near; for where the current was
so strong the water was foul; but perceiving the water clear, I found the
current abate; and presently I found to the east, at about half a mile, a
breach of the sea upon some rocks: these rocks I found caused the current to
part again, and as the main stress of it ran away more southerly, leaving the
rocks to the north-east, so the other returned by the repulse of the rocks, and
made a strong eddy, which ran back again to the north-west, with a very sharp
stream.
They who know what it
is to have a reprieve brought to them upon the ladder, or to be rescued from
thieves just going to murder them, or who have been in such extremities, may
guess what my present surprise of joy was, and how gladly I put my boat into
the stream of this eddy; and the wind also freshening, how gladly I spread my
sail to it, running cheerfully before the wind, and with a strong tide or eddy
underfoot.
This eddy carried me
about a league on my way back again, directly towards the island, but about two
leagues more to the northward than the current which carried me away at first;
so that when I came near the island, I found myself open to the northern shore
of it, that is to say, the other end of the island, opposite to that which I
went out from.
When I had made
something more than a league of way by the help of this current or eddy, I
found it was spent, and served me no further. However, I found that being
between two great currents - viz. that on the south side, which had hurried me
away, and that on the north, which lay about a league on the other side; I say,
between these two, in the wake of the island, I found the water at least still,
and running no way; and having still a breeze of wind fair for me, I kept on
steering directly for the island, though not making such fresh way as I did
before.
About four o’clock in
the evening, being then within a league of the island, I found the point of the
rocks which occasioned this disaster stretching out, as is described before, to
the southward, and casting off the current more southerly, had, of course, made
another eddy to the north; and this I found very strong, but not directly
setting the way my course lay, which was due west, but almost full north.
However, having a fresh gale, I stretched across this eddy, slanting
north-west; and in about an hour came within about a mile of the shore, where,
it being smooth water, I soon got to land.
When I was on shore,
God I fell on my knees and gave God thanks for my deliverance, resolving to lay
aside all thoughts of my deliverance by my boat; and refreshing myself with
such things as I had, I brought my boat close to the shore, in a little cove
that I had spied under some trees, and laid me down to sleep, being quite spent
with the labour and fatigue of the voyage.
I was now at a great
loss which way to get home with my boat! I had run so much hazard, and knew too
much of the case, to think of attempting it by the way I went out; and what
might be at the other side (I mean the west side) I knew not, nor had I any
mind to run any more ventures; so I resolved on the next morning to make my way
westward along the shore, and to see if there was no creek where I might lay up
my frigate in safety, so as to have her again if I wanted her. In about three
miles or thereabouts, coasting the shore, I came to a very good inlet or bay,
about a mile over, which narrowed till it came to a very little rivulet or
brook, where I found a very convenient harbour for my boat, and where she lay
as if she had been in a little dock made on purpose for her. Here I put in, and
having stowed my boat very safe, I went on shore to look about me, and see
where I was.
I soon found I had but
a little passed by the place where I had been before, when I travelled on foot
to that shore; so taking nothing out of my boat but my gun and umbrella, for it
was exceedingly hot, I began my march. The way was comfortable enough after
such a voyage as I had been upon, and I reached my old bower in the evening,
where I found everything standing as I left it; for I always kept it in good
order, being, as I said before, my country house.
I got over the fence,
and laid me down in the shade to rest my limbs, for I was very weary, and fell
asleep; but judge you, if you can, that read my story, what a surprise I must
be in when I was awaked out of my sleep by a voice calling me by my name
several times, "Robin, Robin, Robin Crusoe: poor Robin Crusoe! Where are
you, Robin Crusoe? Where are you? Where have you been?"
I was so dead asleep at
first, being fatigued with rowing, or part of the day, and with walking the
latter part, that I did not wake thoroughly; but dozing thought I dreamed that
somebody spoke to me; but as the voice continued to repeat, "Robin Crusoe,
Robin Crusoe," at last I began to wake more perfectly, and was at first
dreadfully frightened, and started up in the utmost consternation; but no
sooner were my eyes open, but I saw my Poll sitting on the top of the hedge;
and immediately knew that it was he that spoke to me; for just in such bemoaning
language I had used to talk to him and teach him; and he had learned it so
perfectly that he would sit upon my finger, and lay his bill close to my face
and cry, "Poor Robin Crusoe! Where are you? Where have you been? How came
you here?" and such things as I had taught him.
However, even though I
knew it was the parrot, and that indeed it could be nobody else, it was a good
while before I could compose myself. First, I was amazed how the creature got
thither; and then, how he should just keep about the place, and nowhere else;
but as I was well satisfied it could be nobody but honest Poll, I got over it;
and holding out my hand, and calling him by his name, "Poll," the
sociable creature came to me, and sat upon my thumb, as he used to do, and continued
talking to me, "Poor Robin Crusoe! and how did I come here? and where had
I been?" just as if he had been overjoyed to see me again; and so I
carried him home along with me.
I had now had enough of
rambling to sea for some time, and had enough to do for many days to sit still
and reflect upon the danger I had been in. I would have been very glad to have
had my boat again on my side of the island; but I knew not how it was
practicable to get it about. As to the east side of the island, which I had gone
round, I knew well enough there was no venturing that way; my very heart would
shrink, and my very blood run chill, but to think of it; and as to the other
side of the island, I did not know how it might be there; but supposing the
current ran with the same force against the shore at the east as it passed by
it on the other, I might run the same risk of being driven down the stream, and
carried by the island, as I had been before of being carried away from it: so
with these thoughts, I contented myself to be without any boat, though it had
been the product of so many months’ labour to make it, and of so many more to
get it into the sea.
In this government of
my temper I remained near a year; and lived a very sedate, retired life, as you
may well suppose; and my thoughts being very much composed as to my condition,
and fully comforted in resigning myself to the dispositions of Providence, I
thought I lived really very happily in all things except that of society.
I improved myself in
this time in all the mechanic exercises which my necessities put me upon
applying myself to; and I believe I should, upon occasion, have made a very
good carpenter, especially considering how few tools I had.
Besides this, I arrived
at an unexpected perfection in my earthenware, and contrived well enough to
make them with a wheel, which I found infinitely easier and better; because I
made things round and shaped, which before were filthy things indeed to look
on. But I think I was never more vain of my own performance, or more joyful for
anything I found out, than for my being able to make a tobacco-pipe; and though
it was a very ugly, clumsy thing when it was done, and only burned red, like
other earthenware, yet as it was hard and firm, and would draw the smoke, I was
exceedingly comforted with it, for I had been always used to smoke; and there
were pipes in the ship, but I forgot them at first, not thinking there was
tobacco in the island; and afterwards, when I searched the ship again, I could
not come at any pipes.
In my wicker-ware also
I improved much, and made abundance of necessary baskets, as well as my
invention showed me; though not very handsome, yet they were such as were very
handy and convenient for laying things up in, or fetching things home. For
example, if I killed a goat abroad, I could hang it up in a tree, flay it,
dress it, and cut it in pieces, and bring it home in a basket; and the like by
a turtle; I could cut it up, take out the eggs and a piece or two of the flesh,
which was enough for me, and bring them home in a basket, and leave the rest
behind me. Also, large deep baskets were the receivers of my corn, which I
always rubbed out as soon as it was dry and cured, and kept it in great
baskets.
I began now to perceive
my powder abated considerably; this was a want which it was impossible for me
to supply, and I began seriously to consider what I must do when I should have
no more powder; that is to say, how I should kill any goats. I had, as is
observed in the third year of my being here, kept a young kid, and bred her up
tame, and I was in hopes of getting a he-goat; but I could not by any means
bring it to pass, till my kid grew an old goat; and as I could never find in my
heart to kill her, she died at last of mere age.
But being now in the eleventh
year of my residence, and, as I have said, my ammunition growing low, I set
myself to study some art to trap and snare the goats, to see whether I could
not catch some of them alive; and particularly I wanted a she-goat great with
young. For this purpose I made snares to hamper them; and I do believe they
were more than once taken in them; but my tackle was not good, for I had no
wire, and I always found them broken and my bait devoured. At length I resolved
to try a pitfall; so I dug several large pits in the earth, in places where I
had observed the goats used to feed, and over those pits I placed hurdles of my
own making too, with a great weight upon them; and several times I put ears of
barley and dry rice without setting the trap; and I could easily perceive that
the goats had gone in and eaten up the corn, for I could see the marks of their
feet. At length I set three traps in one night, and going the next morning I
found them, all standing, and yet the bait eaten and gone; this was very discouraging.
However, I altered my traps; and not to trouble you with particulars, going one
morning to see my traps, I found in one of them a large old he-goat; and in one
of the others three kids, a male and two females.
As to the old one, I
knew not what to do with him; he was so fierce I durst not go into the pit to
him; that is to say, to bring him away alive, which was what I wanted. I could
have killed him, but that was not my business, nor would it answer my end; so I
even let him out, and he ran away as if he had been frightened out of his wits.
But I did not then know what I afterwards learned, that hunger will tame a
lion. If I had let him stay three or four days without food, and then have
carried him some water to drink and then a little corn, he would have been as
tame as one of the kids; for they are mighty sagacious, tractable creatures,
where they are well used.
However, for the
present I let him go, knowing no better at that time: then I went to the three
kids, and taking them one by one, I tied them with strings together, and with
some difficulty brought them all home.
It was a good while
before they would feed; but throwing them some sweet corn, it tempted them, and
they began to be tame. And now I found that if I expected to supply myself with
goats’ flesh, when I had no powder or shot left, breeding some up tame was my
only way, when, perhaps, I might have them about my house like a flock of
sheep. But then it occurred to me that I must keep the tame from the wild, or
else they would always run wild when they grew up; and the only way for this
was to have some enclosed piece of ground, well fenced either with hedge or
pale, to keep them in so effectually, that those within might not break out, or
those without break in.
This was a great undertaking
for one pair of hands yet, as I saw there was an absolute necessity for doing
it, my first work was to find out a proper piece of ground, where there was
likely to be herbage for them to eat, water for them to drink, and cover to
keep them from the sun.
Those who understand
such enclosures will think I had very little contrivance when I pitched upon a
place very proper for all these (being a plain, open piece of meadow land, or
savannah, as our people call it in the western colonies), which had two or
three little drills of fresh water in it, and at one end was very woody - I
say, they will smile at my forecast, when I shall tell them I began by
enclosing this piece of ground in such a manner that, my hedge or pale must
have been at least two miles about. Nor was the madness of it so great as to
the compass, for if it was ten miles about, I was like to have time enough to
do it in; but I did not consider that my goats would be as wild in so much
compass as if they had had the whole island, and I should have so much room to
chase them in that I should never catch them.
My hedge was begun and
carried on, I believe, about fifty yards when this thought occurred to me; so I
presently stopped short, and, for the beginning, I resolved to enclose a piece
of about one hundred and fifty yards in length, and one hundred yards in
breadth, which, as it would maintain as many as I should have in any reasonable
time, so, as my stock increased, I could add more ground to my enclosure.
This was acting with
some prudence, and I went to work with courage. I was about three months
hedging in the first piece; and, till I had done it, I tethered the three kids
in the best part of it, and used them to feed as near me as possible, to make
them familiar; and very often I would go and carry them some ears of barley, or
a handful of rice, and feed them out of my hand; so that after my enclosure was
finished and I let them loose, they would follow me up and down, bleating after
me for a handful of corn.
This answered my end,
and in about a year and a half I had a flock of about twelve goats, kids and
all; and in two years more I had three-and-forty, besides several that I took
and killed for my food. After that, I enclosed five several pieces of ground to
feed them in, with little pens to drive them to take them as I wanted, and
gates out of one piece of ground into another.
But this was not all;
for now I not only had goat’s flesh to feed on when I pleased, but milk too - a
thing which, indeed, in the beginning, I did not so much as think of, and
which, when it came into my thoughts, was really an agreeable surprise, for now
I set up my dairy, and had sometimes a gallon or two of milk in a day. And as
Nature, who gives supplies of food to every creature, dictates even naturally
how to make use of it, so I, that had never milked a cow, much less a goat, or
seen butter or cheese made only when I was a boy, after a great many essays and
miscarriages, made both butter and cheese at last, also salt (though I found it
partly made to my hand by the heat of the sun upon some of the rocks of the
sea), and never wanted it afterwards. How mercifully can our Creator treat His
creatures, even in those conditions in which they seemed to be overwhelmed in
destruction! How can He sweeten the bitterest providences, and give us cause to
praise Him for dungeons and prisons! What a table was here spread for me in the
wilderness, where I saw nothing at first but to perish for hunger!
IT would have made a
Stoic smile to have seen me and my little family sit down to dinner. There was
my majesty the prince and lord of the whole island; I had the lives of all my
subjects at my absolute command; I could hang, draw, give liberty, and take it
away, and no rebels among all my subjects. Then, to see how like a king I
dined, too, all alone, attended by my servants! Poll, as if he had been my
favourite, was the only person permitted to talk to me. My dog, who was now
grown old and crazy, and had found no species to multiply his kind upon, sat
always at my right hand; and two cats, one on one side of the table and one on
the other, expecting now and then a bit from my hand, as a mark of especial
favour.
But these were not the
two cats which I brought on shore at first, for they were both of them dead,
and had been interred near my habitation by my own hand; but one of them having
multiplied by I know not what kind of creature, these were two which I had
preserved tame; whereas the rest ran wild in the woods, and became indeed
troublesome to me at last, for they would often come into my house, and plunder
me too, till at last I was obliged to shoot them, and did kill a great many; at
length they left me. With this attendance and in this plentiful manner I lived;
neither could I be said to want anything but society; and of that, some time
after this, I was likely to have too much.
I was something
impatient, as I have observed, to have the use of my boat, though very loath to
run any more hazards; and therefore sometimes I sat contriving ways to get her
about the island, and at other times I sat myself down contented enough without
her. But I had a strange uneasiness in my mind to go down to the point of the
island where, as I have said in my last ramble, I went up the hill to see how
the shore lay, and how the current set, that I might see what I had to do: this
inclination increased upon me every day, and at length I resolved to travel
thither by land, following the edge of the shore. I did so; but had any one in
England met such a man as I was, it must either have frightened him, or raised
a great deal of laughter; and as I frequently stood still to look at myself, I
could not but smile at the notion of my travelling through Yorkshire with such
an equipage, and in such a dress. Be pleased to take a sketch of my figure, as
follows.
I had a great high
shapeless cap, made of a goat’s skin, with a flap hanging down behind, as well
to keep the sun from me as to shoot the rain off from running into my neck,
nothing being so hurtful in these climates as the rain upon the flesh under the
clothes.
I had a short jacket of
goat’s skin, the skirts coming down to about the middle of the thighs, and a
pair of open-kneed breeches of the same; the breeches were made of the skin of
an old he-goat, whose hair hung down such a length on either side that, like
pantaloons, it reached to the middle of my legs; stockings and shoes I had
none, but had made me a pair of somethings, I scarce knew what to call them, like
buskins, to flap over my legs, and lace on either side like spatterdashes, but
of a most barbarous shape, as indeed were all the rest of my clothes.
I had on a broad belt
of goat’s skin dried, which I drew together with two thongs of the same instead
of buckles, and in a kind of a frog on either side of this, instead of a sword
and dagger, hung a little saw and a hatchet, one on one side and one on the
other. I had another belt not so broad, and fastened in the same manner, which
hung over my shoulder, and at the end of it, under my left arm, hung two
pouches, both made of goat’s skin too, in one of which hung my powder, in the
other my shot. At my back I carried my basket, and on my shoulder my gun, and
over my head a great clumsy, ugly, goat’s-skin umbrella, but which, after all,
was the most necessary thing I had about me next to my gun. As for my face, the
colour of it was really not so mulatto-like as one might expect from a man not
at all careful of it, and living within nine or ten degrees of the equinox. My
beard I had once suffered to grow till it was about a quarter of a yard long;
but as I had both scissors and razors sufficient, I had cut it pretty short,
except what grew on my upper lip, which I had trimmed into a large pair of
Mahometan whiskers, such as I had seen worn by some Turks at Sallee, for the
Moors did not wear such, though the Turks did; of these moustachios, or
whiskers, I will not say they were long enough to hang my hat upon them, but
they were of a length and shape monstrous enough, and such as in England would
have passed for frightful.
But all this is
by-the-bye; for as to my figure, I had so few to observe me that it was of no
manner of consequence, so I say no more of that. In this kind of dress I went
my new journey, and was out five or six days. I travelled first along the
sea-shore, directly to the place where I first brought my boat to an anchor to
get upon the rocks; and having no boat now to take care of, I went over the
land a nearer way to the same height that I was upon before, when, looking
forward to the points of the rocks which lay out, and which I was obliged to
double with my boat, as is said above, I was surprised to see the sea all
smooth and quiet - no rippling, no motion, no current, any more there than in
other places. I was at a strange loss to understand this, and resolved to spend
some time in the observing it, to see if nothing from the sets of the tide had
occasioned it; but I was presently convinced how it was - viz. that the tide of
ebb setting from the west, and joining with the current of waters from some
great river on the shore, must be the occasion of this current, and that,
according as the wind blew more forcibly from the west or from the north, this
current came nearer or went farther from the shore; for, waiting thereabouts
till evening, I went up to the rock again, and then the tide of ebb being made,
I plainly saw the current again as before, only that it ran farther off, being
near half a league from the shore, whereas in my case it set close upon the
shore, and hurried me and my canoe along with it, which at another time it
would not have done.
This observation
convinced me that I had nothing to do but to observe the ebbing and the flowing
of the tide, and I might very easily bring my boat about the island again; but
when I began to think of putting it in practice, I had such terror upon my
spirits at the remembrance of the danger I had been in, that I could not think
of it again with any patience, but, on the contrary, I took up another
resolution, which was more safe, though more laborious - and this was, that I
would build, or rather make, me another periagua or canoe, and so have one for
one side of the island, and one for the other.
You are to understand
that now I had, as I may call it, two plantations in the island - one my little
fortification or tent, with the wall about it, under the rock, with the cave
behind me, which by this time I had enlarged into several apartments or caves,
one within another. One of these, which was the driest and largest, and had a
door out beyond my wall or fortification - that is to say, beyond where my wall
joined to the rock - was all filled up with the large earthen pots of which I
have given an account, and with fourteen or fifteen great baskets, which would
hold five or six bushels each, where I laid up my stores of provisions,
especially my corn, some in the ear, cut off short from the straw, and the
other rubbed out with my hand.
As for my wall, made,
as before, with long stakes or piles, those piles grew all like trees, and were
by this time grown so big, and spread so very much, that there was not the
least appearance, to any one’s view, of any habitation behind them.
Near this dwelling of
mine, but a little farther within the land, and upon lower ground, lay my two
pieces of corn land, which I kept duly cultivated and sowed, and which duly
yielded me their harvest in its season; and whenever I had occasion for more
corn, I had more land adjoining as fit as that.
Besides this, I had my
country seat, and I had now a tolerable plantation there also; for, first, I
had my little bower, as I called it, which I kept in repair - that is to say, I
kept the hedge which encircled it in constantly fitted up to its usual height,
the ladder standing always in the inside. I kept the trees, which at first were
no more than stakes, but were now grown very firm and tall, always cut, so that
they might spread and grow thick and wild, and make the more agreeable shade,
which they did effectually to my mind. In the middle of this I had my tent
always standing, being a piece of a sail spread over poles, set up for that
purpose, and which never wanted any repair or renewing; and under this I had
made me a squab or couch with the skins of the creatures I had killed, and with
other soft things, and a blanket laid on them, such as belonged to our
sea-bedding, which I had saved; and a great watch-coat to cover me. And here,
whenever I had occasion to be absent from my chief seat, I took up my country
habitation.
Adjoining to this I had
my enclosures for my cattle, that is to say my goats, and I had taken an
inconceivable deal of pains to fence and enclose this ground. I was so anxious
to see it kept entire, lest the goats should break through, that I never left
off till, with infinite labour, I had stuck the outside of the hedge so full of
small stakes, and so near to one another, that it was rather a pale than a
hedge, and there was scarce room to put a hand through between them; which
afterwards, when those stakes grew, as they all did in the next rainy season,
made the enclosure strong like a wall, indeed stronger than any wall.
This will testify for
me that I was not idle, and that I spared no pains to bring to pass whatever
appeared necessary for my comfortable support, for I considered the keeping up
a breed of tame creatures thus at my hand would be a living magazine of flesh,
milk, butter, and cheese for me as long as I lived in the place, if it were to
be forty years; and that keeping them in my reach depended entirely upon my
perfecting my enclosures to such a degree that I might be sure of keeping them
together; which by this method, indeed, I so effectually secured, that when
these little stakes began to grow, I had planted them so very thick that I was
forced to pull some of them up again.
In this place also I
had my grapes growing, which I principally depended on for my winter store of
raisins, and which I never failed to preserve very carefully, as the best and
most agreeable dainty of my whole diet; and indeed they were not only
agreeable, but medicinal, wholesome, nourishing, and refreshing to the last
degree.
As this was also about
half-way between my other habitation and the place where I had laid up my boat,
I generally stayed and lay here in my way thither, for I used frequently to
visit my boat; and I kept all things about or belonging to her in very good
order. Sometimes I went out in her to divert myself, but no more hazardous
voyages would I go, scarcely ever above a stone’s cast or two from the shore, I
was so apprehensive of being hurried out of my knowledge again by the currents
or winds, or any other accident. But now I come to a new scene of my life. It
happened one day, about noon, going towards my boat, I was exceedingly
surprised with the print of a man’s naked foot on the shore, which was very
plain to be seen on the sand. I stood like one thunderstruck, or as if I had
seen an apparition. I listened, I looked round me, but I could hear nothing,
nor see anything; I went up to a rising ground to look farther; I went up the
shore and down the shore, but it was all one; I could see no other impression
but that one. I went to it again to see if there were any more, and to observe
if it might not be my fancy; but there was no room for that, for there was
exactly the print of a foot - toes, heel, and every part of a foot. How it came
thither I knew not, nor could I in the least imagine; but after innumerable
fluttering thoughts, like a man perfectly confused and out of myself, I came
home to my fortification, not feeling, as we say, the ground I went on, but
terrified to the last degree, looking behind me at every two or three steps,
mistaking every bush and tree, and fancying every stump at a distance to be a
man. Nor is it possible to describe how many various shapes my affrighted
imagination represented things to me in, how many wild ideas were found every
moment in my fancy, and what strange, unaccountable whimsies came into my
thoughts by the way.
When I came to my
castle (for so I think I called it ever after this), I fled into it like one
pursued. Whether I went over by the ladder, as first contrived, or went in at
the hole in the rock, which I had called a door, I cannot remember; no, nor
could I remember the next morning, for never frightened hare fled to cover, or
fox to earth, with more terror of mind than I to this retreat.
I slept none that
night; the farther I was from the occasion of my fright, the greater my
apprehensions were, which is something contrary to the nature of such things,
and especially to the usual practice of all creatures in fear; but I was so
embarrassed with my own frightful ideas of the thing, that I formed nothing but
dismal imaginations to myself, even though I was now a great way off. Sometimes
I fancied it must be the devil, and reason joined in with me in this
supposition, for how should any other thing in human shape come into the place?
Where was the vessel that brought them? What marks were there of any other
footstep? And how was it possible a man should come there? But then, to think
that Satan should take human shape upon him in such a place, where there could
be no manner of occasion for it, but to leave the print of his foot behind him,
and that even for no purpose too, for he could not be sure I should see it -
this was an amusement the other way. I considered that the devil might have
found out abundance of other ways to have terrified me than this of the single
print of a foot; that as I lived quite on the other side of the island, he
would never have been so simple as to leave a mark in a place where it was ten
thousand to one whether I should ever see it or not, and in the sand too, which
the first surge of the sea, upon a high wind, would have defaced entirely. All
this seemed inconsistent with the thing itself and with all the notions we
usually entertain of the subtlety of the devil.
Abundance of such
things as these assisted to argue me out of all apprehensions of its being the
devil; and I presently concluded then that it must be some more dangerous
creature - viz. that it must be some of the savages of the mainland opposite
who had wandered out to sea in their canoes, and either driven by the currents
or by contrary winds, had made the island, and had been on shore, but were gone
away again to sea; being as loath, perhaps, to have stayed in this desolate
island as I would have been to have had them.
While these reflections
were rolling in my mind, I was very thankful in my thoughts that I was so happy
as not to be thereabouts at that time, or that they did not see my boat, by
which they would have concluded that some inhabitants had been in the place,
and perhaps have searched farther for me. Then terrible thoughts racked my
imagination about their having found out my boat, and that there were people
here; and that, if so, I should certainly have them come again in greater
numbers and devour me; that if it should happen that they should not find me,
yet they would find my enclosure, destroy all my corn, and carry away all my
flock of tame goats, and I should perish at last for mere want.
Thus my fear banished
all my religious hope, all that former confidence in God, which was founded
upon such wonderful experience as I had had of His goodness; as if He that had
fed me by miracle hitherto could not preserve, by His power, the provision
which He had made for me by His goodness. I reproached myself with my laziness,
that would not sow any more corn one year than would just serve me till the
next season, as if no accident could intervene to prevent my enjoying the crop
that was upon the ground; and this I thought so just a reproof, that I resolved
for the future to have two or three years’ corn beforehand; so that, whatever
might come, I might not perish for want of bread.
How strange a chequer-work
of Providence is the life of man! and by what secret different springs are the
affections hurried about, as different circumstances present! To-day we love
what to-morrow we hate; to-day we seek what to-morrow we shun; to-day we desire
what to-morrow we fear, nay, even tremble at the apprehensions of. This was
exemplified in me, at this time, in the most lively manner imaginable; for I,
whose only affliction was that I seemed banished from human society, that I was
alone, circumscribed by the boundless ocean, cut off from mankind, and
condemned to what I call silent life; that I was as one whom Heaven thought not
worthy to be numbered among the living, or to appear among the rest of His
creatures; that to have seen one of my own species would have seemed to me a
raising me from death to life, and the greatest blessing that Heaven itself,
next to the supreme blessing of salvation, could bestow; I say, that I should
now tremble at the very apprehensions of seeing a man, and was ready to sink
into the ground at but the shadow or silent appearance of a man having set his
foot in the island.
Such is the uneven
state of human life; and it afforded me a great many curious speculations
afterwards, when I had a little recovered my first surprise. I considered that
this was the station of life the infinitely wise and good providence of God had
determined for me; that as I could not foresee what the ends of Divine wisdom
might be in all this, so I was not to dispute His sovereignty; who, as I was
His creature, had an undoubted right, by creation, to govern and dispose of me
absolutely as He thought fit; and who, as I was a creature that had offended
Him, had likewise a judicial right to condemn me to what punishment He thought
fit; and that it was my part to submit to bear His indignation, because I had
sinned against Him. I then reflected, that as God, who was not only righteous
but omnipotent, had thought fit thus to punish and afflict me, so He was able
to deliver me: that if He did not think fit to do so, it was my unquestioned
duty to resign myself absolutely and entirely to His will; and, on the other
hand, it was my duty also to hope in Him, pray to Him, and quietly to attend to
the dictates and directions of His daily providence,
These thoughts took me
up many hours, days, nay, I may say weeks and months: and one particular effect
of my cogitations on this occasion I cannot omit. One morning early, lying in
my bed, and filled with thoughts about my danger from the appearances of
savages, I found it discomposed me very much; upon which these words of the
Scripture came into my thoughts, "Call upon Me in the day of trouble, and
I will deliver thee, and thou shalt glorify Me." Upon this, rising
cheerfully out of my bed, my heart was not only comforted, but I was guided and
encouraged to pray earnestly to God for deliverance: when I had done praying I
took up my Bible, and opening it to read, the first words that presented to me
were, "Wait on the Lord, and be of good cheer, and He shall strengthen thy
heart; wait, I say, on the Lord." It is impossible to express the comfort
this gave me. In answer, I thankfully laid down the book, and was no more sad,
at least on that occasion.
In the middle of these
cogitations, apprehensions, and reflections, it came into my thoughts one day
that all this might be a mere chimera of my own, and that this foot might be
the print of my own foot, when I came on shore from my boat: this cheered me up
a little, too, and I began to persuade myself it was all a delusion; that it
was nothing else but my own foot; and why might I not come that way from the
boat, as well as I was going that way to the boat? Again, I considered also
that I could by no means tell for certain where I had trod, and where I had
not; and that if, at last, this was only the print of my own foot, I had played
the part of those fools who try to make stories of spectres and apparitions,
and then are frightened at them more than anybody.
Now I began to take
courage, and to peep abroad again, for I had not stirred out of my castle for
three days and nights, so that I began to starve for provisions; for I had
little or nothing within doors but some barley-cakes and water; then I knew
that my goats wanted to be milked too, which usually was my evening diversion:
and the poor creatures were in great pain and inconvenience for want of it;
and, indeed, it almost spoiled some of them, and almost dried up their milk.
Encouraging myself, therefore, with the belief that this was nothing but the
print of one of my own feet, and that I might be truly said to start at my own
shadow, I began to go abroad again, and went to my country house to milk my
flock: but to see with what fear I went forward, how often I looked behind me,
how I was ready every now and then to lay down my basket and run for my life,
it would have made any one have thought I was haunted with an evil conscience,
or that I had been lately most terribly frightened; and so, indeed, I had.
However, I went down thus two or three days, and having seen nothing, I began
to be a little bolder, and to think there was really nothing in it but my own
imagination; but I could not persuade myself fully of this till I should go
down to the shore again, and see this print of a foot, and measure it by my
own, and see if there was any similitude or fitness, that I might be assured it
was my own foot: but when I came to the place, first, it appeared evidently to
me, that when I laid up my boat I could not possibly be on shore anywhere
thereabouts; secondly, when I came to measure the mark with my own foot, I
found my foot not so large by a great deal. Both these things filled my head
with new imaginations, and gave me the vapours again to the highest degree, so
that I shook with cold like one in an ague; and I went home again, filled with
the belief that some man or men had been on shore there; or, in short, that the
island was inhabited, and I might be surprised before I was aware; and what
course to take for my security I knew not.
Oh, what ridiculous
resolutions men take when possessed with fear! It deprives them of the use of
those means which reason offers for their relief. The first thing I proposed to
myself was, to throw down my enclosures, and turn all my tame cattle wild into
the woods, lest the enemy should find them, and then frequent the island in
prospect of the same or the like booty: then the simple thing of digging up my
two corn-fields, lest they should find such a grain there, and still be
prompted to frequent the island: then to demolish my bower and tent, that they
might not see any vestiges of habitation, and be prompted to look farther, in
order to find out the persons inhabiting.
These were the subject
of the first night’s cogitations after I was come home again, while the
apprehensions which had so overrun my mind were fresh upon me, and my head was
full of vapours. Thus, fear of danger is ten thousand times more terrifying
than danger itself, when apparent to the eyes; and we find the burden of
anxiety greater, by much, than the evil which we are anxious about: and what
was worse than all this, I had not that relief in this trouble that from the
resignation I used to practise I hoped to have. I looked, I thought, like Saul,
who complained not only that the Philistines were upon him, but that God had
forsaken him; for I did not now take due ways to compose my mind, by crying to
God in my distress, and resting upon His providence, as I had done before, for
my defence and deliverance; which, if I had done, I had at least been more
cheerfully supported under this new surprise, and perhaps carried through it
with more resolution.
This confusion of my
thoughts kept me awake all night; but in the morning I fell asleep; and having,
by the amusement of my mind, been as it were tired, and my spirits exhausted, I
slept very soundly, and waked much better composed than I had ever been before.
And now I began to think sedately; and, upon debate with myself, I concluded
that this island (which was so exceedingly pleasant, fruitful, and no farther
from the mainland than as I had seen) was not so entirely abandoned as I might
imagine; that although there were no stated inhabitants who lived on the spot,
yet that there might sometimes come boats off from the shore, who, either with
design, or perhaps never but when they were driven by cross winds, might come
to this place; that I had lived there fifteen years now and had not met with
the least shadow or figure of any people yet; and that, if at any time they should
be driven here, it was probable they went away again as soon as ever they
could, seeing they had never thought fit to fix here upon any occasion; that
the most I could suggest any danger from was from any casual accidental landing
of straggling people from the main, who, as it was likely, if they were driven
hither, were here against their wills, so they made no stay here, but went off
again with all possible speed; seldom staying one night on shore, lest they
should not have the help of the tides and daylight back again; and that,
therefore, I had nothing to do but to consider of some safe retreat, in case I
should see any savages land upon the spot.
Now, I began sorely to
repent that I had dug my cave so large as to bring a door through again, which
door, as I said, came out beyond where my fortification joined to the rock:
upon maturely considering this, therefore, I resolved to draw me a second
fortification, in the manner of a semicircle, at a distance from my wall, just
where I had planted a double row of trees about twelve years before, of which I
made mention: these trees having been planted so thick before, they wanted but
few piles to be driven between them, that they might be thicker and stronger,
and my wall would be soon finished. So that I had now a double wall; and my
outer wall was thickened with pieces of timber, old cables, and everything I
could think of, to make it strong; having in it seven little holes, about as
big as I might put my arm out at. In the inside of this I thickened my wall to
about ten feet thick with continually bringing earth out of my cave, and laying
it at the foot of the wall, and walking upon it; and through the seven holes I
contrived to plant the muskets, of which I took notice that I had got seven on
shore out of the ship; these I planted like my cannon, and fitted them into
frames, that held them like a carriage, so that I could fire all the seven guns
in two minutes’ time; this wall I was many a weary month in finishing, and yet
never thought myself safe till it was done.
When this was done I
stuck all the ground without my wall, for a great length every way, as full
with stakes or sticks of the osier- like wood, which I found so apt to grow, as
they could well stand; insomuch that I believe I might set in near twenty
thousand of them, leaving a pretty large space between them and my wall, that I
might have room to see an enemy, and they might have no shelter from the young
trees, if they attempted to approach my outer wall.
Thus in two years’ time
I had a thick grove; and in five or six years’ time I had a wood before my
dwelling, growing so monstrously thick and strong that it was indeed perfectly
impassable: and no men, of what kind soever, could ever imagine that there was
anything beyond it, much less a habitation. As for the way which I proposed to
myself to go in and out (for I left no avenue), it was by setting two ladders,
one to a part of the rock which was low, and then broke in, and left room to
place another ladder upon that; so when the two ladders were taken down no man
living could come down to me without doing himself mischief; and if they had
come down, they were still on the outside of my outer wall.
Thus I took all the
measures human prudence could suggest for my own preservation; and it will be
seen at length that they were not altogether without just reason; though I
foresaw nothing at that time more than my mere fear suggested to me.
WHILE this was doing, I
was not altogether careless of my other affairs; for I had a great concern upon
me for my little herd of goats: they were not only a ready supply to me on
every occasion, and began to be sufficient for me, without the expense of
powder and shot, but also without the fatigue of hunting after the wild ones; and
I was loath to lose the advantage of them, and to have them all to nurse up
over again.
For this purpose, after
long consideration, I could think of but two ways to preserve them: one was, to
find another convenient place to dig a cave underground, and to drive them into
it every night; and the other was to enclose two or three little bits of land,
remote from one another, and as much concealed as I could, where I might keep
about half-a-dozen young goats in each place; so that if any disaster happened
to the flock in general, I might be able to raise them again with little
trouble and time: and this though it would require a good deal of time and
labour, I thought was the most rational design.
Accordingly, I spent
some time to find out the most retired parts of the island; and I pitched upon
one, which was as private, indeed, as my heart could wish: it was a little damp
piece of ground in the middle of the hollow and thick woods, where, as is
observed, I almost lost myself once before, endeavouring to come back that way
from the eastern part of the island. Here I found a clear piece of land, near
three acres, so surrounded with woods that it was almost an enclosure by
nature; at least, it did not want near so much labour to make it so as the
other piece of ground I had worked so hard at.
I immediately went to
work with this piece of ground; and in less than a month’s time I had so fenced
it round that my flock, or herd, call it which you please, which were not so
wild now as at first they might be supposed to be, were well enough secured in
it: so, without any further delay, I removed ten young she-goats and two
he-goats to this piece, and when they were there I continued to perfect the
fence till I had made it as secure as the other; which, however, I did at more
leisure, and it took me up more time by a great deal. All this labour I was at
the expense of, purely from my apprehensions on account of the print of a man’s
foot; for as yet I had never seen any human creature come near the island; and
I had now lived two years under this uneasiness, which, indeed, made my life
much less comfortable than it was before, as may be well imagined by any who
know what it is to live in the constant snare of the fear of man. And this I
must observe, with grief, too, that the discomposure of my mind had great
impression also upon the religious part of my thoughts; for the dread and
terror of falling into the hands of savages and cannibals lay so upon my
spirits, that I seldom found myself in a due temper for application to my
Maker; at least, not with the sedate calmness and resignation of soul which I
was wont to do: I rather prayed to God as under great affliction and pressure
of mind, surrounded with danger, and in expectation every night of being
murdered and devoured before morning; and I must testify, from my experience,
that a temper of peace, thankfulness, love, and affection, is much the more
proper frame for prayer than that of terror and discomposure: and that under
the dread of mischief impending, a man is no more fit for a comforting
performance of the duty of praying to God than he is for a repentance on a
sick-bed; for these discomposures affect the mind, as the others do the body;
and the discomposure of the mind must necessarily be as great a disability as
that of the body, and much greater; praying to God being properly an act of the
mind, not of the body.
But to go on. After I
had thus secured one part of my little living stock, I went about the whole
island, searching for another private place to make such another deposit; when,
wandering more to the west point of the island than I had ever done yet, and
looking out to sea, I thought I saw a boat upon the sea, at a great distance. I
had found a perspective glass or two in one of the seamen’s chests, which I
saved out of our ship, but I had it not about me; and this was so remote that I
could not tell what to make of it, though I looked at it till my eyes were not
able to hold to look any longer; whether it was a boat or not I do not know,
but as I descended from the hill I could see no more of it, so I gave it over;
only I resolved to go no more out without a perspective glass in my pocket.
When I was come down the hill to the end of the island, where, indeed, I had
never been before, I was presently convinced that the seeing the print of a man’s
foot was not such a strange thing in the island as I imagined: and but that it
was a special providence that I was cast upon the side of the island where the
savages never came, I should easily have known that nothing was more frequent
than for the canoes from the main, when they happened to be a little too far
out at sea, to shoot over to that side of the island for harbour: likewise, as
they often met and fought in their canoes, the victors, having taken any prisoners,
would bring them over to this shore, where, according to their dreadful
customs, being all cannibals, they would kill and eat them; of which hereafter.
When I was come down
the hill to the shore, as I said above, being the SW. point of the island, I
was perfectly confounded and amazed; nor is it possible for me to express the
horror of my mind at seeing the shore spread with skulls, hands, feet, and
other bones of human bodies; and particularly I observed a place where there
had been a fire made, and a circle dug in the earth, like a cockpit, where I
supposed the savage wretches had sat down to their human feastings upon the
bodies of their fellow-creatures.
I was so astonished
with the sight of these things, that I entertained no notions of any danger to
myself from it for a long while: all my apprehensions were buried in the
thoughts of such a pitch of inhuman, hellish brutality, and the horror of the
degeneracy of human nature, which, though I had heard of it often, yet I never
had so near a view of before; in short, I turned away my face from the horrid
spectacle; my stomach grew sick, and I was just at the point of fainting, when
nature discharged the disorder from my stomach; and having vomited with
uncommon violence, I was a little relieved, but could not bear to stay in the
place a moment; so I got up the hill again with all the speed I could, and
walked on towards my own habitation.
When I came a little
out of that part of the island I stood still awhile, as amazed, and then,
recovering myself, I looked up with the utmost affection of my soul, and, with
a flood of tears in my eyes, gave God thanks, that had cast my first lot in a
part of the world where I was distinguished from such dreadful creatures as
these; and that, though I had esteemed my present condition very miserable, had
yet given me so many comforts in it that I had still more to give thanks for
than to complain of: and this, above all, that I had, even in this miserable
condition, been comforted with the knowledge of Himself, and the hope of His
blessing: which was a felicity more than sufficiently equivalent to all the
misery which I had suffered, or could suffer.
In this frame of
thankfulness I went home to my castle, and began to be much easier now, as to
the safety of my circumstances, than ever I was before: for I observed that
these wretches never came to this island in search of what they could get;
perhaps not seeking, not wanting, or not expecting anything here; and having
often, no doubt, been up the covered, woody part of it without finding anything
to their purpose. I knew I had been here now almost eighteen years, and never
saw the least footsteps of human creature there before; and I might be eighteen
years more as entirely concealed as I was now, if I did not discover myself to
them, which I had no manner of occasion to do; it being my only business to
keep myself entirely concealed where I was, unless I found a better sort of
creatures than cannibals to make myself known to. Yet I entertained such an
abhorrence of the savage wretches that I have been speaking of, and of the
wretched, inhuman custom of their devouring and eating one another up, that I
continued pensive and sad, and kept close within my own circle for almost two
years after this: when I say my own circle, I mean by it my three plantations -
viz. my castle, my country seat (which I called my bower), and my enclosure in
the woods: nor did I look after this for any other use than an enclosure for my
goats; for the aversion which nature gave me to these hellish wretches was
such, that I was as fearful of seeing them as of seeing the devil himself. I
did not so much as go to look after my boat all this time, but began rather to
think of making another; for I could not think of ever making any more attempts
to bring the other boat round the island to me, lest I should meet with some of
these creatures at sea; in which case, if I had happened to have fallen into
their hands, I knew what would have been my lot.
Time, however, and the
satisfaction I had that I was in no danger of being discovered by these people,
began to wear off my uneasiness about them; and I began to live just in the
same composed manner as before, only with this difference, that I used more
caution, and kept my eyes more about me than I did before, lest I should happen
to be seen by any of them; and particularly, I was more cautious of firing my
gun, lest any of them, being on the island, should happen to hear it. It was,
therefore, a very good providence to me that I had furnished myself with a tame
breed of goats, and that I had no need to hunt any more about the woods, or
shoot at them; and if I did catch any of them after this, it was by traps and
snares, as I had done before; so that for two years after this I believe I
never fired my gun once off, though I never went out without it; and what was
more, as I had saved three pistols out of the ship, I always carried them out
with me, or at least two of them, sticking them in my goat-skin belt. I also
furbished up one of the great cutlasses that I had out of the ship, and made me
a belt to hang it on also; so that I was now a most formidable fellow to look
at when I went abroad, if you add to the former description of myself the
particular of two pistols, and a broadsword hanging at my side in a belt, but
without a scabbard.
Things going on thus,
as I have said, for some time, I seemed, excepting these cautions, to be
reduced to my former calm, sedate way of living. All these things tended to
show me more and more how far my condition was from being miserable, compared
to some others; nay, to many other particulars of life which it might have
pleased God to have made my lot. It put me upon reflecting how little repining
there would be among mankind at any condition of life if people would rather
compare their condition with those that were worse, in order to be thankful,
than be always comparing them with those which are better, to assist their
murmurings and complainings.
As in my present
condition there were not really many things which I wanted, so indeed I thought
that the frights I had been in about these savage wretches, and the concern I
had been in for my own preservation, had taken off the edge of my invention,
for my own conveniences; and I had dropped a good design, which I had once bent
my thoughts upon, and that was to try if I could not make some of my barley
into malt, and then try to brew myself some beer. This was really a whimsical
thought, and I reproved myself often for the simplicity of it: for I presently
saw there would be the want of several things necessary to the making my beer
that it would be impossible for me to supply; as, first, casks to preserve it
in, which was a thing that, as I have observed already, I could never compass:
no, though I spent not only many days, but weeks, nay months, in attempting it,
but to no purpose. In the next place, I had no hops to make it keep, no yeast
to made it work, no copper or kettle to make it boil; and yet with all these
things wanting, I verily believe, had not the frights and terrors I was in
about the savages intervened, I had undertaken it, and perhaps brought it to
pass too; for I seldom gave anything over without accomplishing it, when once I
had it in my head to began it. But my invention now ran quite another way; for night
and day I could think of nothing but how I might destroy some of the monsters
in their cruel, bloody entertainment, and if possible save the victim they
should bring hither to destroy. It would take up a larger volume than this
whole work is intended to be to set down all the contrivances I hatched, or
rather brooded upon, in my thoughts, for the destroying these creatures, or at
least frightening them so as to prevent their coming hither any more: but all
this was abortive; nothing could be possible to take effect, unless I was to be
there to do it myself: and what could one man do among them, when perhaps there
might be twenty or thirty of them together with their darts, or their bows and
arrows, with which they could shoot as true to a mark as I could with my gun?
Sometimes I thought if
digging a hole under the place where they made their fire, and putting in five
or six pounds of gunpowder, which, when they kindled their fire, would
consequently take fire, and blow up all that was near it: but as, in the first
place, I should be unwilling to waste so much powder upon them, my store being
now within the quantity of one barrel, so neither could I be sure of its going
off at any certain time, when it might surprise them; and, at best, that it
would do little more than just blow the fire about their ears and fright them,
but not sufficient to make them forsake the place: so I laid it aside; and then
proposed that I would place myself in ambush in some convenient place, with my
three guns all double-loaded, and in the middle of their bloody ceremony let
fly at them, when I should be sure to kill or wound perhaps two or three at
every shot; and then falling in upon them with my three pistols and my sword, I
made no doubt but that, if there were twenty, I should kill them all. This
fancy pleased my thoughts for some weeks, and I was so full of it that I often
dreamed of it, and, sometimes, that I was just going to let fly at them in my
sleep. I went so far with it in my imagination that I employed myself several
days to find out proper places to put myself in ambuscade, as I said, to watch
for them, and I went frequently to the place itself, which was now grown more
familiar to me; but while my mind was thus filled with thoughts of revenge and
a bloody putting twenty or thirty of them to the sword, as I may call it, the
horror I had at the place, and at the signals of the barbarous wretches
devouring one another, abetted my malice. Well, at length I found a place in
the side of the hill where I was satisfied I might securely wait till I saw any
of their boats coming; and might then, even before they would be ready to come
on shore, convey myself unseen into some thickets of trees, in one of which
there was a hollow large enough to conceal me entirely; and there I might sit
and observe all their bloody doings, and take my full aim at their heads, when
they were so close together as that it would be next to impossible that I
should miss my shot, or that I could fail wounding three or four of them at the
first shot. In this place, then, I resolved to fulfil my design; and
accordingly I prepared two muskets and my ordinary fowling-piece. The two
muskets I loaded with a brace of slugs each, and four or five smaller bullets,
about the size of pistol bullets; and the fowling- piece I loaded with near a
handful of swan-shot of the largest size; I also loaded my pistols with about
four bullets each; and, in this posture, well provided with ammunition for a
second and third charge, I prepared myself for my expedition.
After I had thus laid
the scheme of my design, and in my imagination put it in practice, I
continually made my tour every morning to the top of the hill, which was from
my castle, as I called it, about three miles or more, to see if I could observe
any boats upon the sea, coming near the island, or standing over towards it;
but I began to tire of this hard duty, after I had for two or three months
constantly kept my watch, but came always back without any discovery; there
having not, in all that time, been the least appearance, not only on or near
the shore, but on the whole ocean, so far as my eye or glass could reach every
way.
As long as I kept my
daily tour to the hill, to look out, so long also I kept up the vigour of my
design, and my spirits seemed to be all the while in a suitable frame for so
outrageous an execution as the killing twenty or thirty naked savages, for an
offence which I had not at all entered into any discussion of in my thoughts,
any farther than my passions were at first fired by the horror I conceived at
the unnatural custom of the people of that country, who, it seems, had been
suffered by Providence, in His wise disposition of the world, to have no other
guide than that of their own abominable and vitiated passions; and consequently
were left, and perhaps had been so for some ages, to act such horrid things,
and receive such dreadful customs, as nothing but nature, entirely abandoned by
Heaven, and actuated by some hellish degeneracy, could have run them into. But
now, when, as I have said, I began to be weary of the fruitless excursion which
I had made so long and so far every morning in vain, so my opinion of the
action itself began to alter; and I began, with cooler and calmer thoughts, to
consider what I was going to engage in; what authority or call I had to pretend
to be judge and executioner upon these men as criminals, whom Heaven had
thought fit for so many ages to suffer unpunished to go on, and to be as it
were the executioners of His judgments one upon another; how far these people
were offenders against me, and what right I had to engage in the quarrel of
that blood which they shed promiscuously upon one another. I debated this very
often with myself thus: "How do I know what God Himself judges in this
particular case? It is certain these people do not commit this as a crime; it
is not against their own consciences reproving, or their light reproaching
them; they do not know it to be an offence, and then commit it in defiance of
divine justice, as we do in almost all the sins we commit. They think it no
more a crime to kill a captive taken in war than we do to kill an ox; or to eat
human flesh than we do to eat mutton."
When I considered this
a little, it followed necessarily that I was certainly in the wrong; that these
people were not murderers, in the sense that I had before condemned them in my
thoughts, any more than those Christians were murderers who often put to death
the prisoners taken in battle; or more frequently, upon many occasions, put
whole troops of men to the sword, without giving quarter, though they threw
down their arms and submitted. In the next place, it occurred to me that
although the usage they gave one another was thus brutish and inhuman, yet it
was really nothing to me: these people had done me no injury: that if they
attempted, or I saw it necessary, for my immediate preservation, to fall upon
them, something might be said for it: but that I was yet out of their power,
and they really had no knowledge of me, and consequently no design upon me; and
therefore it could not be just for me to fall upon them; that this would
justify the conduct of the Spaniards in all their barbarities practised in
America, where they destroyed millions of these people; who, however they were
idolators and barbarians, and had several bloody and barbarous rites in their
customs, such as sacrificing human bodies to their idols, were yet, as to the
Spaniards, very innocent people; and that the rooting them out of the country
is spoken of with the utmost abhorrence and detestation by even the Spaniards
themselves at this time, and by all other Christian nations of Europe, as a
mere butchery, a bloody and unnatural piece of cruelty, unjustifiable either to
God or man; and for which the very name of a Spaniard is reckoned to be frightful
and terrible, to all people of humanity or of Christian compassion; as if the
kingdom of Spain were particularly eminent for the produce of a race of men who
were without principles of tenderness, or the common bowels of pity to the
miserable, which is reckoned to be a mark of generous temper in the mind.
These considerations
really put me to a pause, and to a kind of a full stop; and I began by little
and little to be off my design, and to conclude I had taken wrong measures in
my resolution to attack the savages; and that it was not my business to meddle
with them, unless they first attacked me; and this it was my business, if
possible, to prevent: but that, if I were discovered and attacked by them, I
knew my duty. On the other hand, I argued with myself that this really was the
way not to deliver myself, but entirely to ruin and destroy myself; for unless
I was sure to kill every one that not only should be on shore at that time, but
that should ever come on shore afterwards, if but one of them escaped to tell
their country-people what had happened, they would come over again by thousands
to revenge the death of their fellows, and I should only bring upon myself a
certain destruction, which, at present, I had no manner of occasion for. Upon the
whole, I concluded that I ought, neither in principle nor in policy, one way or
other, to concern myself in this affair: that my business was, by all possible
means to conceal myself from them, and not to leave the least sign for them to
guess by that there were any living creatures upon the island - I mean of human
shape. Religion joined in with this prudential resolution; and I was convinced
now, many ways, that I was perfectly out of my duty when I was laying all my
bloody schemes for the destruction of innocent creatures - I mean innocent as
to me. As to the crimes they were guilty of towards one another, I had nothing
to do with them; they were national, and I ought to leave them to the justice
of God, who is the Governor of nations, and knows how, by national punishments,
to make a just retribution for national offences, and to bring public judgments
upon those who offend in a public manner, by such ways as best please Him. This
appeared so clear to me now, that nothing was a greater satisfaction to me than
that I had not been suffered to do a thing which I now saw so much reason to
believe would have been no less a sin than that of wilful murder if I had
committed it; and I gave most humble thanks on my knees to God, that He had
thus delivered me from blood-guiltiness; beseeching Him to grant me the
protection of His providence, that I might not fall into the hands of the
barbarians, or that I might not lay my hands upon them, unless I had a more
clear call from Heaven to do it, in defence of my own life.
In this disposition I
continued for near a year after this; and so far was I from desiring an
occasion for falling upon these wretches, that in all that time I never once
went up the hill to see whether there were any of them in sight, or to know
whether any of them had been on shore there or not, that I might not be tempted
to renew any of my contrivances against them, or be provoked by any advantage
that might present itself to fall upon them; only this I did: I went and
removed my boat, which I had on the other side of the island, and carried it
down to the east end of the whole island, where I ran it into a little cove,
which I found under some high rocks, and where I knew, by reason of the
currents, the savages durst not, at least would not, come with their boats upon
any account whatever. With my boat I carried away everything that I had left
there belonging to her, though not necessary for the bare going thither - viz.
a mast and sail which I had made for her, and a thing like an anchor, but
which, indeed, could not be called either anchor or grapnel; however, it was
the best I could make of its kind: all these I removed, that there might not be
the least shadow for discovery, or appearance of any boat, or of any human
habitation upon the island. Besides this, I kept myself, as I said, more
retired than ever, and seldom went from my cell except upon my constant
employment, to milk my she-goats, and manage my little flock in the wood,
which, as it was quite on the other part of the island, was out of danger; for
certain, it is that these savage people, who sometimes haunted this island,
never came with any thoughts of finding anything here, and consequently never
wandered off from the coast, and I doubt not but they might have been several
times on shore after my apprehensions of them had made me cautious, as well as
before. Indeed, I looked back with some horror upon the thoughts of what my
condition would have been if I had chopped upon them and been discovered before
that; when, naked and unarmed, except with one gun, and that loaded often only
with small shot, I walked everywhere, peeping and peering about the island, to
see what I could get; what a surprise should I have been in if, when I
discovered the print of a man’s foot, I had, instead of that, seen fifteen or
twenty savages, and found them pursuing me, and by the swiftness of their
running no possibility of my escaping them! The thoughts of this sometimes sank
my very soul within me, and distressed my mind so much that I could not soon
recover it, to think what I should have done, and how I should not only have
been unable to resist them, but even should not have had presence of mind
enough to do what I might have done; much less what now, after so much
consideration and preparation, I might be able to do. Indeed, after serious
thinking of these things, I would be melancholy, and sometimes it would last a
great while; but I resolved it all at last into thankfulness to that Providence
which had delivered me from so many unseen dangers, and had kept me from those
mischiefs which I could have no way been the agent in delivering myself from,
because I had not the least notion of any such thing depending, or the least
supposition of its being possible. This renewed a contemplation which often had
come into my thoughts in former times, when first I began to see the merciful
dispositions of Heaven, in the dangers we run through in this life; how
wonderfully we are delivered when we know nothing of it; how, when we are in a
quandary as we call it, a doubt or hesitation whether to go this way or that
way, a secret hint shall direct us this way, when we intended to go that way:
nay, when sense, our own inclination, and perhaps business has called us to go
the other way, yet a strange impression upon the mind, from we know not what
springs, and by we know not what power, shall overrule us to go this way; and
it shall afterwards appear that had we gone that way, which we should have
gone, and even to our imagination ought to have gone, we should have been
ruined and lost. Upon these and many like reflections I afterwards made it a
certain rule with me, that whenever I found those secret hints or pressings of
mind to doing or not doing anything that presented, or going this way or that
way, I never failed to obey the secret dictate; though I knew no other reason
for it than such a pressure or such a hint hung upon my mind. I could give many
examples of the success of this conduct in the course of my life, but more
especially in the latter part of my inhabiting this unhappy island; besides
many occasions which it is very likely I might have taken notice of, if I had
seen with the same eyes then that I see with now. But it is never too late to
be wise; and I cannot but advise all considering men, whose lives are attended
with such extraordinary incidents as mine, or even though not so extraordinary,
not to slight such secret intimations of Providence, let them come from what
invisible intelligence they will. That I shall not discuss, and perhaps cannot
account for; but certainly they are a proof of the converse of spirits, and a
secret communication between those embodied and those unembodied, and such a
proof as can never be withstood; of which I shall have occasion to give some
remarkable instances in the remainder of my solitary residence in this dismal
place.
I believe the reader of
this will not think it strange if I confess that these anxieties, these
constant dangers I lived in, and the concern that was now upon me, put an end
to all invention, and to all the contrivances that I had laid for my future
accommodations and conveniences. I had the care of my safety more now upon my
hands than that of my food. I cared not to drive a nail, or chop a stick of
wood now, for fear the noise I might make should be heard: much less would I
fire a gun for the same reason: and above all I was intolerably uneasy at
making any fire, lest the smoke, which is visible at a great distance in the
day, should betray me. For this reason, I removed that part of my business
which required fire, such as burning of pots and pipes, &c., into my new
apartment in the woods; where, after I had been some time, I found, to my
unspeakable consolation, a mere natural cave in the earth, which went in a vast
way, and where, I daresay, no savage, had he been at the mouth of it, would be
so hardy as to venture in; nor, indeed, would any man else, but one who, like
me, wanted nothing so much as a safe retreat.
The mouth of this
hollow was at the bottom of a great rock, where, by mere accident (I would say,
if I did not see abundant reason to ascribe all such things now to Providence),
I was cutting down some thick branches of trees to make charcoal; and before I
go on I must observe the reason of my making this charcoal, which was this - I
was afraid of making a smoke about my habitation, as I said before; and yet I
could not live there without baking my bread, cooking my meat, &c.; so I
contrived to burn some wood here, as I had seen done in England, under turf,
till it became chark or dry coal: and then putting the fire out, I preserved
the coal to carry home, and perform the other services for which fire was
wanting, without danger of smoke. But this is by-the-bye. While I was cutting
down some wood here, I perceived that, behind a very thick branch of low
brushwood or underwood, there was a kind of hollow place: I was curious to look
in it; and getting with difficulty into the mouth of it, I found it was pretty
large, that is to say, sufficient for me to stand upright in it, and perhaps
another with me: but I must confess to you that I made more haste out than I
did in, when looking farther into the place, and which was perfectly dark, I
saw two broad shining eyes of some creature, whether devil or man I knew not,
which twinkled like two stars; the dim light from the cave’s mouth shining
directly in, and making the reflection. However, after some pause I recovered
myself, and began to call myself a thousand fools, and to think that he that
was afraid to see the devil was not fit to live twenty years in an island all
alone; and that I might well think there was nothing in this cave that was more
frightful than myself. Upon this, plucking up my courage, I took up a
firebrand, and in I rushed again, with the stick flaming in my hand: I had not
gone three steps in before I was almost as frightened as before; for I heard a
very loud sigh, like that of a man in some pain, and it was followed by a
broken noise, as of words half expressed, and then a deep sigh again. I stepped
back, and was indeed struck with such a surprise that it put me into a cold
sweat, and if I had had a hat on my head, I will not answer for it that my hair
might not have lifted it off. But still plucking up my spirits as well as I
could, and encouraging myself a little with considering that the power and
presence of God was everywhere, and was able to protect me, I stepped forward
again, and by the light of the firebrand, holding it up a little over my head,
I saw lying on the ground a monstrous, frightful old he-goat, just making his
will, as we say, and gasping for life, and, dying, indeed, of mere old age. I
stirred him a little to see if I could get him out, and he essayed to get up,
but was not able to raise himself; and I thought with myself he might even lie
there - for if he had frightened me, so he would certainly fright any of the
savages, if any of them should be so hardy as to come in there while he had any
life in him.
I was now recovered
from my surprise, and began to look round me, when I found the cave was but
very small - that is to say, it might be about twelve feet over, but in no
manner of shape, neither round nor square, no hands having ever been employed
in making it but those of mere Nature. I observed also that there was a place
at the farther side of it that went in further, but was so low that it required
me to creep upon my hands and knees to go into it, and whither it went I knew
not; so, having no candle, I gave it over for that time, but resolved to go
again the next day provided with candles and a tinder-box, which I had made of
the lock of one of the muskets, with some wildfire in the pan.
Accordingly, the next
day I came provided with six large candles of my own making (for I made very
good candles now of goat’s tallow, but was hard set for candle-wick, using
sometimes rags or rope- yarn, and sometimes the dried rind of a weed like
nettles); and going into this low place I was obliged to creep upon all-fours
as I have said, almost ten yards - which, by the way, I thought was a venture
bold enough, considering that I knew not how far it might go, nor what was
beyond it. When I had got through the strait, I found the roof rose higher up,
I believe near twenty feet; but never was such a glorious sight seen in the
island, I daresay, as it was to look round the sides and roof of this vault or
cave - the wall reflected a hundred thousand lights to me from my two candles.
What it was in the rock - whether diamonds or any other precious stones, or
gold which I rather supposed it to be - I knew not. The place I was in was a most
delightful cavity, or grotto, though perfectly dark; the floor was dry and
level, and had a sort of a small loose gravel upon it, so that there was no
nauseous or venomous creature to be seen, neither was there any damp or wet on
the sides or roof. The only difficulty in it was the entrance - which, however,
as it was a place of security, and such a retreat as I wanted; I thought was a
convenience; so that I was really rejoiced at the discovery, and resolved,
without any delay, to bring some of those things which I was most anxious about
to this place: particularly, I resolved to bring hither my magazine of powder,
and all my spare arms - viz. two fowling-pieces - for I had three in all - and
three muskets - for of them I had eight in all; so I kept in my castle only
five, which stood ready mounted like pieces of cannon on my outmost fence, and
were ready also to take out upon any expedition. Upon this occasion of removing
my ammunition I happened to open the barrel of powder which I took up out of
the sea, and which had been wet, and I found that the water had penetrated
about three or four inches into the powder on every side, which caking and
growing hard, had preserved the inside like a kernel in the shell, so that I
had near sixty pounds of very good powder in the centre of the cask. This was a
very agreeable discovery to me at that time; so I carried all away thither,
never keeping above two or three pounds of powder with me in my castle, for
fear of a surprise of any kind; I also carried thither all the lead I had left
for bullets.
I fancied myself now
like one of the ancient giants who were said to live in caves and holes in the
rocks, where none could come at them; for I persuaded myself, while I was here,
that if five hundred savages were to hunt me, they could never find me out - or
if they did, they would not venture to attack me here. The old goat whom I
found expiring died in the mouth of the cave the next day after I made this
discovery; and I found it much easier to dig a great hole there, and throw him
in and cover him with earth, than to drag him out; so I interred him there, to
prevent offence to my nose.
I WAS now in the
twenty-third year of my residence in this island, and was so naturalised to the
place and the manner of living, that, could I but have enjoyed the certainty
that no savages would come to the place to disturb me, I could have been
content to have capitulated for spending the rest of my time there, even to the
last moment, till I had laid me down and died, like the old goat in the cave. I
had also arrived to some little diversions and amusements, which made the time
pass a great deal more pleasantly with me than it did before - first, I had
taught my Poll, as I noted before, to speak; and he did it so familiarly, and
talked so articulately and plain, that it was very pleasant to me; and he lived
with me no less than six-and-twenty years. How long he might have lived
afterwards I know not, though I know they have a notion in the Brazils that
they live a hundred years. My dog was a pleasant and loving companion to me for
no less than sixteen years of my time, and then died of mere old age. As for my
cats, they multiplied, as I have observed, to that degree that I was obliged to
shoot several of them at first, to keep them from devouring me and all I had;
but at length, when the two old ones I brought with me were gone, and after
some time continually driving them from me, and letting them have no provision
with me, they all ran wild into the woods, except two or three favourites,
which I kept tame, and whose young, when they had any, I always drowned; and
these were part of my family. Besides these I always kept two or three
household kids about me, whom I taught to feed out of my hand; and I had two
more parrots, which talked pretty well, and would all call "Robin
Crusoe," but none like my first; nor, indeed, did I take the pains with
any of them that I had done with him. I had also several tame sea-fowls, whose
name I knew not, that I caught upon the shore, and cut their wings; and the
little stakes which I had planted before my castle-wall being now grown up to a
good thick grove, these fowls all lived among these low trees, and bred there,
which was very agreeable to me; so that, as I said above, I began to he very
well contented with the life I led, if I could have been secured from the dread
of the savages. But it was otherwise directed; and it may not be amiss for all
people who shall meet with my story to make this just observation from it: How
frequently, in the course of our lives, the evil which in itself we seek most
to shun, and which, when we are fallen into, is the most dreadful to us, is
oftentimes the very means or door of our deliverance, by which alone we can be
raised again from the affliction we are fallen into. I could give many examples
of this in the course of my unaccountable life; but in nothing was it more
particularly remarkable than in the circumstances of my last years of solitary
residence in this island.
It was now the month of
December, as I said above, in my twenty- third year; and this, being the
southern solstice (for winter I cannot call it), was the particular time of my
harvest, and required me to be pretty much abroad in the fields, when, going
out early in the morning, even before it was thorough daylight, I was surprised
with seeing a light of some fire upon the shore, at a distance from me of about
two miles, toward that part of the island where I had observed some savages had
been, as before, and not on the other side; but, to my great affliction, it was
on my side of the island.
I was indeed terribly
surprised at the sight, and stopped short within my grove, not daring to go
out, lest I might be surprised; and yet I had no more peace within, from the apprehensions
I had that if these savages, in rambling over the island, should find my corn
standing or cut, or any of my works or improvements, they would immediately
conclude that there were people in the place, and would then never rest till
they had found me out. In this extremity I went back directly to my castle,
pulled up the ladder after me, and made all things without look as wild and
natural as I could.
Then I prepared myself
within, putting myself in a posture of defence. I loaded all my cannon, as I
called them - that is to say, my muskets, which were mounted upon my new
fortification - and all my pistols, and resolved to defend myself to the last
gasp - not forgetting seriously to commend myself to the Divine protection, and
earnestly to pray to God to deliver me out of the hands of the barbarians. I
continued in this posture about two hours, and began to be impatient for
intelligence abroad, for I had no spies to send out. After sitting a while
longer, and musing what I should do in this case, I was not able to bear
sitting in ignorance longer; so setting up my ladder to the side of the hill,
where there was a flat place, as I observed before, and then pulling the ladder
after me, I set it up again and mounted the top of the hill, and pulling out my
perspective glass, which I had taken on purpose, I laid me down flat on my
belly on the ground, and began to look for the place. I presently found there
were no less than nine naked savages sitting round a small fire they had made,
not to warm them, for they had no need of that, the weather being extremely
hot, but, as I supposed, to dress some of their barbarous diet of human flesh
which they had brought with them, whether alive or dead I could not tell.
They had two canoes
with them, which they had hauled up upon the shore; and as it was then ebb of
tide, they seemed to me to wait for the return of the flood to go away again.
It is not easy to imagine what confusion this sight put me into, especially
seeing them come on my side of the island, and so near to me; but when I
considered their coming must be always with the current of the ebb, I began
afterwards to be more sedate in my mind, being satisfied that I might go abroad
with safety all the time of the flood of tide, if they were not on shore before;
and having made this observation, I went abroad about my harvest work with the
more composure.
As I expected, so it
proved; for as soon as the tide made to the westward I saw them all take boat
and row (or paddle as we call it) away. I should have observed, that for an
hour or more before they went off they were dancing, and I could easily discern
their postures and gestures by my glass. I could not perceive, by my nicest
observation, but that they were stark naked, and had not the least covering upon
them; but whether they were men or women I could not distinguish.
As soon as I saw them
shipped and gone, I took two guns upon my shoulders, and two pistols in my
girdle, and my great sword by my side without a scabbard, and with all the
speed I was able to make went away to the hill where I had discovered the first
appearance of all; and as soon as I get thither, which was not in less than two
hours (for I could not go quickly, being so loaded with arms as I was), I
perceived there had been three canoes more of the savages at that place; and
looking out farther, I saw they were all at sea together, making over for the
main. This was a dreadful sight to me, especially as, going down to the shore,
I could see the marks of horror which the dismal work they had been about had
left behind it - viz. the blood, the bones, and part of the flesh of human
bodies eaten and devoured by those wretches with merriment and sport. I was so
filled with indignation at the sight, that I now began to premeditate the destruction
of the next that I saw there, let them be whom or how many soever. It seemed
evident to me that the visits which they made thus to this island were not very
frequent, for it was above fifteen months before any more of them came on shore
there again - that is to say, I neither saw them nor any footsteps or signals
of them in all that time; for as to the rainy seasons, then they are sure not
to come abroad, at least not so far. Yet all this while I lived uncomfortably,
by reason of the constant apprehensions of their coming upon me by surprise:
from whence I observe, that the expectation of evil is more bitter than the
suffering, especially if there is no room to shake off that expectation or
those apprehensions.
During all this time I
was in a murdering humour, and spent most of my hours, which should have been
better employed, in contriving how to circumvent and fall upon them the very
next time I should see them - especially if they should be divided, as they
were the last time, into two parties; nor did I consider at all that if I
killed one party - suppose ten or a dozen - I was still the next day, or week,
or month, to kill another, and so another, even ad infinitum, till I should be,
at length, no less a murderer than they were in being man-eaters - and perhaps
much more so. I spent my days now in great perplexity and anxiety of mind,
expecting that I should one day or other fall, into the hands of these
merciless creatures; and if I did at any time venture abroad, it was not
without looking around me with the greatest care and caution imaginable. And
now I found, to my great comfort, how happy it was that I had provided a tame
flock or herd of goats, for I durst not upon any account fire my gun,
especially near that side of the island where they usually came, lest I should
alarm the savages; and if they had fled from me now, I was sure to have them
come again with perhaps two or three hundred canoes with them in a few days,
and then I knew what to expect. However, I wore out a year and three months more
before I ever saw any more of the savages, and then I found them again, as I
shall soon observe. It is true they might have been there once or twice; but
either they made no stay, or at least I did not see them; but in the month of
May, as near as I could calculate, and in my four-and-twentieth year, I had a
very strange encounter with them; of which in its place.
The perturbation of my
mind during this fifteen or sixteen months’ interval was very great; I slept
unquietly, dreamed always frightful dreams, and often started out of my sleep
in the night. In the day great troubles overwhelmed my mind; and in the night I
dreamed often of killing the savages and of the reasons why I might justify
doing it.
But to waive all this
for a while. It was in the middle of May, on the sixteenth day, I think, as
well as my poor wooden calendar would reckon, for I marked all upon the post
still; I say, it was on the sixteenth of May that it blew a very great storm of
wind all day, with a great deal of lightning and thunder, and; a very foul
night it was after it. I knew not what was the particular occasion of it, but
as I was reading in the Bible, and taken up with very serious thoughts about my
present condition, I was surprised with the noise of a gun, as I thought, fired
at sea. This was, to be sure, a surprise quite of a different nature from any I
had met with before; for the notions this put into my thoughts were quite of
another kind. I started up in the greatest haste imaginable; and, in a trice,
clapped my ladder to the middle place of the rock, and pulled it after me; and
mounting it the second time, got to the top of the hill the very moment that a
flash of fire bid me listen for a second gun, which, accordingly, in about half
a minute I heard; and by the sound, knew that it was from that part of the sea
where I was driven down the current in my boat. I immediately considered that
this must be some ship in distress, and that they had some comrade, or some
other ship in company, and fired these for signals of distress, and to obtain
help. I had the presence of mind at that minute to think, that though I could
not help them, it might be that they might help me; so I brought together all
the dry wood I could get at hand, and making a good handsome pile, I set it on
fire upon the hill. The wood was dry, and blazed freely; and, though the wind
blew very hard, yet it burned fairly out; so that I was certain, if there was
any such thing as a ship, they must needs see it. And no doubt they did; for as
soon as ever my fire blazed up, I heard another gun, and after that several
others, all from the same quarter. I plied my fire all night long, till
daybreak: and when it was broad day, and the air cleared up, I saw something at
a great distance at sea, full east of the island, whether a sail or a hull I
could not distinguish - no, not with my glass: the distance was so great, and
the weather still something hazy also; at least, it was so out at sea.
I looked frequently at
it all that day, and soon perceived that it did not move; so I presently
concluded that it was a ship at anchor; and being eager, you may be sure, to be
satisfied, I took my gun in my hand, and ran towards the south side of the
island to the rocks where I had formerly been carried away by the current; and getting
up there, the weather by this time being perfectly clear, I could plainly see,
to my great sorrow, the wreck of a ship, cast away in the night upon those
concealed rocks which I found when I was out in my boat; and which rocks, as
they checked the violence of the stream, and made a kind of counter-stream, or
eddy, were the occasion of my recovering from the most desperate, hopeless
condition that ever I had been in in all my life. Thus, what is one man’s
safety is another man’s destruction; for it seems these men, whoever they were,
being out of their knowledge, and the rocks being wholly under water, had been
driven upon them in the night, the wind blowing hard at ENE. Had they seen the
island, as I must necessarily suppose they did not, they must, as I thought,
have endeavoured to have saved themselves on shore by the help of their boat;
but their firing off guns for help, especially when they saw, as I imagined, my
fire, filled me with many thoughts. First, I imagined that upon seeing my light
they might have put themselves into their boat, and endeavoured to make the
shore: but that the sea running very high, they might have been cast away.
Other times I imagined that they might have lost their boat before, as might be
the case many ways; particularly by the breaking of the sea upon their ship,
which many times obliged men to stave, or take in pieces, their boat, and
sometimes to throw it overboard with their own hands. Other times I imagined
they had some other ship or ships in company, who, upon the signals of distress
they made, had taken them up, and carried them off. Other times I fancied they
were all gone off to sea in their boat, and being hurried away by the current
that I had been formerly in, were carried out into the great ocean, where there
was nothing but misery and perishing: and that, perhaps, they might by this
time think of starving, and of being in a condition to eat one another.
As all these were but
conjectures at best, so, in the condition I was in, I could do no more than
look on upon the misery of the poor men, and pity them; which had still this
good effect upon my side, that it gave me more and more cause to give thanks to
God, who had so happily and comfortably provided for me in my desolate
condition; and that of two ships’ companies, who were now cast away upon this
part of the world, not one life should be spared but mine. I learned here again
to observe, that it is very rare that the providence of God casts us into any
condition so low, or any misery so great, but we may see something or other to
be thankful for, and may see others in worse circumstances than our own. Such
certainly was the case of these men, of whom I could not so much as see room to
suppose any were saved; nothing could make it rational so much as to wish or
expect that they did not all perish there, except the possibility only of their
being taken up by another ship in company; and this was but mere possibility
indeed, for I saw not the least sign or appearance of any such thing. I cannot
explain, by any possible energy of words, what a strange longing I felt in my
soul upon this sight, breaking out sometimes thus: "Oh that there had been
but one or two, nay, or but one soul saved out of this ship, to have escaped to
me, that I might but have had one companion, one fellow-creature, to have
spoken to me and to have conversed with!" In all the time of my solitary
life I never felt so earnest, so strong a desire after the society of my
fellow- creatures, or so deep a regret at the want of it.
There are some secret
springs in the affections which, when they are set a-going by some object in
view, or, though not in view, yet rendered present to the mind by the power of
imagination, that motion carries out the soul, by its impetuosity, to such
violent, eager embracings of the object, that the absence of it is
insupportable. Such were these earnest wishings that but one man had been
saved. I believe I repeated the words, "Oh that it had been but one!"
a thousand times; and my desires were so moved by it, that when I spoke the
words my hands would clinch together, and my fingers would press the palms of
my hands, so that if I had had any soft thing in my hand I should have crushed
it involuntarily; and the teeth in my head would strike together, and set
against one another so strong, that for some time I could not part them again.
Let the naturalists explain these things, and the reason and manner of them.
All I can do is to describe the fact, which was even surprising to me when I
found it, though I knew not from whence it proceeded; it was doubtless the
effect of ardent wishes, and of strong ideas formed in my mind, realising the
comfort which the conversation of one of my fellow-Christians would have been
to me. But it was not to be; either their fate or mine, or both, forbade it;
for, till the last year of my being on this island, I never knew whether any
were saved out of that ship or no; and had only the affliction, some days
after, to see the corpse of a drowned boy come on shore at the end of the
island which was next the shipwreck. He had no clothes on but a seaman’s
waistcoat, a pair of open-kneed linen drawers, and a blue linen shirt; but
nothing to direct me so much as to guess what nation he was of. He had nothing
in his pockets but two pieces of eight and a tobacco pipe - the last was to me
of ten times more value than the first.
It was now calm, and I
had a great mind to venture out in my boat to this wreck, not doubting but I
might find something on board that might be useful to me. But that did not altogether
press me so much as the possibility that there might be yet some living
creature on board, whose life I might not only save, but might, by saving that
life, comfort my own to the last degree; and this thought clung so to my heart
that I could not be quiet night or day, but I must venture out in my boat on
board this wreck; and committing the rest to God’s providence, I thought the
impression was so strong upon my mind that it could not be resisted - that it
must come from some invisible direction, and that I should be wanting to myself
if I did not go.
Under the power of this
impression, I hastened back to my castle, prepared everything for my voyage,
took a quantity of bread, a great pot of fresh water, a compass to steer by, a
bottle of rum (for I had still a great deal of that left), and a basket of
raisins; and thus, loading myself with everything necessary. I went down to my
boat, got the water out of her, got her afloat, loaded all my cargo in her, and
then went home again for more. My second cargo was a great bag of rice, the
umbrella to set up over my head for a shade, another large pot of water, and
about two dozen of small loaves, or barley cakes, more than before, with a
bottle of goat’s milk and a cheese; all which with great labour and sweat I
carried to my boat; and praying to God to direct my voyage, I put out, and
rowing or paddling the canoe along the shore, came at last to the utmost point
of the island on the north-east side. And now I was to launch out into the
ocean, and either to venture or not to venture. I looked on the rapid currents
which ran constantly on both sides of the island at a distance, and which were
very terrible to me from the remembrance of the hazard I had been in before,
and my heart began to fail me; for I foresaw that if I was driven into either
of those currents, I should be carried a great way out to sea, and perhaps out
of my reach or sight of the island again; and that then, as my boat was but
small, if any little gale of wind should rise, I should be inevitably lost.
These thoughts so
oppressed my mind that I began to give over my enterprise; and having hauled my
boat into a little creek on the shore, I stepped out, and sat down upon a
rising bit of ground, very pensive and anxious, between fear and desire, about
my voyage; when, as I was musing, I could perceive that the tide was turned,
and the flood come on; upon which my going was impracticable for so many hours.
Upon this, presently it occurred to me that I should go up to the highest piece
of ground I could find, and observe, if I could, how the sets of the tide or
currents lay when the flood came in, that I might judge whether, if I was
driven one way out, I might not expect to be driven another way home, with the
same rapidity of the currents. This thought was no sooner in my head than I
cast my eye upon a little hill which sufficiently overlooked the sea both ways,
and from whence I had a clear view of the currents or sets of the tide, and
which way I was to guide myself in my return. Here I found, that as the current
of ebb set out close by the south point of the island, so the current of the
flood set in close by the shore of the north side; and that I had nothing to do
but to keep to the north side of the island in my return, and I should do well
enough.
Encouraged by this
observation, I resolved the next morning to set out with the first of the tide;
and reposing myself for the night in my canoe, under the watch-coat I
mentioned, I launched out. I first made a little out to sea, full north, till I
began to feel the benefit of the current, which set eastward, and which carried
me at a great rate; and yet did not so hurry me as the current on the south
side had done before, so as to take from me all government of the boat; but
having a strong steerage with my paddle, I went at a great rate directly for
the wreck, and in less than two hours I came up to it. It was a dismal sight to
look at; the ship, which by its building was Spanish, stuck fast, jammed in
between two rocks. All the stern and quarter of her were beaten to pieces by
the sea; and as her forecastle, which stuck in the rocks, had run on with great
violence, her mainmast and foremast were brought by the board - that is to say,
broken short off; but her bowsprit was sound, and the head and bow appeared
firm. When I came close to her, a dog appeared upon her, who, seeing me coming,
yelped and cried; and as soon as I called him, jumped into the sea to come to
me. I took him into the boat, but found him almost dead with hunger and thirst.
I gave him a cake of my bread, and he devoured it like a ravenous wolf that had
been starving a fortnight in the snow; I then gave the poor creature some fresh
water, with which, if I would have let him, he would have burst himself. After
this I went on board; but the first sight I met with was two men drowned in the
cook-room, or forecastle of the ship, with their arms fast about one another. I
concluded, as is indeed probable, that when the ship struck, it being in a
storm, the sea broke so high and so continually over her, that the men were not
able to bear it, and were strangled with the constant rushing in of the water,
as much as if they had been under water. Besides the dog, there was nothing
left in the ship that had life; nor any goods, that I could see, but what were
spoiled by the water. There were some casks of liquor, whether wine or brandy I
knew not, which lay lower in the hold, and which, the water being ebbed out, I
could see; but they were too big to meddle with. I saw several chests, which I
believe belonged to some of the seamen; and I got two of them into the boat,
without examining what was in them. Had the stern of the ship been fixed, and
the forepart broken off, I am persuaded I might have made a good voyage; for by
what I found in those two chests I had room to suppose the ship had a great
deal of wealth on board; and, if I may guess from the course she steered, she
must have been bound from Buenos Ayres, or the Rio de la Plata, in the south
part of America, beyond the Brazils to the Havannah, in the Gulf of Mexico, and
so perhaps to Spain. She had, no doubt, a great treasure in her, but of no use,
at that time, to anybody; and what became of the crew I then knew not.
I found, besides these
chests, a little cask full of liquor, of about twenty gallons, which I got into
my boat with much difficulty. There were several muskets in the cabin, and a
great powder-horn, with about four pounds of powder in it; as for the muskets,
I had no occasion for them, so I left them, but took the powder-horn. I took a
fire-shovel and tongs, which I wanted extremely, as also two little brass
kettles, a copper pot to make chocolate, and a gridiron; and with this cargo,
and the dog, I came away, the tide beginning to make home again - and the same
evening, about an hour within night, I reached the island again, weary and
fatigued to the last degree. I reposed that night in the boat and in the
morning I resolved to harbour what I had got in my new cave, and not carry it
home to my castle. After refreshing myself, I got all my cargo on shore, and
began to examine the particulars. The cask of liquor I found to be a kind of
rum, but not such as we had at the Brazils; and, in a word, not at all good;
but when I came to open the chests, I found several things of great use to me -
for example, I found in one a fine case of bottles, of an extraordinary kind,
and filled with cordial waters, fine and very good; the bottles held about
three pints each, and were tipped with silver. I found two pots of very good
succades, or sweetmeats, so fastened also on the top that the salt-water had
not hurt them; and two more of the same, which the water had spoiled. I found
some very good shirts, which were very welcome to me; and about a dozen and a
half of white linen handkerchiefs and coloured neckcloths; the former were also
very welcome, being exceedingly refreshing to wipe my face in a hot day.
Besides this, when I came to the till in the chest, I found there three great
bags of pieces of eight, which held about eleven hundred pieces in all; and in
one of them, wrapped up in a paper, six doubloons of gold, and some small bars
or wedges of gold; I suppose they might all weigh near a pound. In the other
chest were some clothes, but of little value; but, by the circumstances, it
must have belonged to the gunner’s mate; though there was no powder in it,
except two pounds of fine glazed powder, in three flasks, kept, I suppose, for
charging their fowling-pieces on occasion. Upon the whole, I got very little by
this voyage that was of any use to me; for, as to the money, I had no manner of
occasion for it; it was to me as the dirt under my feet, and I would have given
it all for three or four pair of English shoes and stockings, which were things
I greatly wanted, but had had none on my feet for many years. I had, indeed,
got two pair of shoes now, which I took off the feet of two drowned men whom I
saw in the wreck, and I found two pair more in one of the chests, which were
very welcome to me; but they were not like our English shoes, either for ease
or service, being rather what we call pumps than shoes. I found in this seaman’s
chest about fifty pieces of eight, in rials, but no gold: I supposed this
belonged to a poorer man than the other, which seemed to belong to some
officer. Well, however, I lugged this money home to my cave, and laid it up, as
I had done that before which I had brought from our own ship; but it was a
great pity, as I said, that the other part of this ship had not come to my
share: for I am satisfied I might have loaded my canoe several times over with
money; and, thought I, if I ever escape to England, it might lie here safe
enough till I come again and fetch it.
HAVING now brought all
my things on shore and secured them, I went back to my boat, and rowed or
paddled her along the shore to her old harbour, where I laid her up, and made
the best of my way to my old habitation, where I found everything safe and
quiet. I began now to repose myself, live after my old fashion, and take care
of my family affairs; and for a while I lived easy enough, only that I was more
vigilant than I used to be, looked out oftener, and did not go abroad so much;
and if at any time I did stir with any freedom, it was always to the east part
of the island, where I was pretty well satisfied the savages never came, and
where I could go without so many precautions, and such a load of arms and
ammunition as I always carried with me if I went the other way. I lived in this
condition near two years more; but my unlucky head, that was always to let me
know it was born to make my body miserable, was all these two years filled with
projects and designs how, if it were possible, I might get away from this
island: for sometimes I was for making another voyage to the wreck, though my
reason told me that there was nothing left there worth the hazard of my voyage;
sometimes for a ramble one way, sometimes another - and I believe verily, if I
had had the boat that I went from Sallee in, I should have ventured to sea,
bound anywhere, I knew not whither. I have been, in all my circumstances, a
memento to those who are touched with the general plague of mankind, whence,
for aught I know, one half of their miseries flow: I mean that of not being
satisfied with the station wherein God and Nature hath placed them - for, not
to look back upon my primitive condition, and the excellent advice of my
father, the opposition to which was, as I may call it, my original sin, my
subsequent mistakes of the same kind had been the means of my coming into this
miserable condition; for had that Providence which so happily seated me at the
Brazils as a planter blessed me with confined desires, and I could have been
contented to have gone on gradually, I might have been by this time - I mean in
the time of my being in this island - one of the most considerable planters in
the Brazils - nay, I am persuaded, that by the improvements I had made in that
little time I lived there, and the increase I should probably have made if I
had remained, I might have been worth a hundred thousand moidores - and what
business had I to leave a settled fortune, a well-stocked plantation, improving
and increasing, to turn supercargo to Guinea to fetch negroes, when patience
and time would have so increased our stock at home, that we could have bought
them at our own door from those whose business it was to fetch them? and though
it had cost us something more, yet the difference of that price was by no means
worth saving at so great a hazard. But as this is usually the fate of young
heads, so reflection upon the folly of it is as commonly the exercise of more
years, or of the dear-bought experience of time - so it was with me now; and
yet so deep had the mistake taken root in my temper, that I could not satisfy
myself in my station, but was continually poring upon the means and possibility
of my escape from this place; and that I may, with greater pleasure to the
reader, bring on the remaining part of my story, it may not be improper to give
some account of my first conceptions on the subject of this foolish scheme for
my escape, and how, and upon what foundation, I acted.
I am now to be supposed
retired into my castle, after my late voyage to the wreck, my frigate laid up
and secured under water, as usual, and my condition restored to what it was
before: I had more wealth, indeed, than I had before, but was not at all the
richer; for I had no more use for it than the Indians of Peru had before the
Spaniards came there.
It was one of the
nights in the rainy season in March, the four- and-twentieth year of my first
setting foot in this island of solitude, I was lying in my bed or hammock,
awake, very well in health, had no pain, no distemper, no uneasiness of body,
nor any uneasiness of mind more than ordinary, but could by no means close my
eyes, that is, so as to sleep; no, not a wink all night long, otherwise than as
follows: It is impossible to set down the innumerable crowd of thoughts that
whirled through that great thoroughfare of the brain, the memory, in this night’s
time. I ran over the whole history of my life in miniature, or by abridgment,
as I may call it, to my coming to this island, and also of that part of my life
since I came to this island. In my reflections upon the state of my case since
I came on shore on this island, I was comparing the happy posture of my affairs
in the first years of my habitation here, with the life of anxiety, fear, and
care which I had lived in ever since I had seen the print of a foot in the
sand. Not that I did not believe the savages had frequented the island even all
the while, and might have been several hundreds of them at times on shore
there; but I had never known it, and was incapable of any apprehensions about
it; my satisfaction was perfect, though my danger was the same, and I was as
happy in not knowing my danger as if I had never really been exposed to it.
This furnished my thoughts with many very profitable reflections, and
particularly this one: How infinitely good that Providence is, which has provided,
in its government of mankind, such narrow bounds to his sight and knowledge of
things; and though he walks in the midst of so many thousand dangers, the sight
of which, if discovered to him, would distract his mind and sink his spirits,
he is kept serene and calm, by having the events of things hid from his eyes,
and knowing nothing of the dangers which surround him.
After these thoughts
had for some time entertained me, I came to reflect seriously upon the real
danger I had been in for so many years in this very island, and how I had
walked about in the greatest security, and with all possible tranquillity, even
when perhaps nothing but the brow of a hill, a great tree, or the casual
approach of night, had been between me and the worst kind of destruction - viz.
that of falling into the hands of cannibals and savages, who would have seized
on me with the same view as I would on a goat or turtle; and have thought it no
more crime to kill and devour me than I did of a pigeon or a curlew. I would
unjustly slander myself if I should say I was not sincerely thankful to my
great Preserver, to whose singular protection I acknowledged, with great
humanity, all these unknown deliverances were due, and without which I must
inevitably have fallen into their merciless hands.
When these thoughts
were over, my head was for some time taken up in considering the nature of
these wretched creatures, I mean the savages, and how it came to pass in the
world that the wise Governor of all things should give up any of His creatures
to such inhumanity - nay, to something so much below even brutality itself - as
to devour its own kind: but as this ended in some (at that time) fruitless
speculations, it occurred to me to inquire what part of the world these
wretches lived in? how far off the coast was from whence they came? what they
ventured over so far from home for? what kind of boats they had? and why I
might not order myself and my business so that I might be able to go over
thither, as they were to come to me?
I never so much as
troubled myself to consider what I should do with myself when I went thither;
what would become of me if I fell into the hands of these savages; or how I
should escape them if they attacked me; no, nor so much as how it was possible
for me to reach the coast, and not to be attacked by some or other of them,
without any possibility of delivering myself: and if I should not fall into
their hands, what I should do for provision, or whither I should bend my
course: none of these thoughts, I say, so much as came in my way; but my mind
was wholly bent upon the notion of my passing over in my boat to the mainland.
I looked upon my present condition as the most miserable that could possibly
be; that I was not able to throw myself into anything but death, that could be
called worse; and if I reached the shore of the main I might perhaps meet with
relief, or I might coast along, as I did on the African shore, till I came to
some inhabited country, and where I might find some relief; and after all,
perhaps I might fall in with some Christian ship that might take me in: and if
the worst came to the worst, I could but die, which would put an end to all
these miseries at once. Pray note, all this was the fruit of a disturbed mind,
an impatient temper, made desperate, as it were, by the long continuance of my
troubles, and the disappointments I had met in the wreck I had been on board
of, and where I had been so near obtaining what I so earnestly longed for -
somebody to speak to, and to learn some knowledge from them of the place where
I was, and of the probable means of my deliverance. I was agitated wholly by
these thoughts; all my calm of mind, in my resignation to Providence, and
waiting the issue of the dispositions of Heaven, seemed to be suspended; and I
had as it were no power to turn my thoughts to anything but to the project of a
voyage to the main, which came upon me with such force, and such an impetuosity
of desire, that it was not to be resisted.
When this had agitated
my thoughts for two hours or more, with such violence that it set my very blood
into a ferment, and my pulse beat as if I had been in a fever, merely with the
extraordinary fervour of my mind about it, Nature - as if I had been fatigued
and exhausted with the very thoughts of it - threw me into a sound sleep. One
would have thought I should have dreamed of it, but I did not, nor of anything
relating to it, but I dreamed that as I was going out in the morning as usual
from my castle, I saw upon the shore two canoes and eleven savages coming to
land, and that they brought with them another savage whom they were going to
kill in order to eat him; when, on a sudden, the savage that they were going to
kill jumped away, and ran for his life; and I thought in my sleep that he came
running into my little thick grove before my fortification, to hide himself;
and that I seeing him alone, and not perceiving that the others sought him that
way, showed myself to him, and smiling upon him, encouraged him: that he
kneeled down to me, seeming to pray me to assist him; upon which I showed him
my ladder, made him go up, and carried him into my cave, and he became my
servant; and that as soon as I had got this man, I said to myself, "Now I
may certainly venture to the mainland, for this fellow will serve me as a
pilot, and will tell me what to do, and whither to go for provisions, and
whither not to go for fear of being devoured; what places to venture into, and
what to shun." I waked with this thought; and was under such inexpressible
impressions of joy at the prospect of my escape in my dream, that the
disappointments which I felt upon coming to myself, and finding that it was no
more than a dream, were equally extravagant the other way, and threw me into a
very great dejection of spirits.
Upon this, however, I
made this conclusion: that my only way to go about to attempt an escape was, to
endeavour to get a savage into my possession: and, if possible, it should be
one of their prisoners, whom they had condemned to be eaten, and should bring
hither to kill. But these thoughts still were attended with this difficulty:
that it was impossible to effect this without attacking a whole caravan of
them, and killing them all; and this was not only a very desperate attempt, and
might miscarry, but, on the other hand, I had greatly scrupled the lawfulness
of it to myself; and my heart trembled at the thoughts of shedding so much
blood, though it was for my deliverance. I need not repeat the arguments which
occurred to me against this, they being the same mentioned before; but though I
had other reasons to offer now - viz. that those men were enemies to my life,
and would devour me if they could; that it was self-preservation, in the
highest degree, to deliver myself from this death of a life, and was acting in
my own defence as much as if they were actually assaulting me, and the like; I
say though these things argued for it, yet the thoughts of shedding human blood
for my deliverance were very terrible to me, and such as I could by no means
reconcile myself to for a great while. However, at last, after many secret
disputes with myself, and after great perplexities about it (for all these
arguments, one way and another, struggled in my head a long time), the eager
prevailing desire of deliverance at length mastered all the rest; and I
resolved, if possible, to get one of these savages into my hands, cost what it
would. My next thing was to contrive how to do it, and this, indeed, was very
difficult to resolve on; but as I could pitch upon no probable means for it, so
I resolved to put myself upon the watch, to see them when they came on shore,
and leave the rest to the event; taking such measures as the opportunity should
present, let what would be.
With these resolutions
in my thoughts, I set myself upon the scout as often as possible, and indeed so
often that I was heartily tired of it; for it was above a year and a half that
I waited; and for great part of that time went out to the west end, and to the
south- west corner of the island almost every day, to look for canoes, but none
appeared. This was very discouraging, and began to trouble me much, though I
cannot say that it did in this case (as it had done some time before) wear off
the edge of my desire to the thing; but the longer it seemed to be delayed, the
more eager I was for it: in a word, I was not at first so careful to shun the
sight of these savages, and avoid being seen by them, as I was now eager to be
upon them. Besides, I fancied myself able to manage one, nay, two or three
savages, if I had them, so as to make them entirely slaves to me, to do
whatever I should direct them, and to prevent their being able at any time to
do me any hurt. It was a great while that I pleased myself with this affair;
but nothing still presented itself; all my fancies and schemes came to nothing,
for no savages came near me for a great while.
About a year and a half
after I entertained these notions (and by long musing had, as it were, resolved
them all into nothing, for want of an occasion to put them into execution), I
was surprised one morning by seeing no less than five canoes all on shore
together on my side the island, and the people who belonged to them all landed
and out of my sight. The number of them broke all my measures; for seeing so
many, and knowing that they always came four or six, or sometimes more in a
boat, I could not tell what to think of it, or how to take my measures to
attack twenty or thirty men single-handed; so lay still in my castle, perplexed
and discomforted. However, I put myself into the same position for an attack
that I had formerly provided, and was just ready for action, if anything had
presented. Having waited a good while, listening to hear if they made any
noise, at length, being very impatient, I set my guns at the foot of my ladder,
and .clambered up to the top of the hill, by my two stages, as usual; standing
so, however, that my head did not appear above the hill, so that they could not
perceive me by any means. Here I observed, by the help of my perspective glass,
that they were no less than thirty in number; that they had a fire kindled, and
that they had meat dressed. How they had cooked it I knew not, or what it was;
but they were all dancing, in I know not how many barbarous gestures and
figures, their own way, round the fire.
While I was thus
looking on them, I perceived, by my perspective, two miserable wretches dragged
from the boats, where, it seems, they were laid by, and were now brought out
for the slaughter. I perceived one of them immediately fall; being knocked
down, I suppose, with a club or wooden sword, for that was their way; and two
or three others were at work immediately, cutting him open for their cookery,
while the other victim was left standing by himself, till they should be ready
for him. In that very moment this poor wretch, seeing himself a little at
liberty and unbound, Nature inspired him with hopes of life, and he started
away from them, and ran with incredible swiftness along the sands, directly
towards me; I mean towards that part of the coast where my habitation was. I
was dreadfully frightened, I must acknowledge, when I perceived him run my way;
and especially when, as I thought, I saw him pursued by the whole body: and now
I expected that part of my dream was coming to pass, and that he would
certainly take shelter in my grove; but I could not depend, by any means, upon
my dream, that the other savages would not pursue him thither and find him
there. However, I kept my station, and my spirits began to recover when I found
that there was not above three men that followed him; and still more was I
encouraged, when I found that he outstripped them exceedingly in running, and
gained ground on them; so that, if he could but hold out for half-an-hour, I
saw easily he would fairly get away from them all.
There was between them
and my castle the creek, which I mentioned often in the first part of my story,
where I landed my cargoes out of the ship; and this I saw plainly he must
necessarily swim over, or the poor wretch would be taken there; but when the
savage escaping came thither, he made nothing of it, though the tide was then
up; but plunging in, swam through in about thirty strokes, or thereabouts,
landed, and ran with exceeding strength and swiftness. When the three persons
came to the creek, I found that two of them could swim, but the third could
not, and that, standing on the other side, he looked at the others, but went no
farther, and soon after went softly back again; which, as it happened, was very
well for him in the end. I observed that the two who swam were yet more than
twice as strong swimming over the creek as the fellow was that fled from them.
It came very warmly upon my thoughts, and indeed irresistibly, that now was the
time to get me a servant, and, perhaps, a companion or assistant; and that I was
plainly called by Providence to save this poor creature’s life. I immediately
ran down the ladders with all possible expedition, fetched my two guns, for
they were both at the foot of the ladders, as I observed before, and getting up
again with the same haste to the top of the hill, I crossed towards the sea;
and having a very short cut, and all down hill, placed myself in the way
between the pursuers and the pursued, hallowing aloud to him that fled, who,
looking back, was at first perhaps as much frightened at me as at them; but I
beckoned with my hand to him to come back; and, in the meantime, I slowly
advanced towards the two that followed; then rushing at once upon the foremost,
I knocked him down with the stock of my piece. I was loath to fire, because I
would not have the rest hear; though, at that distance, it would not have been
easily heard, and being out of sight of the smoke, too, they would not have
known what to make of it. Having knocked this fellow down, the other who
pursued him stopped, as if he had been frightened, and I advanced towards him:
but as I came nearer, I perceived presently he had a bow and arrow, and was
fitting it to shoot at me: so I was then obliged to shoot at him first, which I
did, and killed him at the first shot. The poor savage who fled, but had
stopped, though he saw both his enemies fallen and killed, as he thought, yet
was so frightened with the fire and noise of my piece that he stood stock
still, and neither came forward nor went backward, though he seemed rather
inclined still to fly than to come on. I hallooed again to him, and made signs
to come forward, which he easily understood, and came a little way; then
stopped again, and then a little farther, and stopped again; and I could then
perceive that he stood trembling, as if he had been taken prisoner, and had
just been to be killed, as his two enemies were. I beckoned to him again to
come to me, and gave him all the signs of encouragement that I could think of;
and he came nearer and nearer, kneeling down every ten or twelve steps, in
token of acknowledgment for saving his life. I smiled at him, and looked
pleasantly, and beckoned to him to come still nearer; at length he came close
to me; and then he kneeled down again, kissed the ground, and laid his head upon
the ground, and taking me by the foot, set my foot upon his head; this, it
seems, was in token of swearing to be my slave for ever. I took him up and made
much of him, and encouraged him all I could. But there was more work to do yet;
for I perceived the savage whom I had knocked down was not killed, but stunned
with the blow, and began to come to himself: so I pointed to him, and showed
him the savage, that he was not dead; upon this he spoke some words to me, and
though I could not understand them, yet I thought they were pleasant to hear;
for they were the first sound of a man’s voice that I had heard, my own
excepted, for above twenty-five years. But there was no time for such
reflections now; the savage who was knocked down recovered himself so far as to
sit up upon the ground, and I perceived that my savage began to be afraid; but
when I saw that, I presented my other piece at the man, as if I would shoot
him: upon this my savage, for so I call him now, made a motion to me to lend
him my sword, which hung naked in a belt by my side, which I did. He no sooner
had it, but he runs to his enemy, and at one blow cut off his head so cleverly,
no executioner in Germany could have done it sooner or better; which I thought
very strange for one who, I had reason to believe, never saw a sword in his
life before, except their own wooden swords: however, it seems, as I learned
afterwards, they make their wooden swords so sharp, so heavy, and the wood is
so hard, that they will even cut off heads with them, ay, and arms, and that at
one blow, too. When he had done this, he comes laughing to me in sign of
triumph, and brought me the sword again, and with abundance of gestures which I
did not understand, laid it down, with the head of the savage that he had
killed, just before me. But that which astonished him most was to know how I
killed the other Indian so far off; so, pointing to him, he made signs to me to
let him go to him; and I bade him go, as well as I could. When he came to him,
he stood like one amazed, looking at him, turning him first on one side, then
on the other; looked at the wound the bullet had made, which it seems was just
in his breast, where it had made a hole, and no great quantity of blood had
followed; but he had bled inwardly, for he was quite dead. He took up his bow
and arrows, and came back; so I turned to go away, and beckoned him to follow
me, making signs to him that more might come after them. Upon this he made
signs to me that he should bury them with sand, that they might not be seen by
the rest, if they followed; and so I made signs to him again to do so. He fell
to work; and in an instant he had scraped a hole in the sand with his hands big
enough to bury the first in, and then dragged him into it, and covered him; and
did so by the other also; I believe he had him buried them both in a quarter of
an hour. Then, calling away, I carried him, not to my castle, but quite away to
my cave, on the farther part of the island: so I did not let my dream come to
pass in that part, that he came into my grove for shelter. Here I gave him
bread and a bunch of raisins to eat, and a draught of water, which I found he
was indeed in great distress for, from his running: and having refreshed him, I
made signs for him to go and lie down to sleep, showing him a place where I had
laid some rice-straw, and a blanket upon it, which I used to sleep upon myself
sometimes; so the poor creature lay down, and went to sleep.
He was a comely,
handsome fellow, perfectly well made, with straight, strong limbs, not too large;
tall, and well-shaped; and, as I reckon, about twenty-six years of age. He had
a very good countenance, not a fierce and surly aspect, but seemed to have
something very manly in his face; and yet he had all the sweetness and softness
of a European in his countenance, too, especially when he smiled. His hair was
long and black, not curled like wool; his forehead very high and large; and a
great vivacity and sparkling sharpness in his eyes. The colour of his skin was
not quite black, but very tawny; and yet not an ugly, yellow, nauseous tawny,
as the Brazilians and Virginians, and other natives of America are, but of a
bright kind of a dun olive-colour, that had in it something very agreeable,
though not very easy to describe. His face was round and plump; his nose small,
not flat, like the negroes; a very good mouth, thin lips, and his fine teeth
well set, and as white as ivory.
After he had slumbered,
rather than slept, about half-an-hour, he awoke again, and came out of the cave
to me: for I had been milking my goats which I had in the enclosure just by:
when he espied me he came running to me, laying himself down again upon the
ground, with all the possible signs of an humble, thankful disposition, making
a great many antic gestures to show it. At last he lays his head flat upon the
ground, close to my foot, and sets my other foot upon his head, as he had done
before; and after this made all the signs to me of subjection, servitude, and
submission imaginable, to let me know how he would serve me so long as he
lived. I understood him in many things, and let him know I was very well
pleased with him. In a little time I began to speak to him; and teach him to
speak to me: and first, I let him know his name should be Friday, which was the
day I saved his life: I called him so for the memory of the time. I likewise
taught him to say Master; and then let him know that was to be my name: I
likewise taught him to say Yes and No and to know the meaning of them. I gave
him some milk in an earthen pot, and let him see me drink it before him, and
sop my bread in it; and gave him a cake of bread to do the like, which he
quickly complied with, and made signs that it was very good for him. I kept
there with him all that night; but as soon as it was day I beckoned to him to
come with me, and let him know I would give him some clothes; at which he
seemed very glad, for he was stark naked. As we went by the place where he had
buried the two men, he pointed exactly to the place, and showed me the marks
that he had made to find them again, making signs to me that we should dig them
up again and eat them. At this I appeared very angry, expressed my abhorrence
of it, made as if I would vomit at the thoughts of it, and beckoned with my
hand to him to come away, which he did immediately, with great submission. I
then led him up to the top of the hill, to see if his enemies were gone; and
pulling out my glass I looked, and saw plainly the place where they had been,
but no appearance of them or their canoes; so that it was plain they were gone,
and had left their two comrades behind them, without any search after them.
But I was not content
with this discovery; but having now more courage, and consequently more
curiosity, I took my man Friday with me, giving him the sword in his hand, with
the bow and arrows at his back, which I found he could use very dexterously,
making him carry one gun for me, and I two for myself; and away we marched to
the place where these creatures had been; for I had a mind now to get some
further intelligence of them. When I came to the place my very blood ran chill
in my veins, and my heart sunk within me, at the horror of the spectacle;
indeed, it was a dreadful sight, at least it was so to me, though Friday made
nothing of it. The place was covered with human bones, the ground dyed with
their blood, and great pieces of flesh left here and there, half-eaten,
mangled, and scorched; and, in short, all the tokens of the triumphant feast
they had been making there, after a victory over their enemies. I saw three
skulls, five hands, and the bones of three or four legs and feet, and abundance
of other parts of the bodies; and Friday, by his signs, made me understand that
they brought over four prisoners to feast upon; that three of them were eaten
up, and that he, pointing to himself, was the fourth; that there had been a
great battle between them and their next king, of whose subjects, it seems, he
had been one, and that they had taken a great number of prisoners; all which
were carried to several places by those who had taken them in the fight, in
order to feast upon them, as was done here by these wretches upon those they
brought hither.
I caused Friday to
gather all the skulls, bones, flesh, and whatever remained, and lay them
together in a heap, and make a great fire upon it, and burn them all to ashes.
I found Friday had still a hankering stomach after some of the flesh, and was
still a cannibal in his nature; but I showed so much abhorrence at the very
thoughts of it, and at the least appearance of it, that he durst not discover
it: for I had, by some means, let him know that I would kill him if he offered
it.
When he had done this,
we came back to our castle; and there I fell to work for my man Friday; and
first of all, I gave him a pair of linen drawers, which I had out of the poor
gunner’s chest I mentioned, which I found in the wreck, and which, with a
little alteration, fitted him very well; and then I made him a jerkin of goat’s
skin, as well as my skill would allow (for I was now grown a tolerably good
tailor); and I gave him a cap which I made of hare’s skin, very convenient, and
fashionable enough; and thus he was clothed, for the present, tolerably well,
and was mighty well pleased to see himself almost as well clothed as his
master. It is true he went awkwardly in these clothes at first: wearing the
drawers was very awkward to him, and the sleeves of the waistcoat galled his
shoulders and the inside of his arms; but a little easing them where he
complained they hurt him, and using himself to them, he took to them at length
very well.
The next day, after I
came home to my hutch with him, I began to consider where I should lodge him:
and that I might do well for him and yet be perfectly easy myself, I made a
little tent for him in the vacant place between my two fortifications, in the
inside of the last, and in the outside of the first. As there was a door or
entrance there into my cave, I made a formal framed door-case, and a door to
it, of boards, and set it up in the passage, a little within the entrance; and,
causing the door to open in the inside, I barred it up in the night, taking in
my ladders, too; so that Friday could no way come at me in the inside of my
innermost wall, without making so much noise in getting over that it must needs
awaken me; for my first wall had now a complete roof over it of long poles,
covering all my tent, and leaning up to the side of the hill; which was again
laid across with smaller sticks, instead of laths, and then thatched over a
great thickness with the rice- straw, which was strong, like reeds; and at the
hole or place which was left to go in or out by the ladder I had placed a kind
of trap- door, which, if it had been attempted on the outside, would not have
opened at all, but would have fallen down and made a great noise - as to
weapons, I took them all into my side every night. But I needed none of all
this precaution; for never man had a more faithful, loving, sincere servant
than Friday was to me: without passions, sullenness, or designs, perfectly
obliged and engaged; his very affections were tied to me, like those of a child
to a father; and I daresay he would have sacrificed his life to save mine upon
any occasion whatsoever - the many testimonies he gave me of this put it out of
doubt, and soon convinced me that I needed to use no precautions for my safety
on his account.
This frequently gave me
occasion to observe, and that with wonder, that however it had pleased God in
His providence, and in the government of the works of His hands, to take from
so great a part of the world of His creatures the best uses to which their
faculties and the powers of their souls are adapted, yet that He has bestowed
upon them the same powers, the same reason, the same affections, the same
sentiments of kindness and obligation, the same passions and resentments of
wrongs, the same sense of gratitude, sincerity, fidelity, and all the
capacities of doing good and receiving good that He has given to us; and that
when He pleases to offer them occasions of exerting these, they are as ready,
nay, more ready, to apply them to the right uses for which they were bestowed
than we are. This made me very melancholy sometimes, in reflecting, as the
several occasions presented, how mean a use we make of all these, even though
we have these powers enlightened by the great lamp of instruction, the Spirit
of God, and by the knowledge of His word added to our understanding; and why it
has pleased God to hide the like saving knowledge from so many millions of
souls, who, if I might judge by this poor savage, would make a much better use
of it than we did. From hence I sometimes was led too far, to invade the
sovereignty of Providence, and, as it were, arraign the justice of so arbitrary
a disposition of things, that should hide that sight from some, and reveal it -
to others, and yet expect a like duty from both; but I shut it up, and checked
my thoughts with this conclusion: first, that we did not know by what light and
law these should be condemned; but that as God was necessarily, and by the nature
of His being, infinitely holy and just, so it could not be, but if these
creatures were all sentenced to absence from Himself, it was on account of
sinning against that light which, as the Scripture says, was a law to
themselves, and by such rules as their consciences would acknowledge to be
just, though the foundation was not discovered to us; and secondly, that still
as we all are the clay in the hand of the potter, no vessel could say to him,
"Why hast thou formed me thus?"
But to return to my new
companion. I was greatly delighted with him, and made it my business to teach
him everything that was proper to make him useful, handy, and helpful; but
especially to make him speak, and understand me when I spoke; and he was the
aptest scholar that ever was; and particularly was so merry, so constantly
diligent, and so pleased when he could but understand me, or make me understand
him, that it was very pleasant for me to talk to him. Now my life began to be
so easy that I began to say to myself that could I but have been safe from more
savages, I cared not if I was never to remove from the place where I lived.
AFTER I had been two or
three days returned to my castle, I thought that, in order to bring Friday off
from his horrid way of feeding, and from the relish of a cannibal’s stomach, I
ought to let him taste other flesh; so I took him out with me one morning to
the woods. I went, indeed, intending to kill a kid out of my own flock; and
bring it home and dress it; but as I was going I saw a she-goat lying down in
the shade, and two young kids sitting by her. I catched hold of Friday.
"Hold," said I, "stand still;" and made signs to him not to
stir: immediately I presented my piece, shot, and killed one of the kids. The
poor creature, who had at a distance, indeed, seen me kill the savage, his
enemy, but did not know, nor could imagine how it was done, was sensibly
surprised, trembled, and shook, and looked so amazed that I thought he would
have sunk down. He did not see the kid I shot at, or perceive I had killed it,
but ripped up his waistcoat to feel whether he was not wounded; and, as I found
presently, thought I was resolved to kill him: for he came and kneeled down to
me, and embracing my knees, said a great many things I did not understand; but
I could easily see the meaning was to pray me not to kill him.
I soon found a way to
convince him that I would do him no harm; and taking him up by the hand,
laughed at him, and pointing to the kid which I had killed, beckoned to him to
run and fetch it, which he did: and while he was wondering, and looking to see
how the creature was killed, I loaded my gun again. By-and-by I saw a great
fowl, like a hawk, sitting upon a tree within shot; so, to let Friday
understand a little what I would do, I called him to me again, pointed at the
fowl, which was indeed a parrot, though I thought it had been a hawk; I say,
pointing to the parrot, and to my gun, and to the ground under the parrot, to
let him see I would make it fall, I made him understand that I would shoot and
kill that bird; accordingly, I fired, and bade him look, and immediately he saw
the parrot fall. He stood like one frightened again, notwithstanding all I had
said to him; and I found he was the more amazed, because he did not see me put
anything into the gun, but thought that there must be some wonderful fund of
death and destruction in that thing, able to kill man, beast, bird, or anything
near or far off; and the astonishment this created in him was such as could not
wear off for a long time; and I believe, if I would have let him, he would have
worshipped me and my gun. As for the gun itself, he would not so much as touch
it for several days after; but he would speak to it and talk to it, as if it
had answered him, when he was by himself; which, as I afterwards learned of
him, was to desire it not to kill him. Well, after his astonishment was a
little over at this, I pointed to him to run and fetch the bird I had shot,
which he did, but stayed some time; for the parrot, not being quite dead, had
fluttered away a good distance from the place where she fell: however, he found
her, took her up, and brought her to me; and as I had perceived his ignorance
about the gun before, I took this advantage to charge the gun again, and not to
let him see me do it, that I might be ready for any other mark that might
present; but nothing more offered at that time: so I brought home the kid, and
the same evening I took the skin off, and cut it out as well as I could; and
having a pot fit for that purpose, I boiled or stewed some of the flesh, and
made some very good broth. After I had begun to eat some I gave some to my man,
who seemed very glad of it, and liked it very well; but that which was
strangest to him was to see me eat salt with it. He made a sign to me that the
salt was not good to eat; and putting a little into his own mouth, he seemed to
nauseate it, and would spit and sputter at it, washing his mouth with fresh
water after it: on the other hand, I took some meat into my mouth without salt,
and I pretended to spit and sputter for want of salt, as much as he had done at
the salt; but it would not do; he would never care for salt with meat or in his
broth; at least, not for a great while, and then but a very little.
Having thus fed him
with boiled meat and broth, I was resolved to feast him the next day by
roasting a piece of the kid: this I did by hanging it before the fire on a
string, as I had seen many people do in England, setting two poles up, one on
each side of the fire, and one across the top, and tying the string to the
cross stick, letting the meat turn continually. This Friday admired very much;
but when he came to taste the flesh, he took so many ways to tell me how well
he liked it, that I could not but understand him: and at last he told me, as
well as he could, he would never eat man’s flesh any more, which I was very
glad to hear.
The next day I set him
to work beating some corn out, and sifting it in the manner I used to do, as I
observed before; and he soon understood how to do it as well as I, especially
after he had seen what the meaning of it was, and that it was to make bread of;
for after that I let him see me make my bread, and bake it too; and in a little
time Friday was able to do all the work for me as well as I could do it myself.
I began now to
consider, that having two mouths to feed instead of one, I must provide more
ground for my harvest, and plant a larger quantity of corn than I used to do;
so I marked out a larger piece of land, and began the fence in the same manner
as before, in which Friday worked not only very willingly and very hard, but
did it very cheerfully: and I told him what it was for; that it was for corn to
make more bread, because he was now with me, and that I might have enough for
him and myself too. He appeared very sensible of that part, and let me know
that he thought I had much more labour upon me on his account than I had for
myself; and that he would work the harder for me if I would tell him what to
do.
This was the pleasantest
year of all the life I led in this place. Friday began to talk pretty well, and
understand the names of almost everything I had occasion to call for, and of
every place I had to send him to, and talked a great deal to me; so that, in
short, I began now to have some use for my tongue again, which, indeed, I had
very little occasion for before. Besides the pleasure of talking to him, I had
a singular satisfaction in the fellow himself: his simple, unfeigned honesty
appeared to me more and more every day, and I began really to love the
creature; and on his side I believe he loved me more than it was possible for
him ever to love anything before.
I had a mind once to
try if he had any inclination for his own country again; and having taught him
English so well that he could answer me almost any question, I asked him
whether the nation that he belonged to never conquered in battle? At which he
smiled, and said - "Yes, yes, we always fight the better;" that is,
he meant always get the better in fight; and so we began the following
discourse:-
MASTER . - You always fight
the better; how came you to be taken prisoner, then, Friday?
FRIDAY - My nation beat
much for all that.
MASTER . - How beat? If your
nation beat them, how came you to be taken?
FRIDAY - They more many
than my nation, in the place where me was; they take one, two, three, and me:
my nation over-beat them in the yonder place, where me no was; there my nation
take one, two, great thousand.
MASTER . - But why did not
your side recover you from the hands of your enemies, then?
FRIDAY - They run, one,
two, three, and me, and make go in the canoe; my nation have no canoe that
time.
MASTER . - Well, Friday, and
what does your nation do with the men they take? Do they carry them away and
eat them, as these did?
FRIDAY - Yes, my nation eat
mans too; eat all up.
MASTER . - Where do they
carry them?
FRIDAY - Go to other place,
where they think.
MASTER . - Do they come
hither?
FRIDAY - Yes, yes, they
come hither; come other else place.
MASTER . - Have you been
here with them?
FRIDAY - Yes, I have been
here (points to the NW. side of the island, which, it seems, was their side).
By this I understood that
my man Friday had formerly been among the savages who used to come on shore on
the farther part of the island, on the same man-eating occasions he was now
brought for; and some time after, when I took the courage to carry him to that
side, being the same I formerly mentioned, he presently knew the place, and
told me he was there once, when they ate up twenty men, two women, and one
child; he could not tell twenty in English, but he numbered them by laying so
many stones in a row, and pointing to me to tell them over.
I have told this
passage, because it introduces what follows: that after this discourse I had
with him, I asked him how far it was from our island to the shore, and whether
the canoes were not often lost. He told me there was no danger, no canoes ever
lost: but that after a little way out to sea, there was a current and wind,
always one way in the morning, the other in the afternoon. This I understood to
be no more than the sets of the tide, as going out or coming in; but I
afterwards understood it was occasioned by the great draft and reflux of the
mighty river Orinoco, in the mouth or gulf of which river, as I found
afterwards, our island lay; and that this land, which I perceived to be W. and
NW., was the great island Trinidad, on the north point of the mouth of the
river. I asked Friday a thousand questions about the country, the inhabitants,
the sea, the coast, and what nations were near; he told me all he knew with the
greatest openness imaginable. I asked him the names of the several nations of
his sort of people, but could get no other name than Caribs; from whence I
easily understood that these were the Caribbees, which our maps place on the
part of America which reaches from the mouth of the river Orinoco to Guiana,
and onwards to St. Martha. He told me that up a great way beyond the moon, that
was beyond the setting of the moon, which must be west from their country,
there dwelt white bearded men, like me, and pointed to my great whiskers, which
I mentioned before; and that they had killed much mans, that was his word: by
all which I understood he meant the Spaniards, whose cruelties in America had
been spread over the whole country, and were remembered by all the nations from
father to son.
I inquired if he could
tell me how I might go from this island, and get among those white men. He told
me, "Yes, yes, you may go in two canoe." I could not understand what
he meant, or make him describe to me what he meant by two canoe, till at last,
with great difficulty, I found he meant it must be in a large boat, as big as
two canoes. This part of Friday’s discourse I began to relish very well; and
from this time I entertained some hopes that, one time or other, I might find
an opportunity to make my escape from this place, and that this poor savage
might be a means to help me.
During the long time
that Friday had now been with me, and that he began to speak to me, and
understand me, I was not wanting to lay a foundation of religious knowledge in
his mind; particularly I asked him one time, who made him. The creature did not
understand me at all, but thought I had asked who was his father - but I took
it up by another handle, and asked him who made the sea, the ground we walked
on, and the hills and woods. He told me, "It was one Benamuckee, that
lived beyond all;" he could describe nothing of this great person, but
that he was very old, "much older," he said, "than the sea or
land, than the moon or the stars." I asked him then, if this old person
had made all things, why did not all things worship him? He looked very grave,
and, with a perfect look of innocence, said, "All things say O to
him." I asked him if the people who die in his country went away anywhere?
He said, "Yes; they all went to Benamuckee." Then I asked him whether
those they eat up went thither too. He said, "Yes."
From these things, I
began to instruct him in the knowledge of the true God; I told him that the
great Maker of all things lived up there, pointing up towards heaven; that He
governed the world by the same power and providence by which He made it; that
He was omnipotent, and could do everything for us, give everything to us, take
everything from us; and thus, by degrees, I opened his eyes. He listened with
great attention, and received with pleasure the notion of Jesus Christ being
sent to redeem us; and of the manner of making our prayers to God, and His
being able to hear us, even in heaven. He told me one day, that if our God
could hear us, up beyond the sun, he must needs be a greater God than their
Benamuckee, who lived but a little way off, and yet could not hear till they
went up to the great mountains where he dwelt to speak to them. I asked him if
ever he went thither to speak to him. He said, "No; they never went that
were young men; none went thither but the old men," whom he called their
Oowokakee; that is, as I made him explain to me, their religious, or clergy;
and that they went to say O (so he called saying prayers), and then came back
and told them what Benamuckee said. By this I observed, that there is
priestcraft even among the most blinded, ignorant pagans in the world; and the
policy of making a secret of religion, in order to preserve the veneration of
the people to the clergy, not only to be found in the Roman, but, perhaps,
among all religions in the world, even among the most brutish and barbarous
savages.
I endeavoured to clear
up this fraud to my man Friday; and told him that the pretence of their old men
going up to the mountains to say O to their god Benamuckee was a cheat; and
their bringing word from thence what he said was much more so; that if they met
with any answer, or spake with any one there, it must be with an evil spirit;
and then I entered into a long discourse with him about the devil, the origin
of him, his rebellion against God, his enmity to man, the reason of it, his
setting himself up in the dark parts of the world to be worshipped instead of
God, and as God, and the many stratagems he made use of to delude mankind to
their ruin; how he had a secret access to our passions and to our affections,
and to adapt his snares to our inclinations, so as to cause us even to be our
own tempters, and run upon our destruction by our own choice.
I found it was not so
easy to imprint right notions in his mind about the devil as it was about the
being of a God. Nature assisted all my arguments to evidence to him even the
necessity of a great First Cause, an overruling, governing Power, a secret
directing Providence, and of the equity and justice of paying homage to Him
that made us, and the like; but there appeared nothing of this kind in the
notion of an evil spirit, of his origin, his being, his nature, and above all,
of his inclination to do evil, and to draw us in to do so too; and the poor
creature puzzled me once in such a manner, by a question merely natural and
innocent, that I scarce knew what to say to him. I had been talking a great
deal to him of the power of God, His omnipotence, His aversion to sin, His
being a consuming fire to the workers of iniquity; how, as He had made us all,
He could destroy us and all the world in a moment; and he listened with great
seriousness to me all the while. After this I had been telling him how the
devil was God’s enemy in the hearts of men, and used all his malice and skill
to defeat the good designs of Providence, and to ruin the kingdom of Christ in
the world, and the like. "Well," says Friday, "but you say God
is so strong, so great; is He not much strong, much might as the devil?"
"Yes, yes," says I, "Friday; God is stronger than the devil - God
is above the devil, and therefore we pray to God to tread him down under our
feet, and enable us to resist his temptations and quench his fiery darts."
"But," says he again, "if God much stronger, much might as the
wicked devil, why God no kill the devil, so make him no more do wicked?" I
was strangely surprised at this question; and, after all, though I was now an
old man, yet I was but a young doctor, and ill qualified for a casuist or a
solver of difficulties; and at first I could not tell what to say; so I
pretended not to hear him, and asked him what he said; but he was too earnest
for an answer to forget his question, so that he repeated it in the very same
broken words as above. By this time I had recovered myself a little, and I
said, "God will at last punish him severely; he is reserved for the
judgment, and is to be cast into the bottomless pit, to dwell with everlasting
fire." This did not satisfy Friday; but he returns upon me, repeating my
words, "’Reserve at last!’ me no understand - but why not kill the devil
now; not kill great ago?" "You may as well ask me," said I,
"why God does not kill you or me, when we do wicked things here that
offend Him - we are preserved to repent and be pardoned." He mused some
time on this. "Well, well," says he, mighty affectionately,
"that well - so you, I, devil, all wicked, all preserve, repent, God
pardon all." Here I was run down again by him to the last degree; and it
was a testimony to me, how the mere notions of nature, though they will guide reasonable
creatures to the knowledge of a God, and of a worship or homage due to the
supreme being of God, as the consequence of our nature, yet nothing but divine
revelation can form the knowledge of Jesus Christ, and of redemption purchased
for us; of a Mediator of the new covenant, and of an Intercessor at the
footstool of God’s throne; I say, nothing but a revelation from Heaven can form
these in the soul; and that, therefore, the gospel of our Lord and Saviour
Jesus Christ, I mean the Word of God, and the Spirit of God, promised for the
guide and sanctifier of His people, are the absolutely necessary instructors of
the souls of men in the saving knowledge of God and the means of salvation.
I therefore diverted
the present discourse between me and my man, rising up hastily, as upon some
sudden occasion of going out; then sending him for something a good way off, I
seriously prayed to God that He would enable me to instruct savingly this poor
savage; assisting, by His Spirit, the heart of the poor ignorant creature to
receive the light of the knowledge of God in Christ, reconciling him to
Himself, and would guide me so to speak to him from the Word of God that his
conscience might be convinced, his eyes opened, and his soul saved. When he
came again to me, I entered into a long discourse with him upon the subject of
the redemption of man by the Saviour of the world, and of the doctrine of the
gospel preached from Heaven, viz. of repentance towards God, and faith in our
blessed Lord Jesus. I then explained to him as well as I could why our blessed
Redeemer took not on Him the nature of angels but the seed of Abraham; and how,
for that reason, the fallen angels had no share in the redemption; that He came
only to the lost sheep of the house of Israel, and the like.
I had, God knows, more
sincerity than knowledge in all the methods I took for this poor creature’s
instruction, and must acknowledge, what I believe all that act upon the same
principle will find, that in laying things open to him, I really informed and
instructed myself in many things that either I did not know or had not fully
considered before, but which occurred naturally to my mind upon searching into
them, for the information of this poor savage; and I had more affection in my
inquiry after things upon this occasion than ever I felt before: so that,
whether this poor wild wretch was better for me or no, I had great reason to be
thankful that ever he came to me; my grief sat lighter, upon me; my habitation
grew comfortable to me beyond measure: and when I reflected that in this
solitary life which I have been confined to, I had not only been moved to look
up to heaven myself, and to seek the Hand that had brought me here, but was now
to be made an instrument, under Providence, to save the life, and, for aught I
knew, the soul of a poor savage, and bring him to the true knowledge of
religion and of the Christian doctrine, that he might know Christ Jesus, in
whom is life eternal; I say, when I reflected upon all these things, a secret
joy ran through every part of My soul, and I frequently rejoiced that ever I
was brought to this place, which I had so often thought the most dreadful of
all afflictions that could possibly have befallen me.
I continued in this
thankful frame all the remainder of my time; and the conversation which
employed the hours between Friday and me was such as made the three years which
we lived there together perfectly and completely happy, if any such thing as
complete happiness can be formed in a sublunary state. This savage was now a good
Christian, a much better than I; though I have reason to hope, and bless God
for it, that we were equally penitent, and comforted, restored penitents. We
had here the Word of God to read, and no farther off from His Spirit to
instruct than if we had been in England. I always applied myself, in reading
the Scripture, to let him know, as well as I could, the meaning of what I read;
and he again, by his serious inquiries and questionings, made me, as I said
before, a much better scholar in the Scripture knowledge than I should ever
have been by my own mere private reading. Another thing I cannot refrain from
observing here also, from experience in this retired part of my life, viz. how
infinite and inexpressible a blessing it is that the knowledge of God, and of
the doctrine of salvation by Christ Jesus, is so plainly laid down in the Word
of God, so easy to be received and understood, that, as the bare reading the
Scripture made me capable of understanding enough of my duty to carry me
directly on to the great work of sincere repentance for my sins, and laying
hold of a Saviour for life and salvation, to a stated reformation in practice,
and obedience to all God’s commands, and this without any teacher or
instructor, I mean human; so the same plain instruction sufficiently served to
the enlightening this savage creature, and bringing him to be such a Christian
as I have known few equal to him in my life.
As to all the disputes,
wrangling, strife, and contention which have happened in the world about
religion, whether niceties in doctrines or schemes of church government, they
were all perfectly useless to us, and, for aught I can yet see, they have been
so to the rest of the world. We had the sure guide to heaven, viz. the Word of
God; and we had, blessed be God, comfortable views of the Spirit of God
teaching and instructing by His word, leading us into all truth, and making us
both willing and obedient to the instruction of His word. And I cannot see the
least use that the greatest knowledge of the disputed points of religion, which
have made such confusion in the world, would have been to us, if we could have
obtained it. But I must go on with the historical part of things, and take
every part in its order.
After Friday and I
became more intimately acquainted, and that he could understand almost all I
said to him, and speak pretty fluently, though in broken English, to me, I
acquainted him with my own history, or at least so much of it as related to my
coming to this place: how I had lived there, and how long; I let him into the
mystery, for such it was to him, of gunpowder and bullet, and taught him how to
shoot. I gave him a knife, which he was wonderfully delighted with; and I made
him a belt, with a frog hanging to it, such as in England we wear hangers in;
and in the frog, instead of a hanger, I gave him a hatchet, which was not only
as good a weapon in some cases, but much more useful upon other occasions.
I described to him the
country of Europe, particularly England, which I came from; how we lived, how
we worshipped God, how we behaved to one another, and how we traded in ships to
all parts of the world. I gave him an account of the wreck which I had been on
board of, and showed him, as near as I could, the place where she lay; but she
was all beaten in pieces before, and gone. I showed him the ruins of our boat,
which we lost when we escaped, and which I could not stir with my whole
strength then; but was now fallen almost all to pieces. Upon seeing this boat,
Friday stood, musing a great while, and said nothing. I asked him what it was
he studied upon. At last says he, "Me see such boat like come to place at
my nation." I did not understand him a good while; but at last, when I had
examined further into it, I understood by him that a boat, such as that had
been, came on shore upon the country where he lived: that is, as he explained
it, was driven thither by stress of weather. I presently imagined that some
European ship must have been cast away upon their coast, and the boat might get
loose and drive ashore; but was so dull that I never once thought of men making
their escape from a wreck thither, much less whence they might come: so I only
inquired after a description of the boat.
Friday described the
boat to me well enough; but brought me better to understand him when he added
with some warmth, "We save the white mans from drown." Then I
presently asked if there were any white mans, as he called them, in the boat.
"Yes," he said; "the boat full of white mans." I asked him
how many. He told upon his fingers seventeen. I asked him then what became of
them. He told me, "They live, they dwell at my nation."
This put new thoughts
into my head; for I presently imagined that these might be the men belonging to
the ship that was cast away in the sight of my island, as I now called it; and
who, after the ship was struck on the rock, and they saw her inevitably lost,
had saved themselves in their boat, and were landed upon that wild shore among
the savages. Upon this I inquired of him more critically what was become of
them. He assured me they lived still there; that they had been there about four
years; that the savages left them alone, and gave them victuals to live on. I
asked him how it came to pass they did not kill them and eat them. He said,
"No, they make brother with them;" that is, as I understood him, a
truce; and then he added, "They no eat mans but when make the war
fight;" that is to say, they never eat any men but such as come to fight
with them and are taken in battle.
It was after this some
considerable time, that being upon the top of the hill at the east side of the
island, from whence, as I have said, I had, in a clear day, discovered the main
or continent of America, Friday, the weather being very serene, looks very
earnestly towards the mainland, and, in a kind of surprise, falls a jumping and
dancing, and calls out to me, for I was at some distance from him. I asked him
what was the matter. "Oh, joy!" says he; "Oh, glad! there see my
country, there my nation!" I observed an extraordinary sense of pleasure
appeared in his face, and his eyes sparkled, and his countenance discovered a
strange eagerness, as if he had a mind to be in his own country again. This
observation of mine put a great many thoughts into me, which made me at first
not so easy about my new man Friday as I was before; and I made no doubt but
that, if Friday could get back to his own nation again, he would not only
forget all his religion but all his obligation to me, and would be forward
enough to give his countrymen an account of me, and come back, perhaps with a
hundred or two of them, and make a feast upon me, at which he might be as merry
as he used to be with those of his enemies when they were taken in war. But I
wronged the poor honest creature very much, for which I was very sorry
afterwards. However, as my jealousy increased, and held some weeks, I was a
little more circumspect, and not so familiar and kind to him as before: in
which I was certainly wrong too; the honest, grateful creature having no
thought about it but what consisted with the best principles, both as a
religious Christian and as a grateful friend, as appeared afterwards to my full
satisfaction.
While my jealousy of
him lasted, you may be sure I was every day pumping him to see if he would
discover any of the new thoughts which I suspected were in him; but I found
everything he said was so honest and so innocent, that I could find nothing to
nourish my suspicion; and in spite of all my uneasiness, he made me at last
entirely his own again; nor did he in the least perceive that I was uneasy, and
therefore I could not suspect him of deceit.
One day, walking up the
same hill, but the weather being hazy at sea, so that we could not see the
continent, I called to him, and said, "Friday, do not you wish yourself in
your own country, your own nation?" "Yes," he said, "I be
much O glad to be at my own nation." "What would you do there?"
said I. "Would you turn wild again, eat men’s flesh again, and be a savage
as you were before?" He looked full of concern, and shaking his head,
said, "No, no, Friday tell them to live good; tell them to pray God; tell
them to eat corn-bread, cattle flesh, milk; no eat man again." "Why,
then," said I to him, "they will kill you." He looked grave at
that, and then said, "No, no, they no kill me, they willing love
learn." He meant by this, they would be willing to learn. He added, they
learned much of the bearded mans that came in the boat. Then I asked him if he
would go back to them. He smiled at that, and told me that he could not swim so
far. I told him I would make a canoe for him. He told me he would go if I would
go with him. "I go!" says I; "why, they will eat me if I come
there." "No, no," says he, "me make they no eat you; me
make they much love you." He meant, he would tell them how I had killed
his enemies, and saved his life, and so he would make them love me. Then he
told me, as well as he could, how kind they were to seventeen white men, or
bearded men, as he called them who came on shore there in distress.
From this time, I
confess, I had a mind to venture over, and see if I could possibly join with
those bearded men, who I made no doubt were Spaniards and Portuguese; not
doubting but, if I could, we might find some method to escape from thence,
being upon the continent, and a good company together, better than I could from
an island forty miles off the shore, alone and without help. So, after some
days, I took Friday to work again by way of discourse, and told him I would
give him a boat to go back to his own nation; and, accordingly, I carried him
to my frigate, which lay on the other side of the island, and having cleared it
of water (for I always kept it sunk in water), I brought it out, showed it him,
and we both went into it. I found he was a most dexterous fellow at managing
it, and would make it go almost as swift again as I could. So when he was in, I
said to him, "Well, now, Friday, shall we go to your nation?" He
looked very dull at my saying so; which it seems was because he thought the
boat was too small to go so far. I then told him I had a bigger; so the next
day I went to the place where the first boat lay which I had made, but which I
could not get into the water. He said that was big enough; but then, as I had
taken no care of it, and it had lain two or three and twenty years there, the
sun had so split and dried it, that it was rotten. Friday told me such a boat
would do very well, and would carry "much enough vittle, drink,
bread;" this was his way of talking.
UPON the whole, I was
by this time so fixed upon my design of going over with him to the continent
that I told him we would go and make one as big as that, and he should go home
in it. He answered not one word, but looked very grave and sad. I asked him
what was the matter with him. He asked me again, "Why you angry mad with
Friday? - what me done?" I asked him what he meant. I told him I was not
angry with him at all. "No angry!" says he, repeating the words
several times; "why send Friday home away to my nation?"
"Why," says I, "Friday, did not you say you wished you were
there?" "Yes, yes," says he, "wish we both there; no wish
Friday there, no master there." In a word, he would not think of going
there without me. "I go there, Friday?" says I; "what shall I do
there?" He turned very quick upon me at this. "You do great deal much
good," says he; "you teach wild mans be good, sober, tame mans; you
tell them know God, pray God, and live new life." "Alas,
Friday!" says I, "thou knowest not what thou sayest; I am but an
ignorant man myself." "Yes, yes," says he, "you teachee me
good, you teachee them good." "No, no, Friday," says I,
"you shall go without me; leave me here to live by myself, as I did
before." He looked confused again at that word; and running to one of the
hatchets which he used to wear, he takes it up hastily, and gives it to me.
"What must I do with this?" says I to him. "You take kill
Friday," says he. "What must kill you for?" said I again. He
returns very quick - "What you send Friday away for? Take kill Friday, no
send Friday away." This he spoke so earnestly that I saw tears stand in his
eyes. In a word, I so plainly discovered the utmost affection in him to me, and
a firm resolution in him, that I told him then and often after, that I would
never send him away from me if he was willing to stay with me.
Upon the whole, as I
found by all his discourse a settled affection to me, and that nothing could
part him from me, so I found all the foundation of his desire to go to his own
country was laid in his ardent affection to the people, and his hopes of my
doing them good; a thing which, as I had no notion of myself, so I had not the
least thought or intention, or desire of undertaking it. But still I found a
strong inclination to attempting my escape, founded on the supposition gathered
from the discourse, that there were seventeen bearded men there; and therefore,
without any more delay, I went to work with Friday to find out a great tree
proper to fell, and make a large periagua, or canoe, to undertake the voyage.
There were trees enough in the island to have built a little fleet, not of periaguas
or canoes, but even of good, large vessels; but the main thing I looked at was,
to get one so near the water that we might launch it when it was made, to avoid
the mistake I committed at first. At last Friday pitched upon a tree; for I
found he knew much better than I what kind of wood was fittest for it; nor can
I tell to this day what wood to call the tree we cut down, except that it was
very like the tree we call fustic, or between that and the Nicaragua wood, for
it was much of the same colour and smell. Friday wished to burn the hollow or
cavity of this tree out, to make it for a boat, but I showed him how to cut it
with tools; which, after I had showed him how to use, he did very handily; and
in about a month’s hard labour we finished it and made it very handsome;
especially when, with our axes, which I showed him how to handle, we cut and
hewed the outside into the true shape of a boat. After this, however, it cost
us near a fortnight’s time to get her along, as it were inch by inch, upon great
rollers into the water; but when she was in, she would have carried twenty men
with great ease.
When she was in the
water, though she was so big, it amazed me to see with what dexterity and how
swift my man Friday could manage her, turn her, and paddle her along. So I
asked him if he would, and if we might venture over in her. "Yes," he
said, "we venture over in her very well, though great blow wind."
However I had a further design that he knew nothing of, and that was, to make a
mast and a sail, and to fit her with an anchor and cable. As to a mast, that
was easy enough to get; so I pitched upon a straight young cedar-tree, which I
found near the place, and which there were great plenty of in the island, and I
set Friday to work to cut it down, and gave him directions how to shape and
order it. But as to the sail, that was my particular care. I knew I had old
sails, or rather pieces of old sails, enough; but as I had had them now
six-and-twenty years by me, and had not been very careful to preserve them, not
imagining that I should ever have this kind of use for them, I did not doubt
but they were all rotten; and, indeed, most of them were so. However, I found
two pieces which appeared pretty good, and with these I went to work; and with
a great deal of pains, and awkward stitching, you may be sure, for want of
needles, I at length made a three-cornered ugly thing, like what we call in
England a shoulder-of-mutton sail, to go with a boom at bottom, and a little
short sprit at the top, such as usually our ships’ long-boats sail with, and
such as I best knew how to manage, as it was such a one as I had to the boat in
which I made my escape from Barbary, as related in the first part of my story.
I was near two months
performing this last work, viz. rigging and fitting my masts and sails; for I
finished them very complete, making a small stay, and a sail, or foresail, to
it, to assist if we should turn to windward; and, what was more than all, I
fixed a rudder to the stern of her to steer with. I was but a bungling
shipwright, yet as I knew the usefulness and even necessity of such a thing, I
applied myself with so much pains to do it, that at last I brought it to pass;
though, considering the many dull contrivances I had for it that failed, I
think it cost me almost as much labour as making the boat.
After all this was
done, I had my man Friday to teach as to what belonged to the navigation of my
boat; though he knew very well how to paddle a canoe, he knew nothing of what
belonged to a sail and a rudder; and was the most amazed when he saw me work
the boat to and again in the sea by the rudder, and how the sail jibed, and
filled this way or that way as the course we sailed changed; I say when he saw
this he stood like one astonished and amazed. However, with a little use, I
made all these things familiar to him, and he became an expert sailor, except
that of the compass I could make him understand very little. On the other hand,
as there was very little cloudy weather, and seldom or never any fogs in those parts,
there was the less occasion for a compass, seeing the stars were always to be
seen by night, and the shore by day, except in the rainy seasons, and then
nobody cared to stir abroad either by land or sea.
I was now entered on
the seven-and-twentieth year of my captivity in this place; though the three
last years that I had this creature with me ought rather to be left out of the
account, my habitation being quite of another kind than in all the rest of the
time. I kept the anniversary of my landing here with the same thankfulness to
God for His mercies as at first: and if I had such cause of acknowledgment at
first, I had much more so now, having such additional testimonies of the care
of Providence over me, and the great hopes I had of being effectually and
speedily delivered; for I had an invincible impression upon my thoughts that my
deliverance was at hand, and that I should not be another year in this place. I
went on, however, with my husbandry; digging, planting, and fencing as usual. I
gathered and cured my grapes, and did every necessary thing as before.
The rainy season was in
the meantime upon me, when I kept more within doors than at other times. We had
stowed our new vessel as secure as we could, bringing her up into the creek,
where, as I said in the beginning, I landed my rafts from the ship; and hauling
her up to the shore at high-water mark, I made my man Friday dig a little dock,
just big enough to hold her, and just deep enough to give her water enough to
float in; and then, when the tide was out, we made a strong dam across the end
of it, to keep the water out; and so she lay, dry as to the tide from the sea:
and to keep the rain off we laid a great many boughs of trees, so thick that
she was as well thatched as a house; and thus we waited for the months of
November and December, in which I designed to make my adventure.
When the settled season
began to come in, as the thought of my design returned with the fair weather, I
was preparing daily for the voyage. And the first thing I did was to lay by a
certain quantity of provisions, being the stores for our voyage; and intended
in a week or a fortnight’s time to open the dock, and launch out our boat. I
was busy one morning upon something of this kind, when I called to Friday, and
bid him to go to the sea-shore and see if he could find a turtle or a tortoise,
a thing which we generally got once a week, for the sake of the eggs as well as
the flesh. Friday had not been long gone when he came running back, and flew
over my outer wall or fence, like one that felt not the ground or the steps he
set his foot on; and before I had time to speak to him he cries out to me,
"O master! O master! O sorrow! O bad!" - "What’s the matter,
Friday?" says I. "O yonder there," says he, "one, two,
three canoes; one, two, three!" By this way of speaking I concluded there
were six; but on inquiry I found there were but three. "Well,
Friday," says I, "do not be frightened." So I heartened him up
as well as I could. However, I saw the poor fellow was most terribly scared,
for nothing ran in his head but that they were come to look for him, and would
cut him in pieces and eat him; and the poor fellow trembled so that I scarcely
knew what to do with him. I comforted him as well as I could, and told him I
was in as much danger as he, and that they would eat me as well as him.
"But," says I, "Friday, we must resolve to fight them. Can you
fight, Friday?" "Me shoot," says he, "but there come many
great number." "No matter for that," said I again; "our
guns will fright them that we do not kill." So I asked him whether, if I
resolved to defend him, he would defend me, and stand by me, and do just as I
bid him. He said, "Me die when you bid die, master." So I went and
fetched a good dram of rum and gave him; for I had been so good a husband of my
rum that I had a great deal left. When we had drunk it, I made him take the two
fowling- pieces, which we always carried, and loaded them with large swan-
shot, as big as small pistol-bullets. Then I took four muskets, and loaded them
with two slugs and five small bullets each; and my two pistols I loaded with a
brace of bullets each. I hung my great sword, as usual, naked by my side, and
gave Friday his hatchet. When I had thus prepared myself, I took my perspective
glass, and went up to the side of the hill, to see what I could discover; and I
found quickly by my glass that there were one-and-twenty savages, three
prisoners, and three canoes; and that their whole business seemed to be the
triumphant banquet upon these three human bodies: a barbarous feast, indeed!
but nothing more than, as I had observed, was usual with them. I observed also
that they had landed, not where they had done when Friday made his escape, but
nearer to my creek, where the shore was low, and where a thick wood came almost
close down to the sea. This, with the abhorrence of the inhuman errand these
wretches came about, filled me with such indignation that I came down again to
Friday, and told him I was resolved to go down to them and kill them all; and
asked him if he would stand by me. He had now got over his fright, and his
spirits being a little raised with the dram I had given him, he was very
cheerful, and told me, as before, he would die when I bid die.
In this fit of fury I
divided the arms which I had charged, as before, between us; I gave Friday one
pistol to stick in his girdle, and three guns upon his shoulder, and I took one
pistol and the other three guns myself; and in this posture we marched out. I
took a small bottle of rum in my pocket, and gave Friday a large bag with more
powder and bullets; and as to orders, I charged him to keep close behind me,
and not to stir, or shoot, or do anything till I bid him, and in the meantime
not to speak a word. In this posture I fetched a compass to my right hand of
near a mile, as well to get over the creek as to get into the wood, so that I
could come within shot of them before I should be discovered, which I had seen
by my glass it was easy to do.
While I was making this
march, my former thoughts returning, I began to abate my resolution: I do not
mean that I entertained any fear of their number, for as they were naked,
unarmed wretches, it is certain I was superior to them - nay, though I had been
alone. But it occurred to my thoughts, what call, what occasion, much less what
necessity I was in to go and dip my hands in blood, to attack people who had
neither done or intended me any wrong? who, as to me, were innocent, and whose
barbarous customs were their own disaster, being in them a token, indeed, of God’s
having left them, with the other nations of that part of the world, to such
stupidity, and to such inhuman courses, but did not call me to take upon me to
be a judge of their actions, much less an executioner of His justice - that
whenever He thought fit He would take the cause into His own hands, and by
national vengeance punish them as a people for national crimes, but that, in
the meantime, it was none of my business - that it was true Friday might
justify it, because he was a declared enemy and in a state of war with those
very particular people, and it was lawful for him to attack them - but I could
not say the same with regard to myself. These things were so warmly pressed
upon my thoughts all the way as I went, that I resolved I would only go and
place myself near them that I might observe their barbarous feast, and that I
would act then as God should direct; but that unless something offered that was
more a call to me than yet I knew of, I would not meddle with them.
With this resolution I
entered the wood, and, with all possible wariness and silence, Friday following
close at my heels, I marched till I came to the skirts of the wood on the side
which was next to them, only that one corner of the wood lay between me and
them. Here I called softly to Friday, and showing him a great tree which was
just at the corner of the wood, I bade him go to the tree, and bring me word if
he could see there plainly what they were doing. He did so, and came
immediately back to me, and told me they might be plainly viewed there - that
they were all about their fire, eating the flesh of one of their prisoners, and
that another lay bound upon the sand a little from them, whom he said they
would kill next; and this fired the very soul within me. He told me it was not
one of their nation, but one of the bearded men he had told me of, that came to
their country in the boat. I was filled with horror at the very naming of the
white bearded man; and going to the tree, I saw plainly by my glass a white
man, who lay upon the beach of the sea with his hands and his feet tied with
flags, or things like rushes, and that he was an European, and had clothes on.
There was another tree
and a little thicket beyond it, about fifty yards nearer to them than the place
where I was, which, by going a little way about, I saw I might come at
undiscovered, and that then I should be within half a shot of them; so I
withheld my passion, though I was indeed enraged to the highest degree; and
going back about twenty paces, I got behind some bushes, which held all the way
till I came to the other tree, and then came to a little rising ground, which
gave me a full view of them at the distance of about eighty yards.
I had now not a moment
to lose, for nineteen of the dreadful wretches sat upon the ground, all close
huddled together, and had just sent the other two to butcher the poor
Christian, and bring him perhaps limb by limb to their fire, and they were
stooping down to untie the bands at his feet. I turned to Friday. "Now,
Friday," said I, "do as I bid thee." Friday said he would.
"Then, Friday," says I, "do exactly as you see me do; fail in
nothing." So I set down one of the muskets and the fowling-piece upon the
ground, and Friday did the like by his, and with the other musket I took my aim
at the savages, bidding him to do the like; then asking him if he was ready, he
said, "Yes." "Then fire at them," said I; and at the same
moment I fired also.
Friday took his aim so
much better than I, that on the side that he shot he killed two of them, and
wounded three more; and on my side I killed one, and wounded two. They were,
you may be sure, in a dreadful consternation: and all of them that were not
hurt jumped upon their feet, but did not immediately know which way to run, or
which way to look, for they knew not from whence their destruction came. Friday
kept his eyes close upon me, that, as I had bid him, he might observe what I
did; so, as soon as the first shot was made, I threw down the piece, and took
up the fowling-piece, and Friday did the like; he saw me cock and present; he
did the same again. "Are you ready, Friday?" said I. "Yes,"
says he. "Let fly, then," says I, "in the name of God!" and
with that I fired again among the amazed wretches, and so did Friday; and as
our pieces were now loaded with what I call swan-shot, or small pistol-
bullets, we found only two drop; but so many were wounded that they ran about
yelling and screaming like mad creatures, all bloody, and most of them
miserably wounded; whereof three more fell quickly after, though not quite
dead.
"Now,
Friday," says I, laying down the discharged pieces, and taking up the
musket which was yet loaded, "follow me," which he did with a great
deal of courage; upon which I rushed out of the wood and showed myself, and
Friday close at my foot. As soon as I perceived they saw me, I shouted as loud
as I could, and bade Friday do so too, and running as fast as I could, which,
by the way, was not very fast, being loaded with arms as I was, I made directly
towards the poor victim, who was, as I said, lying upon the beach or shore,
between the place where they sat and the sea. The two butchers who were just
going to work with him had left him at the surprise of our first fire, and fled
in a terrible fright to the seaside, and had jumped into a canoe, and three
more of the rest made the same way. I turned to Friday, and bade him step
forwards and fire at them; he understood me immediately, and running about
forty yards, to be nearer them, he shot at them; and I thought he had killed
them all, for I saw them all fall of a heap into the boat, though I saw two of
them up again quickly; however, he killed two of them, and wounded the third,
so that he lay down in the bottom of the boat as if he had been dead.
While my man Friday
fired at them, I pulled out my knife and cut the flags that bound the poor
victim; and loosing his hands and feet, I lifted him up, and asked him in the
Portuguese tongue what he was. He answered in Latin, Christianus; but was so
weak and faint that he could scarce stand or speak. I took my bottle out of my
pocket and gave it him, making signs that he should drink, which he did; and I
gave him a piece of bread, which he ate. Then I asked him what countryman he
was: and he said, Espagniole; and being a little recovered, let me know, by all
the signs he could possibly make, how much he was in my debt for his
deliverance. "Seignior," said I, with as much Spanish as I could make
up, "we will talk afterwards, but we must fight now: if you have any
strength left, take this pistol and sword, and lay about you." He took
them very thankfully; and no sooner had he the arms in his hands, but, as if
they had put new vigour into him, he flew upon his murderers like a fury, and
had cut two of them in pieces in an instant; for the truth is, as the whole was
a surprise to them, so the poor creatures were so much frightened with the
noise of our pieces that they fell down for mere amazement and fear, and had no
more power to attempt their own escape than their flesh had to resist our shot;
and that was the case of those five that Friday shot at in the boat; for as
three of them fell with the hurt they received, so the other two fell with the
fright.
I kept my piece in my
hand still without firing, being willing to keep my charge ready, because I had
given the Spaniard my pistol and sword: so I called to Friday, and bade him run
up to the tree from whence we first fired, and fetch the arms which lay there
that had been discharged, which he did with great swiftness; and then giving
him my musket, I sat down myself to load all the rest again, and bade them come
to me when they wanted. While I was loading these pieces, there happened a
fierce engagement between the Spaniard and one of the savages, who made at him
with one of their great wooden swords, the weapon that was to have killed him
before, if I had not prevented it. The Spaniard, who was as bold and brave as
could be imagined, though weak, had fought the Indian a good while, and had cut
two great wounds on his head; but the savage being a stout, lusty fellow,
closing in with him, had thrown him down, being faint, and was wringing my
sword out of his hand; when the Spaniard, though undermost, wisely quitting the
sword, drew the pistol from his girdle, shot the savage through the body, and
killed him upon the spot, before I, who was running to help him, could come
near him.
Friday, being now left
to his liberty, pursued the flying wretches, with no weapon in his hand but his
hatchet: and with that he despatched those three who as I said before, were
wounded at first, and fallen, and all the rest he could come up with: and the
Spaniard coming to me for a gun, I gave him one of the fowling- pieces, with
which he pursued two of the savages, and wounded them both; but as he was not
able to run, they both got from him into the wood, where Friday pursued them,
and killed one of them, but the other was too nimble for him; and though he was
wounded, yet had plunged himself into the sea, and swam with all his might off
to those two who were left in the canoe; which three in the canoe, with one
wounded, that we knew not whether he died or no, were all that escaped our
hands of one-and-twenty. The account of the whole is as follows: Three killed
at our first shot from the tree; two killed at the next shot; two killed by
Friday in the boat; two killed by Friday of those at first wounded; one killed
by Friday in the wood; three killed by the Spaniard; four killed, being found
dropped here and there, of the wounds, or killed by Friday in his chase of them;
four escaped in the boat, whereof one wounded, if not dead - twenty-one in all.
Those that were in the
canoe worked hard to get out of gun-shot, and though Friday made two or three
shots at them, I did not find that he hit any of them. Friday would fain have
had me take one of their canoes, and pursue them; and indeed I was very anxious
about their escape, lest, carrying the news home to their people, they should
come back perhaps with two or three hundred of the canoes and devour us by mere
multitude; so I consented to pursue them by sea, and running to one of their
canoes, I jumped in and bade Friday follow me: but when I was in the canoe I
was surprised to find another poor creature lie there, bound hand and foot, as
the Spaniard was, for the slaughter, and almost dead with fear, not knowing
what was the matter; for he had not been able to look up over the side of the
boat, he was tied so hard neck and heels, and had been tied so long that he had
really but little life in him.
I immediately cut the
twisted flags or rushes which they had bound him with, and would have helped
him up; but he could not stand or speak, but groaned most piteously, believing,
it seems, still, that he was only unbound in order to be killed. When Friday
came to him I bade him speak to him, and tell him of his deliverance; and
pulling out my bottle, made him give the poor wretch a dram, which, with the
news of his being delivered, revived him, and he sat up in the boat. But when
Friday came to hear him speak, and look in his face, it would have moved any
one to tears to have seen how Friday kissed him, embraced him, hugged him,
cried, laughed, hallooed, jumped about, danced, sang; then cried again, wrung
his hands, beat his own face and head; and then sang and jumped about again like
a distracted creature. It was a good while before I could make him speak to me
or tell me what was the matter; but when he came a little to himself he told me
that it was his father.
It is not easy for me
to express how it moved me to see what ecstasy and filial affection had worked
in this poor savage at the sight of his father, and of his being delivered from
death; nor indeed can I describe half the extravagances of his affection after
this: for he went into the boat and out of the boat a great many times: when he
went in to him he would sit down by him, open his breast, and hold his father’s
head close to his bosom for many minutes together, to nourish it; then he took
his arms and ankles, which were numbed and stiff with the binding, and chafed
and rubbed them with his hands; and I, perceiving what the case was, gave him
some rum out of my bottle to rub them with, which did them a great deal of
good.
This affair put an end
to our pursuit of the canoe with the other savages, who were now almost out of
sight; and it was happy for us that we did not, for it blew so hard within two
hours after, and before they could be got a quarter of their way, and continued
blowing so hard all night, and that from the north-west, which was against
them, that I could not suppose their boat could live, or that they ever reached
their own coast.
But to return to
Friday; he was so busy about his father that I could not find in my heart to
take him off for some time; but after I thought he could leave him a little, I
called him to me, and he came jumping and laughing, and pleased to the highest
extreme: then I asked him if he had given his father any bread. He shook his head,
and said, "None; ugly dog eat all up self." I then gave him a cake of
bread out of a little pouch I carried on purpose; I also gave him a dram for
himself; but he would not taste it, but carried it to his father. I had in my
pocket two or three bunches of raisins, so I gave him a handful of them for his
father. He had no sooner given his father these raisins but I saw him come out
of the boat, and run away as if he had been bewitched, for he was the swiftest
fellow on his feet that ever I saw: I say, he ran at such a rate that he was
out of sight, as it were, in an instant; and though I called, and hallooed out
too after him, it was all one - away he went; and in a quarter of an hour I saw
him come back again, though not so fast as he went; and as he came nearer I
found his pace slacker, because he had something in his hand. When he came up
to me I found he had been quite home for an earthen jug or pot, to bring his
father some fresh water, and that he had got two more cakes or loaves of bread:
the bread he gave me, but the water he carried to his father; however, as I was
very thirsty too, I took a little of it. The water revived his father more than
all the rum or spirits I had given him, for he was fainting with thirst.
When his father had
drunk, I called to him to know if there was any water left. He said,
"Yes"; and I bade him give it to the poor Spaniard, who was in as
much want of it as his father; and I sent one of the cakes that Friday brought
to the Spaniard too, who was indeed very weak, and was reposing himself upon a
green place under the shade of a tree; and whose limbs were also very stiff,
and very much swelled with the rude bandage he had been tied with. When I saw
that upon Friday’s coming to him with the water he sat up and drank, and took
the bread and began to eat, I went to him and gave him a handful of raisins. He
looked up in my face with all the tokens of gratitude and thankfulness that
could appear in any countenance; but was so weak, notwithstanding he had so
exerted himself in the fight, that he could not stand up upon his feet - he
tried to do it two or three times, but was really not able, his ankles were so
swelled and so painful to him; so I bade him sit still, and caused Friday to
rub his ankles, and bathe them with rum, as he had done his father’s.
I observed the poor
affectionate creature, every two minutes, or perhaps less, all the while he was
here, turn his head about to see if his father was in the same place and
posture as he left him sitting; and at last he found he was not to be seen; at
which he started up, and, without speaking a word, flew with that swiftness to
him that one could scarce perceive his feet to touch the ground as he went; but
when he came, he only found he had laid himself down to ease his limbs, so Friday
came back to me presently; and then I spoke to the Spaniard to let Friday help
him up if he could, and lead him to the boat, and then he should carry him to
our dwelling, where I would take care of him. But Friday, a lusty, strong
fellow, took the Spaniard upon his back, and carried him away to the boat, and
set him down softly upon the side or gunnel of the canoe, with his feet in the
inside of it; and then lifting him quite in, he set him close to his father;
and presently stepping out again, launched the boat off, and paddled it along
the shore faster than I could walk, though the wind blew pretty hard too; so he
brought them both safe into our creek, and leaving them in the boat, ran away
to fetch the other canoe. As he passed me I spoke to him, and asked him whither
he went. He told me, "Go fetch more boat;" so away he went like the
wind, for sure never man or horse ran like him; and he had the other canoe in
the creek almost as soon as I got to it by land; so he wafted me over, and then
went to help our new guests out of the boat, which he did; but they were
neither of them able to walk; so that poor Friday knew not what to do.
To remedy this, I went
to work in my thought, and calling to Friday to bid them sit down on the bank
while he came to me, I soon made a kind of hand-barrow to lay them on, and
Friday and I carried them both up together upon it between us.
But when we got them to
the outside of our wall, or fortification, we were at a worse loss than before,
for it was impossible to get them over, and I was resolved not to break it
down; so I set to work again, and Friday and I, in about two hours’ time, made
a very handsome tent, covered with old sails, and above that with boughs of
trees, being in the space without our outward fence and between that and the
grove of young wood which I had planted; and here we made them two beds of such
things as I had - viz. of good rice- straw, with blankets laid upon it to lie
on, and another to cover them, on each bed.
My island was now
peopled, and I thought myself very rich in subjects; and it was a merry
reflection, which I frequently made, how like a king I looked. First of all,
the whole country was my own property, so that I had an undoubted right of
dominion. Secondly, my people were perfectly subjected - I was absolutely lord
and lawgiver - they all owed their lives to me, and were ready to lay down
their lives, if there had been occasion for it, for me. It was remarkable, too,
I had but three subjects, and they were of three different religions - my man
Friday was a Protestant, his father was a Pagan and a cannibal, and the
Spaniard was a Papist. However, I allowed liberty of conscience throughout my
dominions. But this is by the way.
As soon as I had
secured my two weak, rescued prisoners, and given them shelter, and a place to
rest them upon, I began to think of making some provision for them; and the
first thing I did, I ordered Friday to take a yearling goat, betwixt a kid and
a goat, out of my particular flock, to be killed; when I cut off the
hinder-quarter, and chopping it into small pieces, I set Friday to work to
boiling and stewing, and made them a very good dish, I assure you, of flesh and
broth; and as I cooked it without doors, for I made no fire within my inner
wall, so I carried it all into the new tent, and having set a table there for
them, I sat down, and ate my own dinner also with them, and, as well as I
could, cheered them and encouraged them. Friday was my interpreter, especially
to his father, and, indeed, to the Spaniard too; for the Spaniard spoke the
language of the savages pretty well.
After we had dined, or
rather supped, I ordered Friday to take one of the canoes, and go and fetch our
muskets and other firearms, which, for want of time, we had left upon the place
of battle; and the next day I ordered him to go and bury the dead bodies of the
savages, which lay open to the sun, and would presently be offensive. I also
ordered him to bury the horrid remains of their barbarous feast, which I could
not think of doing myself; nay, I could not bear to see them if I went that
way; all which he punctually performed, and effaced the very appearance of the
savages being there; so that when I went again, I could scarce know where it
was, otherwise than by the corner of the wood pointing to the place.
I then began to enter
into a little conversation with my two new subjects; and, first, I set Friday
to inquire of his father what he thought of the escape of the savages in that
canoe, and whether we might expect a return of them, with a power too great for
us to resist. His first opinion was, that the savages in the boat never could
live out the storm which blew that night they went off, but must of necessity
be drowned, or driven south to those other shores, where they were as sure to
be devoured as they were to be drowned if they were cast away; but, as to what
they would do if they came safe on shore, he said he knew not; but it was his
opinion that they were so dreadfully frightened with the manner of their being
attacked, the noise, and the fire, that he believed they would tell the people
they were all killed by thunder and lightning, not by the hand of man; and that
the two which appeared - viz. Friday and I - were two heavenly spirits, or
furies, come down to destroy them, and not men with weapons. This, he said, he
knew; because he heard them all cry out so, in their language, one to another;
for it was impossible for them to conceive that a man could dart fire, and
speak thunder, and kill at a distance, without lifting up the hand, as was done
now: and this old savage was in the right; for, as I understood since, by other
hands, the savages never attempted to go over to the island afterwards, they
were so terrified with the accounts given by those four men (for it seems they
did escape the sea), that they believed whoever went to that enchanted island
would be destroyed with fire from the gods. This, however, I knew not; and
therefore was under continual apprehensions for a good while, and kept always
upon my guard, with all my army: for, as there were now four of us, I would
have ventured upon a hundred of them, fairly in the open field, at any time.
IN a little time,
however, no more canoes appearing, the fear of their coming wore off; and I
began to take my former thoughts of a voyage to the main into consideration;
being likewise assured by Friday’s father that I might depend upon good usage
from their nation, on his account, if I would go. But my thoughts were a little
suspended when I had a serious discourse with the Spaniard, and when I
understood that there were sixteen more of his countrymen and Portuguese, who
having been cast away and made their escape to that side, lived there at peace,
indeed, with the savages, but were very sore put to it for necessaries, and,
indeed, for life. I asked him all the particulars of their voyage, and found
they were a Spanish ship, bound from the Rio de la Plata to the Havanna, being
directed to leave their loading there, which was chiefly hides and silver, and
to bring back what European goods they could meet with there; that they had
five Portuguese seamen on board, whom they took out of another wreck; that five
of their own men were drowned when first the ship was lost, and that these
escaped through infinite dangers and hazards, and arrived, almost starved, on
the cannibal coast, where they expected to have been devoured every moment. He
told me they had some arms with them, but they were perfectly useless, for that
they had neither powder nor ball, the washing of the sea having spoiled all
their powder but a little, which they used at their first landing to provide
themselves with some food.
I asked him what he
thought would become of them there, and if they had formed any design of making
their escape. He said they had many consultations about it; but that having
neither vessel nor tools to build one, nor provisions of any kind, their
councils always ended in tears and despair. I asked him how he thought they
would receive a proposal from me, which might tend towards an escape; and
whether, if they were all here, it might not be done. I told him with freedom,
I feared mostly their treachery and ill- usage of me, if I put my life in their
hands; for that gratitude was no inherent virtue in the nature of man, nor did
men always square their dealings by the obligations they had received so much
as they did by the advantages they expected. I told him it would be very hard
that I should be made the instrument of their deliverance, and that they should
afterwards make me their prisoner in New Spain, where an Englishman was certain
to be made a sacrifice, what necessity or what accident soever brought him
thither; and that I had rather be delivered up to the savages, and be devoured
alive, than fall into the merciless claws of the priests, and be carried into
the Inquisition. I added that, otherwise, I was persuaded, if they were all
here, we might, with so many hands, build a barque large enough to carry us all
away, either to the Brazils southward, or to the islands or Spanish coast
northward; but that if, in requital, they should, when I had put weapons into
their hands, carry me by force among their own people, I might be ill-used for
my kindness to them, and make my case worse than it was before.
He answered, with a
great deal of candour and ingenuousness, that their condition was so miserable,
and that they were so sensible of it, that he believed they would abhor the
thought of using any man unkindly that should contribute to their deliverance;
and that, if I pleased, he would go to them with the old man, and discourse
with them about it, and return again and bring me their answer; that he would
make conditions with them upon their solemn oath, that they should be
absolutely under my direction as their commander and captain; and they should
swear upon the holy sacraments and gospel to be true to me, and go to such
Christian country as I should agree to, and no other; and to be directed wholly
and absolutely by my orders till they were landed safely in such country as I
intended, and that he would bring a contract from them, under their hands, for
that purpose. Then he told me he would first swear to me himself that he would
never stir from me as long as he lived till I gave him orders; and that he
would take my side to the last drop of his blood, if there should happen the
least breach of faith among his countrymen. He told me they were all of them
very civil, honest men, and they were under the greatest distress imaginable,
having neither weapons nor clothes, nor any food, but at the mercy and
discretion of the savages; out of all hopes of ever returning to their own
country; and that he was sure, if I would undertake their relief, they would
live and die by me.
Upon these assurances,
I resolved to venture to relieve them, if possible, and to send the old savage
and this Spaniard over to them to treat. But when we had got all things in
readiness to go, the Spaniard himself started an objection, which had so much
prudence in it on one hand, and so much sincerity on the other hand, that I
could not but be very well satisfied in it; and, by his advice, put off the
deliverance of his comrades for at least half a year. The case was thus: he had
been with us now about a month, during which time I had let him see in what
manner I had provided, with the assistance of Providence, for my support; and
he saw evidently what stock of corn and rice I had laid up; which, though it
was more than sufficient for myself, yet it was not sufficient, without good
husbandry, for my family, now it was increased to four; but much less would it
be sufficient if his countrymen, who were, as he said, sixteen, still alive,
should come over; and least of all would it be sufficient to victual our
vessel, if we should build one, for a voyage to any of the Christian colonies
of America; so he told me he thought it would be more advisable to let him and
the other two dig and cultivate some more land, as much as I could spare seed
to sow, and that we should wait another harvest, that we might have a supply of
corn for his countrymen, when they should come; for want might be a temptation
to them to disagree, or not to think themselves delivered, otherwise than out
of one difficulty into another. "You know," says he, "the
children of Israel, though they rejoiced at first for their being delivered out
of Egypt, yet rebelled even against God Himself, that delivered them, when they
came to want bread in the wilderness."
His caution was so
seasonable, and his advice so good, that I could not but be very well pleased
with his proposal, as well as I was satisfied with his fidelity; so we fell to
digging, all four of us, as well as the wooden tools we were furnished with
permitted; and in about a month’s time, by the end of which it was seed-time,
we had got as much land cured and trimmed up as we sowed two-and- twenty
bushels of barley on, and sixteen jars of rice, which was, in short, all the
seed we had to spare: indeed, we left ourselves barely sufficient, for our own
food for the six months that we had to expect our crop; that is to say
reckoning from the time we set our seed aside for sowing; for it is not to be
supposed it is six months in the ground in that country.
Having now society
enough, and our numbers being sufficient to put us out of fear of the savages,
if they had come, unless their number had been very great, we went freely all
over the island, whenever we found occasion; and as we had our escape or
deliverance upon our thoughts, it was impossible, at least for me, to have the
means of it out of mine. For this purpose I marked out several trees, which I
thought fit for our work, and I set Friday and his father to cut them down; and
then I caused the Spaniard, to whom I imparted my thoughts on that affair, to
oversee and direct their work. I showed them with what indefatigable pains I
had hewed a large tree into single planks, and I caused them to do the like,
till they made about a dozen large planks, of good oak, near two feet broad,
thirty-five feet long, and from two inches to four inches thick: what
prodigious labour it took up any one may imagine.
At the same time I
contrived to increase my little flock of tame goats as much as I could; and for
this purpose I made Friday and the Spaniard go out one day, and myself with
Friday the next day (for we took our turns), and by this means we got about
twenty young kids to breed up with the rest; for whenever we shot the dam, we
saved the kids, and added them to our flock. But above all, the season for
curing the grapes coming on, I caused such a prodigious quantity to be hung up
in the sun, that, I believe, had we been at Alicant, where the raisins of the
sun are cured, we could have filled sixty or eighty barrels; and these, with
our bread, formed a great part of our food - very good living too, I assure
you, for they are exceedingly nourishing.
It was now harvest, and
our crop in good order: it was not the most plentiful increase I had seen in
the island, but, however, it was enough to answer our end; for from twenty-two
bushels of barley we brought in and thrashed out above two hundred and twenty
bushels; and the like in proportion of the rice; which was store enough for our
food to the next harvest, though all the sixteen Spaniards had been on shore
with me; or, if we had been ready for a voyage, it would very plentifully have
victualled our ship to have carried us to any part of the world; that is to
say, any part of America. When we had thus housed and secured our magazine of
corn, we fell to work to make more wicker-ware, viz. great baskets, in which we
kept it; and the Spaniard was very handy and dexterous at this part, and often
blamed me that I did not make some things for defence of this kind of work; but
I saw no need of it.
And now, having a full
supply of food for all the guests I expected, I gave the Spaniard leave to go
over to the main, to see what he could do with those he had left behind him
there. I gave him a strict charge not to bring any man who would not first
swear in the presence of himself and the old savage that he would in no way
injure, fight with, or attack the person he should find in the island, who was
so kind as to send for them in order to their deliverance; but that they would
stand by him and defend him against all such attempts, and wherever they went would
be entirely under and subjected to his command; and that this should be put in
writing, and signed in their hands. How they were to have done this, when I
knew they had neither pen nor ink, was a question which we never asked. Under
these instructions, the Spaniard and the old savage, the father of Friday, went
away in one of the canoes which they might be said to have come in, or rather
were brought in, when they came as prisoners to be devoured by the savages. I
gave each of them a musket, with a firelock on it, and about eight charges of
powder and ball, charging them to be very good husbands of both, and not to use
either of them but upon urgent occasions.
This was a cheerful
work, being the first measures used by me in view of my deliverance for now
twenty-seven years and some days. I gave them provisions of bread and of dried
grapes, sufficient for themselves for many days, and sufficient for all the
Spaniards - for about eight days’ time; and wishing them a good voyage, I saw
them go, agreeing with them about a signal they should hang out at their
return, by which I should know them again when they came back, at a distance,
before they came on shore. They went away with a fair gale on the day that the
moon was at full, by my account in the month of October; but as for an exact
reckoning of days, after I had once lost it I could never recover it again; nor
had I kept even the number of years so punctually as to be sure I was right;
though, as it proved when I afterwards examined my account, I found I had kept
a true reckoning of years.
It was no less than
eight days I had waited for them, when a strange and unforeseen accident
intervened, of which the like has not, perhaps, been heard of in history. I was
fast asleep in my hutch one morning, when my man Friday came running in to me,
and called aloud, "Master, master, they are come, they are come!" I
jumped up, and regardless of danger I went, as soon as I could get my clothes
on, through my little grove, which, by the way, was by this time grown to be a
very thick wood; I say, regardless of danger I went without my arms, which was
not my custom to do; but I was surprised when, turning my eyes to the sea, I
presently saw a boat at about a league and a half distance, standing in for the
shore, with a shoulder-of-mutton sail, as they call it, and the wind blowing
pretty fair to bring them in: also I observed, presently, that they did not
come from that side which the shore lay on, but from the southernmost end of
the island. Upon this I called Friday in, and bade him lie close, for these
were not the people we looked for, and that we might not know yet whether they
were friends or enemies. In the next place I went in to fetch my perspective
glass to see what I could make of them; and having taken the ladder out, I
climbed up to the top of the hill, as I used to do when I was apprehensive of
anything, and to take my view the plainer without being discovered. I had
scarce set my foot upon the hill when my eye plainly discovered a ship lying at
anchor, at about two leagues and a half distance from me, SSE., but not above a
league and a half from the shore. By my observation it appeared plainly to be
an English ship, and the boat appeared to be an English long-boat.
I cannot express the
confusion I was in, though the joy of seeing a ship, and one that I had reason
to believe was manned by my own countrymen, and consequently friends, was such
as I cannot describe; but yet I had some secret doubts hung about me - I cannot
tell from whence they came - bidding me keep upon my guard. In the first place,
it occurred to me to consider what business an English ship could have in that
part of the world, since it was not the way to or from any part of the world
where the English had any traffic; and I knew there had been no storms to drive
them in there in distress; and that if they were really English it was most
probable that they were here upon no good design; and that I had better
continue as I was than fall into the hands of thieves and murderers.
Let no man despise the
secret hints and notices of danger which sometimes are given him when he may
think there is no possibility of its being real. That such hints and notices
are given us I believe few that have made any observation of things can deny;
that they are certain discoveries of an invisible world, and a converse of
spirits, we cannot doubt; and if the tendency of them seems to be to warn us of
danger, why should we not suppose they are from some friendly agent (whether
supreme, or inferior and subordinate, is not the question), and that they are
given for our good?
The present question
abundantly confirms me in the justice of this reasoning; for had I not been
made cautious by this secret admonition, come it from whence it will, I had
been done inevitably, and in a far worse condition than before, as you will see
presently. I had not kept myself long in this posture till I saw the boat draw
near the shore, as if they looked for a creek to thrust in at, for the
convenience of landing; however, as they did not come quite far enough, they
did not see the little inlet where I formerly landed my rafts, but ran their
boat on shore upon the beach, at about half a mile from me, which was very
happy for me; for otherwise they would have landed just at my door, as I may say,
and would soon have beaten me out of my castle, and perhaps have plundered me
of all I had. When they were on shore I was fully satisfied they were
Englishmen, at least most of them; one or two I thought were Dutch, but it did
not prove so; there were in all eleven men, whereof three of them I found were
unarmed and, as I thought, bound; and when the first four or five of them were
jumped on shore, they took those three out of the boat as prisoners: one of the
three I could perceive using the most passionate gestures of entreaty,
affliction, and despair, even to a kind of extravagance; the other two, I could
perceive, lifted up their hands sometimes, and appeared concerned indeed, but
not to such a degree as the first. I was perfectly confounded at the sight, and
knew not what the meaning of it should be. Friday called out to me in English,
as well as he could, "O master! you see English mans eat prisoner as well
as savage mans." "Why, Friday," says I, "do you think they
are going to eat them, then?" "Yes," says Friday, "they
will eat them." "No no," says I, "Friday; I am afraid they
will murder them, indeed; but you may be sure they will not eat them."
All this while I had no
thought of what the matter really was, but stood trembling with the horror of the
sight, expecting every moment when the three prisoners should be killed; nay,
once I saw one of the villains lift up his arm with a great cutlass, as the
seamen call it, or sword, to strike one of the poor men; and I expected to see
him fall every moment; at which all the blood in my body seemed to run chill in
my veins. I wished heartily now for the Spaniard, and the savage that had gone
with him, or that I had any way to have come undiscovered within shot of them,
that I might have secured the three men, for I saw no firearms they had among
them; but it fell out to my mind another way. After I had observed the
outrageous usage of the three men by the insolent seamen, I observed the
fellows run scattering about the island, as if they wanted to see the country.
I observed that the three other men had liberty to go also where they pleased;
but they sat down all three upon the ground, very pensive, and looked like men
in despair. This put me in mind of the first time when I came on shore, and
began to look about me; how I gave myself over for lost; how wildly I looked
round me; what dreadful apprehensions I had; and how I lodged in the tree all
night for fear of being devoured by wild beasts. As I knew nothing that night
of the supply I was to receive by the providential driving of the ship nearer
the land by the storms and tide, by which I have since been so long nourished
and supported; so these three poor desolate men knew nothing how certain of
deliverance and supply they were, how near it was to them, and how effectually
and really they were in a condition of safety, at the same time that they
thought themselves lost and their case desperate. So little do we see before us
in the world, and so much reason have we to depend cheerfully upon the great
Maker of the world, that He does not leave His creatures so absolutely
destitute, but that in the worst circumstances they have always something to be
thankful for, and sometimes are nearer deliverance than they imagine; nay, are
even brought to their deliverance by the means by which they seem to be brought
to their destruction.
It was just at
high-water when these people came on shore; and while they rambled about to see
what kind of a place they were in, they had carelessly stayed till the tide was
spent, and the water was ebbed considerably away, leaving their boat aground.
They had left two men in the boat, who, as I found afterwards, having drunk a
little too much brandy, fell asleep; however, one of them waking a little
sooner than the other and finding the boat too fast aground for him to stir it,
hallooed out for the rest, who were straggling about: upon which they all soon
came to the boat: but it was past all their strength to launch her, the boat
being very heavy, and the shore on that side being a soft oozy sand, almost
like a quicksand. In this condition, like true seamen, who are, perhaps, the
least of all mankind given to forethought, they gave it over, and away they
strolled about the country again; and I heard one of them say aloud to another,
calling them off from the boat, "Why, let her alone, Jack, can’t you? she’ll
float next tide;" by which I was fully confirmed in the main inquiry of
what countrymen they were. All this while I kept myself very close, not once
daring to stir out of my castle any farther than to my place of observation
near the top of the hill: and very glad I was to think how well it was
fortified. I knew it was no less than ten hours before the boat could float
again, and by that time it would be dark, and I might be at more liberty to see
their motions, and to hear their discourse, if they had any. In the meantime I
fitted myself up for a battle as before, though with more caution, knowing I
had to do with another kind of enemy than I had at first. I ordered Friday
also, whom I had made an excellent marksman with his gun, to load himself with
arms. I took myself two fowling-pieces, and I gave him three muskets. My
figure, indeed, was very fierce; I had my formidable goat-skin coat on, with
the great cap I have mentioned, a naked sword by my side, two pistols in my
belt, and a gun upon each shoulder.
It was my design, as I
said above, not to have made any attempt till it was dark; but about two o’clock,
being the heat of the day, I found that they were all gone straggling into the
woods, and, as I thought, laid down to sleep. The three poor distressed men,
too anxious for their condition to get any sleep, had, however, sat down under
the shelter of a great tree, at about a quarter of a mile from me, and, as I
thought, out of sight of any of the rest. Upon this I resolved to discover
myself to them, and learn something of their condition; immediately I marched
as above, my man Friday at a good distance behind me, as formidable for his
arms as I, but not making quite so staring a spectre-like figure as I did. I
came as near them undiscovered as I could, and then, before any of them saw me,
I called aloud to them in Spanish, "What are ye, gentlemen?" They
started up at the noise, but were ten times more confounded when they saw me,
and the uncouth figure that I made. They made no answer at all, but I thought I
perceived them just going to fly from me, when I spoke to them in English.
"Gentlemen," said I, "do not be surprised at me; perhaps you may
have a friend near when you did not expect it." "He must be sent
directly from heaven then," said one of them very gravely to me, and
pulling off his hat at the same time to me; "for our condition is past the
help of man." "All help is from heaven, sir," said I, "but
can you put a stranger in the way to help you? for you seem to be in some great
distress. I saw you when you landed; and when you seemed to make application to
the brutes that came with you, I saw one of them lift up his sword to kill
you."
The poor man, with
tears running down his face, and trembling, looking like one astonished,
returned, "Am I talking to God or man? Is it a real man or an angel?"
"Be in no fear about that, sir," said I; "if God had sent an
angel to relieve you, he would have come better clothed, and armed after
another manner than you see me; pray lay aside your fears; I am a man, an
Englishman, and disposed to assist you; you see I have one servant only; we
have arms and ammunition; tell us freely, can we serve you? What is your
case?" "Our case, sir," said he, "is too long to tell you
while our murderers are so near us; but, in short, sir, I was commander of that
ship - my men have mutinied against me; they have been hardly prevailed on not
to murder me, and, at last, have set me on shore in this desolate place, with
these two men with me - one my mate, the other a passenger - where we expected
to perish, believing the place to be uninhabited, and know not yet what to
think of it." "Where are these brutes, your enemies?" said I;
"do you know where they are gone? There they lie, sir," said he,
pointing to a thicket of trees; "my heart trembles for fear they have seen
us and heard you speak; if they have, they will certainly murder us all."
"Have they any firearms?" said I. He answered, "They had only
two pieces, one of which they left in the boat." "Well, then,"
said I, "leave the rest to me; I see they are all asleep; it is an easy
thing to kill them all; but shall we rather take them prisoners?" He told
me there were two desperate villains among them that it was scarce safe to show
any mercy to; but if they were secured, he believed all the rest would return
to their duty. I asked him which they were. He told me he could not at that
distance distinguish them, but he would obey my orders in anything I would
direct. "Well," says I, "let us retreat out of their view or
hearing, lest they awake, and we will resolve further." So they willingly
went back with me, till the woods covered us from them.
"Look you,
sir," said I, "if I venture upon your deliverance, are you willing to
make two conditions with me?" He anticipated my proposals by telling me
that both he and the ship, if recovered, should be wholly directed and
commanded by me in everything; and if the ship was not recovered, he would live
and die with me in what part of the world soever I would send him; and the two
other men said the same. "Well," says I, "my conditions are but
two; first, that while you stay in this island with me, you will not pretend to
any authority here; and if I put arms in your hands, you will, upon all
occasions, give them up to me, and do no prejudice to me or mine upon this
island, and in the meantime be governed by my orders; secondly, that if the ship
is or may be recovered, you will carry me and my man to England passage
free."
He gave me all the
assurances that the invention or faith of man could devise that he would comply
with these most reasonable demands, and besides would owe his life to me, and
acknowledge it upon all occasions as long as he lived. "Well, then,"
said I, "here are three muskets for you, with powder and ball; tell me
next what you think is proper to be done." He showed all the testimonies
of his gratitude that he was able, but offered to be wholly guided by me. I
told him I thought it was very hard venturing anything; but the best method I
could think of was to fire on them at once as they lay, and if any were not
killed at the first volley, and offered to submit, we might save them, and so
put it wholly upon God’s providence to direct the shot. He said, very modestly,
that he was loath to kill them if he could help it; but that those two were
incorrigible villains, and had been the authors of all the mutiny in the ship,
and if they escaped, we should be undone still, for they would go on board and
bring the whole ship’s company, and destroy us all. "Well, then,"
says I, "necessity legitimates my advice, for it is the only way to save
our lives." However, seeing him still cautious of shedding blood, I told
him they should go themselves, and manage as they found convenient.
In the middle of this
discourse we heard some of them awake, and soon after we saw two of them on
their feet. I asked him if either of them were the heads of the mutiny? He
said, "No." "Well, then," said I, "you may let them
escape; and Providence seems to have awakened them on purpose to save
themselves. Now," says I, "if the rest escape you, it is your
fault." Animated with this, he took the musket I had given him in his
hand, and a pistol in his belt, and his two comrades with him, with each a
piece in his hand; the two men who were with him going first made some noise,
at which one of the seamen who was awake turned about, and seeing them coming,
cried out to the rest; but was too late then, for the moment he cried out they
fired - I mean the two men, the captain wisely reserving his own piece. They
had so well aimed their shot at the men they knew, that one of them was killed
on the spot, and the other very much wounded; but not being dead, he started up
on his feet, and called eagerly for help to the other; but the captain stepping
to him, told him it was too late to cry for help, he should call upon God to
forgive his villainy, and with that word knocked him down with the stock of his
musket, so that he never spoke more; there were three more in the company, and
one of them was slightly wounded. By this time I was come; and when they saw
their danger, and that it was in vain to resist, they begged for mercy. The
captain told them he would spare their lives if they would give him an
assurance of their abhorrence of the treachery they had been guilty of, and
would swear to be faithful to him in recovering the ship, and afterwards in
carrying her back to Jamaica, from whence they came. They gave him all the
protestations of their sincerity that could be desired; and he was willing to
believe them, and spare their lives, which I was not against, only that I
obliged him to keep them bound hand and foot while they were on the island.
While this was doing, I
sent Friday with the captain’s mate to the boat with orders to secure her, and
bring away the oars and sails, which they did; and by-and-by three straggling
men, that were (happily for them) parted from the rest, came back upon hearing
the guns fired; and seeing the captain, who was before their prisoner, now
their conqueror, they submitted to be bound also; and so our victory was
complete.
It now remained that
the captain and I should inquire into one another’s circumstances. I began
first, and told him my whole history, which he heard with an attention even to
amazement - and particularly at the wonderful manner of my being furnished with
provisions and ammunition; and, indeed, as my story is a whole collection of
wonders, it affected him deeply. But when he reflected from thence upon
himself, and how I seemed to have been preserved there on purpose to save his
life, the tears ran down his face, and he could not speak a word more. After
this communication was at an end, I carried him and his two men into my
apartment, leading them in just where I came out, viz. at the top of the house,
where I refreshed them with such provisions as I had, and showed them all the
contrivances I had made during my long, long inhabiting that place.
All I showed them, all
I said to them, was perfectly amazing; but above all, the captain admired my
fortification, and how perfectly I had concealed my retreat with a grove of
trees, which having been now planted nearly twenty years, and the trees growing
much faster than in England, was become a little wood, so thick that it was
impassable in any part of it but at that one side where I had reserved my
little winding passage into it. I told him this was my castle and my residence,
but that I had a seat in the country, as most princes have, whither I could
retreat upon occasion, and I would show him that too another time; but at
present our business was to consider how to recover the ship. He agreed with me
as to that, but told me he was perfectly at a loss what measures to take, for
that there were still six-and-twenty hands on board, who, having entered into a
cursed conspiracy, by which they had all forfeited their lives to the law,
would be hardened in it now by desperation, and would carry it on, knowing that
if they were subdued they would be brought to the gallows as soon as they came
to England, or to any of the English colonies, and that, therefore, there would
be no attacking them with so small a number as we were.
I mused for some time
on what he had said, and found it was a very rational conclusion, and that
therefore something was to be resolved on speedily, as well to draw the men on
board into some snare for their surprise as to prevent their landing upon us,
and destroying us. Upon this, it presently occurred to me that in a little
while the ship’s crew, wondering what was become of their comrades and of the
boat, would certainly come on shore in their other boat to look for them, and
that then, perhaps, they might come armed, and be too strong for us: this he
allowed to be rational. Upon this, I told him the first thing we had to do was
to stave the boat which lay upon the beach, so that they might not carry her
of, and taking everything out of her, leave her so far useless as not to be fit
to swim. Accordingly, we went on board, took the arms which were left on board
out of her, and whatever else we found there - which was a bottle of brandy,
and another of rum, a few biscuit-cakes, a horn of powder, and a great lump of
sugar in a piece of canvas (the sugar was five or six pounds): all which was
very welcome to me, especially the brandy and sugar, of which I had had none
left for many years.
When we had carried all
these things on shore (the oars, mast, sail, and rudder of the boat were
carried away before), we knocked a great hole in her bottom, that if they had
come strong enough to master us, yet they could not carry off the boat. Indeed,
it was not much in my thoughts that we could be able to recover the ship; but
my view was, that if they went away without the boat, I did not much question
to make her again fit to carry as to the Leeward Islands, and call upon our
friends the Spaniards in my way, for I had them still in my thoughts.
WHILE we were thus
preparing our designs, and had first, by main strength, heaved the boat upon
the beach, so high that the tide would not float her off at high-water mark,
and besides, had broke a hole in her bottom too big to be quickly stopped, and
were set down musing what we should do, we heard the ship fire a gun, and make
a waft with her ensign as a signal for the boat to come on board - but no boat
stirred; and they fired several times, making other signals for the boat. At
last, when all their signals and firing proved fruitless, and they found the
boat did not stir, we saw them, by the help of my glasses, hoist another boat
out and row towards the shore; and we found, as they approached, that there
were no less than ten men in her, and that they had firearms with them.
As the ship lay almost
two leagues from the shore, we had a full view of them as the came, and a plain
sight even of their faces; because the tide having set them a little to the
east of the other boat, they rowed up under shore, to come to the same place
where the other had landed, and where the boat lay; by this means, I say, we
had a full view of them, and the captain knew the persons and characters of all
the men in the boat, of whom, he said, there were three very honest fellows, who,
he was sure, were led into this conspiracy by the rest, being over-powered and
frightened; but that as for the boatswain, who it seems was the chief officer
among them, and all the rest, they were as outrageous as any of the ship’s
crew, and were no doubt made desperate in their new enterprise; and terribly
apprehensive he was that they would be too powerful for us. I smiled at him,
and told him that men in our circumstances were past the operation of fear;
that seeing almost every condition that could be was better than that which we
were supposed to be in, we ought to expect that the consequence, whether death
or life, would be sure to be a deliverance. I asked him what he thought of the
circumstances of my life, and whether a deliverance were not worth venturing
for? "And where, sir," said I, "is your belief of my being
preserved here on purpose to save your life, which elevated you a little while
ago? For my part," said I, "there seems to be but one thing amiss in
all the prospect of it." "What is that?" say she.
"Why," said I, "it is, that as you say there are three or four
honest fellows among them which should be spared, had they been all of the
wicked part of the crew I should have thought God’s providence had singled them
out to deliver them into your hands; for depend upon it, every man that comes
ashore is our own, and shall die or live as they behave to us." As I spoke
this with a raised voice and cheerful countenance, I found it greatly
encouraged him; so we set vigorously to our business.
We had, upon the first
appearance of the boat’s coming from the ship, considered of separating our
prisoners; and we had, indeed, secured them effectually. Two of them, of whom
the captain was less assured than ordinary, I sent with Friday, and one of the
three delivered men, to my cave, where they were remote enough, and out of
danger of being heard or discovered, or of finding their way out of the woods
if they could have delivered themselves. Here they left them bound, but gave
them provisions; and promised them, if they continued there quietly, to give
them their liberty in a day or two; but that if they attempted their escape
they should be put to death without mercy. They promised faithfully to bear
their confinement with patience, and were very thankful that they had such good
usage as to have provisions and light left them; for Friday gave them candles
(such as we made ourselves) for their comfort; and they did not know but that
he stood sentinel over them at the entrance.
The other prisoners had
better usage; two of them were kept pinioned, indeed, because the captain was
not able to trust them; but the other two were taken into my service, upon the
captain’s recommendation, and upon their solemnly engaging to live and die with
us; so with them and the three honest men we were seven men, well armed; and I
made no doubt we should be able to deal well enough with the ten that were
coming, considering that the captain had said there were three or four honest
men among them also. As soon as they got to the place where their other boat
lay, they ran their boat into the beach and came all on shore, hauling the boat
up after them, which I was glad to see, for I was afraid they would rather have
left the boat at an anchor some distance from the shore, with some hands in her
to guard her, and so we should not be able to seize the boat. Being on shore,
the first thing they did, they ran all to their other boat; and it was easy to
see they were under a great surprise to find her stripped, as above, of all
that was in her, and a great hole in her bottom. After they had mused a while
upon this, they set up two or three great shouts, hallooing with all their
might, to try if they could make their companions hear; but all was to no
purpose. Then they came all close in a ring, and fired a volley of their small
arms, which indeed we heard, and the echoes made the woods ring. But it was all
one; those in the cave, we were sure, could not hear; and those in our keeping,
though they heard it well enough, yet durst give no answer to them. They were
so astonished at the surprise of this, that, as they told us afterwards, they
resolved to go all on board again to their ship, and let them know that the men
were all murdered, and the long-boat staved; accordingly, they immediately launched
their boat again, and got all of them on board.
The captain was
terribly amazed, and even confounded, at this, believing they would go on board
the ship again and set sail, giving their comrades over for lost, and so he
should still lose the ship, which he was in hopes we should have recovered; but
he was quickly as much frightened the other way.
They had not been long
put off with the boat, when we perceived them all coming on shore again; but
with this new measure in their conduct, which it seems they consulted together
upon, viz. to leave three men in the boat, and the rest to go on shore, and go
up into the country to look for their fellows. This was a great disappointment
to us, for now we were at a loss what to do, as our seizing those seven men on
shore would be no advantage to us if we let the boat escape; because they would
row away to the ship, and then the rest of them would be sure to weigh and set
sail, and so our recovering the ship would be lost. However we had no remedy
but to wait and see what the issue of things might present. The seven men came
on shore, and the three who remained in the boat put her off to a good distance
from the shore, and came to an anchor to wait for them; so that it was
impossible for us to come at them in the boat. Those that came on shore kept
close together, marching towards the top of the little hill under which my
habitation lay; and we could see them plainly, though they could not perceive
us. We should have been very glad if they would have come nearer us, so that we
might have fired at them, or that they would have gone farther off, that we
might come abroad. But when they were come to the brow of the hill where they
could see a great way into the valleys and woods, which lay towards the
north-east part, and where the island lay lowest, they shouted and hallooed
till they were weary; and not caring, it seems, to venture far from the shore,
nor far from one another, they sat down together under a tree to consider it.
Had they thought fit to have gone to sleep there, as the other part of them had
done, they had done the job for us; but they were too full of apprehensions of
danger to venture to go to sleep, though they could not tell what the danger
was they had to fear.
The captain made a very
just proposal to me upon this consultation of theirs, viz. that perhaps they
would all fire a volley again, to endeavour to make their fellows hear, and
that we should all sally upon them just at the juncture when their pieces were
all discharged, and they would certainly yield, and we should have them without
bloodshed. I liked this proposal, provided it was done while we were near
enough to come up to them before they could load their pieces again. But this
event did not happen; and we lay still a long time, very irresolute what course
to take. At length I told them there would be nothing done, in my opinion, till
night; and then, if they did not return to the boat, perhaps we might find a
way to get between them and the shore, and so might use some stratagem with
them in the boat to get them on shore. We waited a great while, though very
impatient for their removing; and were very uneasy when, after long
consultation, we saw them all start up and march down towards the sea; it seems
they had such dreadful apprehensions of the danger of the place that they
resolved to go on board the ship again, give their companions over for lost,
and so go on with their intended voyage with the ship.
As soon as I perceived
them go towards the shore, I imagined it to be as it really was that they had
given over their search, and were going back again; and the captain, as soon as
I told him my thoughts, was ready to sink at the apprehensions of it; but I
presently thought of a stratagem to fetch them back again, and which answered my
end to a tittle. I ordered Friday and the captain’s mate to go over the little
creek westward, towards the place where the savages came on shore, when Friday
was rescued, and so soon as they came to a little rising round, at about half a
mile distant, I bid them halloo out, as loud as they could, and wait till they
found the seamen heard them; that as soon as ever they heard the seamen answer
them, they should return it again; and then, keeping out of sight, take a
round, always answering when the others hallooed, to draw them as far into the
island and among the woods as possible, and then wheel about again to me by
such ways as I directed them.
They were just going
into the boat when Friday and the mate hallooed; and they presently heard them,
and answering, ran along the shore westward, towards the voice they heard, when
they were stopped by the creek, where the water being up, they could not get
over, and called for the boat to come up and set them over; as, indeed, I
expected. When they had set themselves over, I observed that the boat being
gone a good way into the creek, and, as it were, in a harbour within the land,
they took one of the three men out of her, to go along with them, and left only
two in the boat, having fastened her to the stump of a little tree on the
shore. This was what I wished for; and immediately leaving Friday and the
captain’s mate to their business, I took the rest with me; and, crossing the
creek out of their sight, we surprised the two men before they were aware - one
of them lying on the shore, and the other being in the boat. The fellow on
shore was between sleeping and waking, and going to start up; the captain, who
was foremost, ran in upon him, and knocked him down; and then called out to him
in the boat to yield, or he was a dead man. They needed very few arguments to
persuade a single man to yield, when he saw five men upon him and his comrade
knocked down: besides, this was, it seems, one of the three who were not so
hearty in the mutiny as the rest of the crew, and therefore was easily
persuaded not only to yield, but afterwards to join very sincerely with us. In
the meantime, Friday and the captain’s mate so well managed their business with
the rest that they drew them, by hallooing and answering, from one hill to another,
and from one wood to another, till they not only heartily tired them, but left
them where they were, very sure they could not reach back to the boat before it
was dark; and, indeed, they were heartily tired themselves also, by the time
they came back to us.
We had nothing now to
do but to watch for them in the dark, and to fall upon them, so as to make sure
work with them. It was several hours after Friday came back to me before they
came back to their boat; and we could hear the foremost of them, long before
they came quite up, calling to those behind to come along; and could also hear
them answer, and complain how lame and tired they were, and not able to come
any faster: which was very welcome news to us. At length they came up to the
boat: but it is impossible to express their confusion when they found the boat
fast aground in the creek, the tide ebbed out, and their two men gone. We could
hear them call one to another in a most lamentable manner, telling one another
they were got into an enchanted island; that either there were inhabitants in
it, and they should all be murdered, or else there were devils and spirits in
it, and they should be all carried away and devoured. They hallooed again, and
called their two comrades by their names a great many times; but no answer.
After some time we could see them, by the little light there was, run about,
wringing their hands like men in despair, and sometimes they would go and sit
down in the boat to rest themselves: then come ashore again, and walk about
again, and so the same thing over again. My men would fain have had me give
them leave to fall upon them at once in the dark; but I was willing to take
them at some advantage, so as to spare them, and kill as few of them as I
could; and especially I was unwilling to hazard the killing of any of our men,
knowing the others were very well armed. I resolved to wait, to see if they did
not separate; and therefore, to make sure of them, I drew my ambuscade nearer,
and ordered Friday and the captain to creep upon their hands and feet, as close
to the ground as they could, that they might not be discovered, and get as near
them as they could possibly before they offered to fire.
They had not been long
in that posture when the boatswain, who was the principal ringleader of the
mutiny, and had now shown himself the most dejected and dispirited of all the
rest, came walking towards them, with two more of the crew; the captain was so
eager at having this principal rogue so much in his power, that he could hardly
have patience to let him come so near as to be sure of him, for they only heard
his tongue before: but when they came nearer, the captain and Friday, starting
up on their feet, let fly at them. The boatswain was killed upon the spot: the
next man was shot in the body, and fell just by him, though he did not die till
an hour or two after; and the third ran for it. At the noise of the fire I
immediately advanced with my whole army, which was now eight men, viz. myself,
generalissimo; Friday, my lieutenant-general; the captain and his two men, and
the three prisoners of war whom we had trusted with arms. We came upon them,
indeed, in the dark, so that they could not see our number; and I made the man
they had left in the boat, who was now one of us, to call them by name, to try
if I could bring them to a parley, and so perhaps might reduce them to terms;
which fell out just as we desired: for indeed it was easy to think, as their
condition then was, they would be very willing to capitulate. So he calls out
as loud as he could to one of them, "Tom Smith! Tom Smith!" Tom Smith
answered immediately, "Is that Robinson?" for it seems he knew the
voice. The other answered, "Ay, ay; for God’s sake, Tom Smith, throw down
your arms and yield, or you are all dead men this moment." "Who must
we yield to? Where are they?" says Smith again. "Here they are,"
says he; "here’s our captain and fifty men with him, have been hunting you
these two hours; the boatswain is killed; Will Fry is wounded, and I am a
prisoner; and if you do not yield you are all lost." "Will they give
us quarter, then?" says Tom Smith, "and we will yield." "I’ll
go and ask, if you promise to yield," said Robinson: so he asked the
captain, and the captain himself then calls out, "You, Smith, you know my
voice; if you lay down your arms immediately and submit, you shall have your
lives, all but Will Atkins."
Upon this Will Atkins
cried out, "For God’s sake, captain, give me quarter; what have I done?
They have all been as bad as I:" which, by the way, was not true; for it
seems this Will Atkins was the first man that laid hold of the captain when
they first mutinied, and used him barbarously in tying his hands and giving him
injurious language. However, the captain told him he must lay down his arms at
discretion, and trust to the governor’s mercy: by which he meant me, for they
all called me governor. In a word, they all laid down their arms and begged
their lives; and I sent the man that had parleyed with them, and two more, who
bound them all; and then my great army of fifty men, which, with those three,
were in all but eight, came up and seized upon them, and upon their boat; only
that I kept myself and one more out of sight for reasons of state.
Our next work was to
repair the boat, and think of seizing the ship: and as for the captain, now he
had leisure to parley with them, he expostulated with them upon the villainy of
their practices with him, and upon the further wickedness of their design, and
how certainly it must bring them to misery and distress in the end, and perhaps
to the gallows. They all appeared very penitent, and begged hard for their
lives. As for that, he told them they were not his prisoners, but the commander’s
of the island; that they thought they had set him on shore in a barren, uninhabited
island; but it had pleased God so to direct them that it was inhabited, and
that the governor was an Englishman; that he might hang them all there, if he
pleased; but as he had given them all quarter, he supposed he would send them
to England, to be dealt with there as justice required, except Atkins, whom he
was commanded by the governor to advise to prepare for death, for that he would
be hanged in the morning.
Though this was all but
a fiction of his own, yet it had its desired effect; Atkins fell upon his knees
to beg the captain to intercede with the governor for his life; and all the
rest begged of him, for God’s sake, that they might not be sent to England.
It now occurred to me
that the time of our deliverance was come, and that it would be a most easy
thing to bring these fellows in to be hearty in getting possession of the ship;
so I retired in the dark from them, that they might not see what kind of a
governor they had, and called the captain to me; when I called, at a good
distance, one of the men was ordered to speak again, and say to the captain,
"Captain, the commander calls for you;" and presently the captain
replied, "Tell his excellency I am just coming." This more perfectly
amazed them, and they all believed that the commander was just by, with his
fifty men. Upon the captain coming to me, I told him my project for seizing the
ship, which he liked wonderfully well, and resolved to put it in execution the
next morning. But, in order to execute it with more art, and to be secure of success,
I told him we must divide the prisoners, and that he should go and take Atkins,
and two more of the worst of them, and send them pinioned to the cave where the
others lay. This was committed to Friday and the two men who came on shore with
the captain. They conveyed them to the cave as to a prison: and it was, indeed,
a dismal place, especially to men in their condition. The others I ordered to
my bower, as I called it, of which I have given a full description: and as it
was fenced in, and they pinioned, the place was secure enough, considering they
were upon their behaviour.
To these in the morning
I sent the captain, who was to enter into a parley with them; in a word, to try
them, and tell me whether he thought they might be trusted or not to go on
board and surprise the ship. He talked to them of the injury done him, of the
condition they were brought to, and that though the governor had given them
quarter for their lives as to the present action, yet that if they were sent to
England they would all be hanged in chains; but that if they would join in so
just an attempt as to recover the ship, he would have the governor’s engagement
for their pardon.
Any one may guess how
readily such a proposal would be accepted by men in their condition; they fell
down on their knees to the captain, and promised, with the deepest
imprecations, that they would be faithful to him to the last drop, and that
they should owe their lives to him, and would go with him all over the world;
that they would own him as a father to them as long as they lived.
"Well," says the captain, "I must go and tell the governor what
you say, and see what I can do to bring him to consent to it." So he
brought me an account of the temper he found them in, and that he verily
believed they would be faithful. However, that we might be very secure, I told
him he should go back again and choose out those five, and tell them, that they
might see he did not want men, that he would take out those five to be his
assistants, and that the governor would keep the other two, and the three that
were sent prisoners to the castle (my cave), as hostages for the fidelity of
those five; and that if they proved unfaithful in the execution, the five
hostages should be hanged in chains alive on the shore. This looked severe, and
convinced them that the governor was in earnest; however, they had no way left
them but to accept it; and it was now the business of the prisoners, as much as
of the captain, to persuade the other five to do their duty.
Our strength was now
thus ordered for the expedition: first, the captain, his mate, and passenger;
second, the two prisoners of the first gang, to whom, having their character
from the captain, I had given their liberty, and trusted them with arms; third,
the other two that I had kept till now in my bower, pinioned, but on the
captain’s motion had now released; fourth, these five released at last; so that
there were twelve in all, besides five we kept prisoners in the cave for
hostages.
I asked the captain if
he was willing to venture with these hands on board the ship; but as for me and
my man Friday, I did not think it was proper for us to stir, having seven men
left behind; and it was employment enough for us to keep them asunder, and
supply them with victuals. As to the five in the cave, I resolved to keep them
fast, but Friday went in twice a day to them, to supply them with necessaries;
and I made the other two carry provisions to a certain distance, where Friday
was to take them.
When I showed myself to
the two hostages, it was with the captain, who told them I was the person the
governor had ordered to look after them; and that it was the governor’s
pleasure they should not stir anywhere but by my direction; that if they did,
they would be fetched into the castle, and be laid in irons: so that as we
never suffered them to see me as governor, I now appeared as another person,
and spoke of the governor, the garrison, the castle, and the like, upon all
occasions.
The captain now had no
difficulty before him, but to furnish his two boats, stop the breach of one,
and man them. He made his passenger captain of one, with four of the men; and
himself, his mate, and five more, went in the other; and they contrived their
business very well, for they came up to the ship about midnight. As soon as
they came within call of the ship, he made Robinson hail them, and tell them
they had brought off the men and the boat, but that it was a long time before
they had found them, and the like, holding them in a chat till they came to the
ship’s side; when the captain and the mate entering first with their arms,
immediately knocked down the second mate and carpenter with the butt-end of
their muskets, being very faithfully seconded by their men; they secured all
the rest that were upon the main and quarter decks, and began to fasten the
hatches, to keep them down that were below; when the other boat and their men,
entering at the forechains, secured the forecastle of the ship, and the scuttle
which went down into the cook-room, making three men they found there
prisoners. When this was done, and all safe upon deck, the captain ordered the
mate, with three men, to break into the round-house, where the new rebel
captain lay, who, having taken the alarm, had got up, and with two men and a
boy had got firearms in their hands; and when the mate, with a crow, split open
the door, the new captain and his men fired boldly among them, and wounded the
mate with a musket ball, which broke his arm, and wounded two more of the men,
but killed nobody. The mate, calling for help, rushed, however, into the
round-house, wounded as he was, and, with his pistol, shot the new captain
through the head, the bullet entering at his mouth, and came out again behind
one of his ears, so that he never spoke a word more: upon which the rest
yielded, and the ship was taken effectually, without any more lives lost.
As soon as the ship was
thus secured, the captain ordered seven guns to be fired, which was the signal
agreed upon with me to give me notice of his success, which, you may be sure, I
was very glad to hear, having sat watching upon the shore for it till near two
o’clock in the morning. Having thus heard the signal plainly, I laid me down;
and it having been a day of great fatigue to me, I slept very sound, till I was
surprised with the noise of a gun; and presently starting up, I heard a man
call me by the name of "Governor! Governor!" and presently I knew the
captain’s voice; when, climbing up to the top of the hill, there he stood, and,
pointing to the ship, he embraced me in his arms, "My dear friend and
deliverer," says he, "there’s your ship; for she is all yours, and so
are we, and all that belong to her." I cast my eyes to the ship, and there
she rode, within little more than half a mile of the shore; for they had
weighed her anchor as soon as they were masters of her, and, the weather being
fair, had brought her to an anchor just against the mouth of the little creek;
and the tide being up, the captain had brought the pinnace in near the place
where I had first landed my rafts, and so landed just at my door. I was at
first ready to sink down with the surprise; for I saw my deliverance, indeed,
visibly put into my hands, all things easy, and a large ship just ready to
carry me away whither I pleased to go. At first, for some time, I was not able
to answer him one word; but as he had taken me in his arms I held fast by him,
or I should have fallen to the ground. He perceived the surprise, and
immediately pulled a bottle out of his pocket and gave me a dram of cordial,
which he had brought on purpose for me. After I had drunk it, I sat down upon
the ground; and though it brought me to myself, yet it was a good while before
I could speak a word to him. All this time the poor man was in as great an
ecstasy as I, only not under any surprise as I was; and he said a thousand kind
and tender things to me, to compose and bring me to myself; but such was the
flood of joy in my breast, that it put all my spirits into confusion: at last
it broke out into tears, and in a little while after I recovered my speech; I
then took my turn, and embraced him as my deliverer, and we rejoiced together.
I told him I looked upon him as a man sent by Heaven to deliver me, and that
the whole transaction seemed to be a chain of wonders; that such things as
these were the testimonies we had of a secret hand of Providence governing the
world, and an evidence that the eye of an infinite Power could search into the
remotest corner of the world, and send help to the miserable whenever He
pleased. I forgot not to lift up my heart in thankfulness to Heaven; and what
heart could forbear to bless Him, who had not only in a miraculous manner
provided for me in such a wilderness, and in such a desolate condition, but
from whom every deliverance must always be acknowledged to proceed.
When we had talked a
while, the captain told me he had brought me some little refreshment, such as
the ship afforded, and such as the wretches that had been so long his masters
had not plundered him of. Upon this, he called aloud to the boat, and bade his
men bring the things ashore that were for the governor; and, indeed, it was a
present as if I had been one that was not to be carried away with them, but as
if I had been to dwell upon the island still. First, he had brought me a case
of bottles full of excellent cordial waters, six large bottles of Madeira wine
(the bottles held two quarts each), two pounds of excellent good tobacco,
twelve good pieces of the ship’s beef, and six pieces of pork, with a bag of
peas, and about a hundred-weight of biscuit; he also brought me a box of sugar,
a box of flour, a bag full of lemons, and two bottles of lime-juice, and
abundance of other things. But besides these, and what was a thousand times
more useful to me, he brought me six new clean shirts, six very good
neckcloths, two pair of gloves, one pair of shoes, a hat, and one pair of
stockings, with a very good suit of clothes of his own, which had been worn but
very little: in a word, he clothed me from head to foot. It was a very kind and
agreeable present, as any one may imagine, to one in my circumstances, but
never was anything in the world of that kind so unpleasant, awkward, and uneasy
as it was to me to wear such clothes at first.
After these ceremonies
were past, and after all his good things were brought into my little apartment,
we began to consult what was to be done with the prisoners we had; for it was
worth considering whether we might venture to take them with us or no,
especially two of them, whom he knew to be incorrigible and refractory to the
last degree; and the captain said he knew they were such rogues that there was
no obliging them, and if he did carry them away, it must be in irons, as
malefactors, to be delivered over to justice at the first English colony he
could come to; and I found that the captain himself was very anxious about it.
Upon this, I told him that, if he desired it, I would undertake to bring the two
men he spoke of to make it their own request that he should leave them upon the
island. "I should be very glad of that," says the captain, "with
all my heart." "Well," says I, "I will send for them up and
talk with them for you." So I caused Friday and the two hostages, for they
were now discharged, their comrades having performed their promise; I say, I
caused them to go to the cave, and bring up the five men, pinioned as they
were, to the bower, and keep them there till I came. After some time, I came thither
dressed in my new habit; and now I was called governor again. Being all met,
and the captain with me, I caused the men to be brought before me, and I told
them I had got a full account of their villainous behaviour to the captain, and
how they had run away with the ship, and were preparing to commit further
robberies, but that Providence had ensnared them in their own ways, and that
they were fallen into the pit which they had dug for others. I let them know
that by my direction the ship had been seized; that she lay now in the road;
and they might see by-and-by that their new captain had received the reward of
his villainy, and that they would see him hanging at the yard-arm; that, as to
them, I wanted to know what they had to say why I should not execute them as
pirates taken in the fact, as by my commission they could not doubt but I had
authority so to do.
One of them answered in
the name of the rest, that they had nothing to say but this, that when they
were taken the captain promised them their lives, and they humbly implored my
mercy. But I told them I knew not what mercy to show them; for as for myself, I
had resolved to quit the island with all my men, and had taken passage with the
captain to go to England; and as for the captain, he could not carry them to
England other than as prisoners in irons, to be tried for mutiny and running
away with the ship; the consequence of which, they must needs know, would be
the gallows; so that I could not tell what was best for them, unless they had a
mind to take their fate in the island. If they desired that, as I had liberty
to leave the island, I had some inclination to give them their lives, if they
thought they could shift on shore. They seemed very thankful for it, and said
they would much rather venture to stay there than be carried to England to be
hanged. So I left it on that issue.
However, the captain
seemed to make some difficulty of it, as if he durst not leave them there. Upon
this I seemed a little angry with the captain, and told him that they were my
prisoners, not his; and that seeing I had offered them so much favour, I would
be as good as my word; and that if he did not think fit to consent to it I
would set them at liberty, as I found them: and if he did not like it he might
take them again if he could catch them. Upon this they appeared very thankful,
and I accordingly set them at liberty, and bade them retire into the woods, to
the place whence they came, and I would leave them some firearms, some
ammunition, and some directions how they should live very well if they thought
fit. Upon this I prepared to go on board the ship; but told the captain I would
stay that night to prepare my things, and desired him to go on board in the
meantime, and keep all right in the ship, and send the boat on shore next day
for me; ordering him, at all events, to cause the new captain, who was killed,
to be hanged at the yard- arm, that these men might see him.
When the captain was
gone I sent for the men up to me to my apartment, and entered seriously into
discourse with them on their circumstances. I told them I thought they had made
a right choice; that if the captain had carried them away they would certainly
be hanged. I showed them the new captain hanging at the yard-arm of the ship,
and told them they had nothing less to expect.
When they had all
declared their willingness to stay, I then told them I would let them into the
story of my living there, and put them into the way of making it easy to them.
Accordingly, I gave them the whole history of the place, and of my coming to
it; showed them my fortifications, the way I made my bread, planted my corn,
cured my grapes; and, in a word, all that was necessary to make them easy. I
told them the story also of the seventeen Spaniards that were to be expected,
for whom I left a letter, and made them promise to treat them in common with
themselves. Here it may be noted that the captain, who had ink on board, was
greatly surprised that I never hit upon a way of making ink of charcoal and
water, or of something else, as I had done things much more difficult.
I left them my firearms
- viz. five muskets, three fowling-pieces, and three swords. I had above a
barrel and a half of powder left; for after the first year or two I used but
little, and wasted none. I gave them a description of the way I managed the
goats, and directions to milk and fatten them, and to make both butter and
cheese. In a word, I gave them every part of my own story; and told them I
should prevail with the captain to leave them two barrels of gunpowder more,
and some garden-seeds, which I told them I would have been very glad of. Also,
I gave them the bag of peas which the captain had brought me to eat, and bade
them be sure to sow and increase them.
HAVING done all this I
left them the next day, and went on board the ship. We prepared immediately to
sail, but did not weigh that night. The next morning early, two of the five men
came swimming to the ship’s side, and making the most lamentable complaint of
the other three, begged to be taken into the ship for God’s sake, for they
should be murdered, and begged the captain to take them on board, though he
hanged them immediately. Upon this the captain pretended to have no power
without me; but after some difficulty, and after their solemn promises of
amendment, they were taken on board, and were, some time after, soundly whipped
and pickled; after which they proved very honest and quiet fellows.
Some time after this,
the boat was ordered on shore, the tide being up, with the things promised to
the men; to which the captain, at my intercession, caused their chests and
clothes to be added, which they took, and were very thankful for. I also
encouraged them, by telling them that if it lay in my power to send any vessel
to take them in, I would not forget them.
When I took leave of
this island, I carried on board, for relics, the great goat-skin cap I had
made, my umbrella, and one of my parrots; also, I forgot not to take the money
I formerly mentioned, which had lain by me so long useless that it was grown
rusty or tarnished, and could hardly pass for silver till it had been a little
rubbed and handled, as also the money I found in the wreck of the Spanish ship.
And thus I left the island, the 19th of December, as I found by the ship’s
account, in the year 1686, after I had been upon it eight-and-twenty years, two
months, and nineteen days; being delivered from this second captivity the same
day of the month that I first made my escape in the long-boat from among the
Moors of Sallee. In this vessel, after a long voyage, I arrived in England the
11th of June, in the year 1687, having been thirty-five years absent.
When I came to England
I was as perfect a stranger to all the world as if I had never been known there.
My benefactor and faithful steward, whom I had left my money in trust with, was
alive, but had had great misfortunes in the world; was become a widow the
second time, and very low in the world. I made her very easy as to what she
owed me, assuring her I would give her no trouble; but, on the contrary, in
gratitude for her former care and faithfulness to me, I relieved her as my
little stock would afford; which at that time would, indeed, allow me to do but
little for her; but I assured her I would never forget her former kindness to
me; nor did I forget her when I had sufficient to help her, as shall be
observed in its proper place. I went down afterwards into Yorkshire; but my
father was dead, and my mother and all the family extinct, except that I found two
sisters, and two of the children of one of my brothers; and as I had been long
ago given over for dead, there had been no provision made for me; so that, in a
word, I found nothing to relieve or assist me; and that the little money I had
would not do much for me as to settling in the world.
I met with one piece of
gratitude indeed, which I did not expect; and this was, that the master of the
ship, whom I had so happily delivered, and by the same means saved the ship and
cargo, having given a very handsome account to the owners of the manner how I
had saved the lives of the men and the ship, they invited me to meet them and
some other merchants concerned, and all together made me a very handsome
compliment upon the subject, and a present of almost 200 pounds sterling.
But after making
several reflections upon the circumstances of my life, and how little way this
would go towards settling me in the world, I resolved to go to Lisbon, and see
if I might not come at some information of the state of my plantation in the
Brazils, and of what was become of my partner, who, I had reason to suppose,
had some years past given me over for dead. With this view I took shipping for
Lisbon, where I arrived in April following, my man Friday accompanying me very
honestly in all these ramblings, and proving a most faithful servant upon all
occasions. When I came to Lisbon, I found out, by inquiry, and to my particular
satisfaction, my old friend, the captain of the ship who first took me up at
sea off the shore of Africa. He was now grown old, and had left off going to
sea, having put his son, who was far from a young man, into his ship, and who
still used the Brazil trade. The old man did not know me, and indeed I hardly
knew him. But I soon brought him to my remembrance, and as soon brought myself
to his remembrance, when I told him who I was.
After some passionate
expressions of the old acquaintance between us, I inquired, you may he sure,
after my plantation and my partner. The old man told me he had not been in the
Brazils for about nine years; but that he could assure me that when he came
away my partner was living, but the trustees whom I had joined with him to take
cognisance of my part were both dead: that, however, he believed I would have a
very good account of the improvement of the plantation; for that, upon the
general belief of my being cast away and drowned, my trustees had given in the
account of the produce of my part of the plantation to the procurator-fiscal,
who had appropriated it, in case I never came to claim it, one-third to the
king, and two-thirds to the monastery of St. Augustine, to be expended for the
benefit of the poor, and for the conversion of the Indians to the Catholic
faith: but that, if I appeared, or any one for me, to claim the inheritance, it
would be restored; only that the improvement, or annual production, being
distributed to charitable uses, could not be restored: but he assured me that
the steward of the king’s revenue from lands, and the providore, or steward of
the monastery, had taken great care all along that the incumbent, that is to
say my partner, gave every year a faithful account of the produce, of which
they had duly received my moiety. I asked him if he knew to what height of
improvement he had brought the plantation, and whether he thought it might be
worth looking after; or whether, on my going thither, I should meet with any
obstruction to my possessing my just right in the moiety. He told me he could
not tell exactly to what degree the plantation was improved; but this he knew,
that my partner was grown exceeding rich upon the enjoying his part of it; and
that, to the best of his remembrance, he had heard that the king’s third of my
part, which was, it seems, granted away to some other monastery or religious
house, amounted to above two hundred moidores a year: that as to my being
restored to a quiet possession of it, there was no question to be made of that,
my partner being alive to witness my title, and my name being also enrolled in
the register of the country; also he told me that the survivors of my two
trustees were very fair, honest people, and very wealthy; and he believed I
would not only have their assistance for putting me in possession, but would
find a very considerable sum of money in their hands for my account, being the
produce of the farm while their fathers held the trust, and before it was given
up, as above; which, as he remembered, was for about twelve years.
I showed myself a
little concerned and uneasy at this account, and inquired of the old captain
how it came to pass that the trustees should thus dispose of my effects, when
he knew that I had made my will, and had made him, the Portuguese captain, my
universal heir, &c.
He told me that was
true; but that as there was no proof of my being dead, he could not act as
executor until some certain account should come of my death; and, besides, he
was not willing to intermeddle with a thing so remote: that it was true he had
registered my will, and put in his claim; and could he have given any account
of my being dead or alive, he would have acted by procuration, and taken
possession of the ingenio (so they call the sugar-house), and have given his
son, who was now at the Brazils, orders to do it. "But," says the old
man, "I have one piece of news to tell you, which perhaps may not be so
acceptable to you as the rest; and that is, believing you were lost, and all
the world believing so also, your partner and trustees did offer to account
with me, in your name, for the first six or eight years’ profits, which I
received. There being at that time great disbursements for increasing the
works, building an ingenio, and buying slaves, it did not amount to near so
much as afterwards it produced; however," says the old man, "I shall
give you a true account of what I have received in all, and how I have disposed
of it."
After a few days’
further conference with this ancient friend, he brought me an account of the
first six years’ income of my plantation, signed by my partner and the
merchant-trustees, being always delivered in goods, viz. tobacco in roll, and
sugar in chests, besides rum, molasses, &c., which is the consequence of a
sugar-work; and I found by this account, that every year the income
considerably increased; but, as above, the disbursements being large, the sum
at first was small: however, the old man let me see that he was debtor to me
four hundred and seventy moidores of gold, besides sixty chests of sugar and
fifteen double rolls of tobacco, which were lost in his ship; he having been
shipwrecked coming home to Lisbon, about eleven years after my having the
place. The good man then began to complain of his misfortunes, and how he had
been obliged to make use of my money to recover his losses, and buy him a share
in a new ship. "However, my old friend," says he, "you shall not
want a supply in your necessity; and as soon as my son returns you shall be
fully satisfied." Upon this he pulls out an old pouch, and gives me one
hundred and sixty Portugal moidores in gold; and giving the writings of his title
to the ship, which his son was gone to the Brazils in, of which he was
quarter-part owner, and his son another, he puts them both into my hands for
security of the rest.
I was too much moved
with the honesty and kindness of the poor man to be able to bear this; and
remembering what he had done for me, how he had taken me up at sea, and how
generously he had used me on all occasions, and particularly how sincere a
friend he was now to me, I could hardly refrain weeping at what he had said to
me; therefore I asked him if his circumstances admitted him to spare so much
money at that time, and if it would not straiten him? He told me he could not
say but it might straiten him a little; but, however, it was my money, and I
might want it more than he.
Everything the good man
said was full of affection, and I could hardly refrain from tears while he
spoke; in short, I took one hundred of the moidores, and called for a pen and
ink to give him a receipt for them: then I returned him the rest, and told him
if ever I had possession of the plantation I would return the other to him also
(as, indeed, I afterwards did); and that as to the bill of sale of his part in
his son’s ship, I would not take it by any means; but that if I wanted the
money, I found he was honest enough to pay me; and if I did not, but came to
receive what he gave me reason to expect, I would never have a penny more from
him.
When this was past, the
old man asked me if he should put me into a method to make my claim to my
plantation. I told him I thought to go over to it myself. He said I might do so
if I pleased, but that if I did not, there were ways enough to secure my right,
and immediately to appropriate the profits to my use: and as there were ships
in the river of Lisbon just ready to go away to Brazil, he made me enter my
name in a public register, with his affidavit, affirming, upon oath, that I was
alive, and that I was the same person who took up the land for the planting the
said plantation at first. This being regularly attested by a notary, and a
procuration affixed, he directed me to send it, with a letter of his writing,
to a merchant of his acquaintance at the place; and then proposed my staying
with him till an account came of the return.
Never was anything more
honourable than the proceedings upon this procuration; for in less than seven
months I received a large packet from the survivors of my trustees, the
merchants, for whose account I went to sea, in which were the following,
particular letters and papers enclosed:-
First, there was the
account-current of the produce of my farm or plantation, from the year when
their fathers had balanced with my old Portugal captain, being for six years;
the balance appeared to be one thousand one hundred and seventy-four moidores
in my favour.
Secondly, there was the
account of four years more, while they kept the effects in their hands, before
the government claimed the administration, as being the effects of a person not
to be found, which they called civil death; and the balance of this, the value
of the plantation increasing, amounted to nineteen thousand four hundred and
forty-six crusadoes, being about three thousand two hundred and forty moidores.
Thirdly, there was the
Prior of St. Augustine’s account, who had received the profits for above
fourteen years; but not being able to account for what was disposed of by the
hospital, very honestly declared he had eight hundred and seventy-two moidores
not distributed, which he acknowledged to my account: as to the king’s part,
that refunded nothing.
There was a letter of
my partner’s, congratulating me very affectionately upon my being alive, giving
me an account how the estate was improved, and what it produced a year; with
the particulars of the number of squares, or acres that it contained, how
planted, how many slaves there were upon it: and making two- and-twenty crosses
for blessings, told me he had said so many Ave Marias to thank the Blessed
Virgin that I was alive; inviting me very passionately to come over and take
possession of my own, and in the meantime to give him orders to whom he should
deliver my effects if I did not come myself; concluding with a hearty tender of
his friendship, and that of his family; and sent me as a present seven fine
leopards’ skins, which he had, it seems, received from Africa, by some other
ship that he had sent thither, and which, it seems, had made a better voyage
than I. He sent me also five chests of excellent sweetmeats, and a hundred
pieces of gold uncoined, not quite so large as moidores. By the same fleet my
two merchant-trustees shipped me one thousand two hundred chests of sugar,
eight hundred rolls of tobacco, and the rest of the whole account in gold.
I might well say now,
indeed, that the latter end of Job was better than the beginning. It is
impossible to express the flutterings of my very heart when I found all my
wealth about me; for as the Brazil ships come all in fleets, the same ships
which brought my letters brought my goods: and the effects were safe in the
river before the letters came to my hand. In a word, I turned pale, and grew
sick; and, had not the old man run and fetched me a cordial, I believe the
sudden surprise of joy had overset nature, and I had died upon the spot: nay,
after that I continued very ill, and was so some hours, till a physician being
sent for, and something of the real cause of my illness being known, he ordered
me to be let blood; after which I had relief, and grew well: but I verify
believe, if I had not been eased by a vent given in that manner to the spirits,
I should have died.
I was now master, all
on a sudden, of above five thousand pounds sterling in money, and had an
estate, as I might well call it, in the Brazils, of above a thousand pounds a
year, as sure as an estate of lands in England: and, in a word, I was in a
condition which I scarce knew how to understand, or how to compose myself for
the enjoyment of it. The first thing I did was to recompense my original
benefactor, my good old captain, who had been first charitable to me in my
distress, kind to me in my beginning, and honest to me at the end. I showed him
all that was sent to me; I told him that, next to the providence of Heaven,
which disposed all things, it was owing to him; and that it now lay on me to
reward him, which I would do a hundred-fold: so I first returned to him the
hundred moidores I had received of him; then I sent for a notary, and caused
him to draw up a general release or discharge from the four hundred and seventy
moidores, which he had acknowledged he owed me, in the fullest and firmest
manner possible. After which I caused a procuration to be drawn, empowering him
to be the receiver of the annual profits of my plantation: and appointing my
partner to account with him, and make the returns, by the usual fleets, to him
in my name; and by a clause in the end, made a grant of one hundred moidores a
year to him during his life, out of the effects, and fifty moidores a year to
his son after him, for his life: and thus I requited my old man.
I had now to consider
which way to steer my course next, and what to do with the estate that
Providence had thus put into my hands; and, indeed, I had more care upon my
head now than I had in my state of life in the island where I wanted nothing
but what I had, and had nothing but what I wanted; whereas I had now a great
charge upon me, and my business was how to secure it. I had not a cave now to
hide my money in, or a place where it might lie without lock or key, till it
grew mouldy and tarnished before anybody would meddle with it; on the contrary,
I knew not where to put it, or whom to trust with it. My old patron, the
captain, indeed, was honest, and that was the only refuge I had. In the next
place, my interest in the Brazils seemed to summon me thither; but now I could
not tell how to think of going thither till I had settled my affairs, and left
my effects in some safe hands behind me. At first I thought of my old friend
the widow, who I knew was honest, and would be just to me; but then she was in
years, and but poor, and, for aught I knew, might be in debt: so that, in a
word, I had no way but to go back to England myself and take my effects with
me.
It was some months,
however, before I resolved upon this; and, therefore, as I had rewarded the old
captain fully, and to his satisfaction, who had been my former benefactor, so I
began to think of the poor widow, whose husband had been my first benefactor,
and she, while it was in her power, my faithful steward and instructor. So, the
first thing I did, I got a merchant in Lisbon to write to his correspondent in
London, not only to pay a bill, but to go find her out, and carry her, in
money, a hundred pounds from me, and to talk with her, and comfort her in her
poverty, by telling her she should, if I lived, have a further supply: at the
same time I sent my two sisters in the country a hundred pounds each, they
being, though not in want, yet not in very good circumstances; one having been
married and left a widow; and the other having a husband not so kind to her as
he should be. But among all my relations or acquaintances I could not yet pitch
upon one to whom I durst commit the gross of my stock, that I might go away to
the Brazils, and leave things safe behind me; and this greatly perplexed me.
I had once a mind to
have gone to the Brazils and have settled myself there, for I was, as it were,
naturalised to the place; but I had some little scruple in my mind about
religion, which insensibly drew me back. However, it was not religion that kept
me from going there for the present; and as I had made no scruple of being
openly of the religion of the country all the while I was among them, so
neither did I yet; only that, now and then, having of late thought more of it
than formerly, when I began to think of living and dying among them, I began to
regret having professed myself a Papist, and thought it might not be the best
religion to die with.
But, as I have said,
this was not the main thing that kept me from going to the Brazils, but that
really I did not know with whom to leave my effects behind me; so I resolved at
last to go to England, where, if I arrived, I concluded that I should make some
acquaintance, or find some relations, that would be faithful to me; and,
accordingly, I prepared to go to England with all my wealth.
In order to prepare
things for my going home, I first (the Brazil fleet being just going away)
resolved to give answers suitable to the just and faithful account of things I
had from thence; and, first, to the Prior of St. Augustine I wrote a letter
full of thanks for his just dealings, and the offer of the eight hundred and
seventy-two moidores which were undisposed of, which I desired might be given,
five hundred to the monastery, and three hundred and seventy-two to the poor,
as the prior should direct; desiring the good padre’s prayers for me, and the
like. I wrote next a letter of thanks to my two trustees, with all the
acknowledgment that so much justice and honesty called for: as for sending them
any present, they were far above having any occasion of it. Lastly, I wrote to
my partner, acknowledging his industry in the improving the plantation, and his
integrity in increasing the stock of the works; giving him instructions for his
future government of my part, according to the powers I had left with my old
patron, to whom I desired him to send whatever became due to me, till he should
hear from me more particularly; assuring him that it was my intention not only
to come to him, but to settle myself there for the remainder of my life. To
this I added a very handsome present of some Italian silks for his wife and two
daughters, for such the captain’s son informed me he had; with two pieces of
fine English broadcloth, the best I could get in Lisbon, five pieces of black baize,
and some Flanders lace of a good value.
Having thus settled my
affairs, sold my cargo, and turned all my effects into good bills of exchange,
my next difficulty was which way to go to England: I had been accustomed enough
to the sea, and yet I had a strange aversion to go to England by the sea at
that time, and yet I could give no reason for it, yet the difficulty increased
upon me so much, that though I had once shipped my baggage in order to go, yet
I altered my mind, and that not once but two or three times.
It is true I had been
very unfortunate by sea, and this might be one of the reasons; but let no man
slight the strong impulses of his own thoughts in cases of such moment: two of
the ships which I had singled out to go in, I mean more particularly singled
out than any other, having put my things on board one of them, and in the other
having agreed with the captain; I say two of these ships miscarried. One was
taken by the Algerines, and the other was lost on the Start, near Torbay, and
all the people drowned except three; so that in either of those vessels I had
been made miserable.
Having been thus
harassed in my thoughts, my old pilot, to whom I communicated everything,
pressed me earnestly not to go by sea, but either to go by land to the Groyne,
and cross over the Bay of Biscay to Rochelle, from whence it was but an easy
and safe journey by land to Paris, and so to Calais and Dover; or to go up to
Madrid, and so all the way by land through France. In a word, I was so
prepossessed against my going by sea at all, except from Calais to Dover, that
I resolved to travel all the way by land; which, as I was not in haste, and did
not value the charge, was by much the pleasanter way: and to make it more so,
my old captain brought an English gentleman, the son of a merchant in Lisbon,
who was willing to travel with me; after which we picked up two more English
merchants also, and two young Portuguese gentlemen, the last going to Paris
only; so that in all there were six of us and five servants; the two merchants
and the two Portuguese, contenting themselves with one servant between two, to
save the charge; and as for me, I got an English sailor to travel with me as a
servant, besides my man Friday, who was too much a stranger to be capable of
supplying the place of a servant on the road.
In this manner I set
out from Lisbon; and our company being very well mounted and armed, we made a
little troop, whereof they did me the honour to call me captain, as well
because I was the oldest man, as because I had two servants, and, indeed, was
the origin of the whole journey.
As I have troubled you
with none of my sea journals, so I shall trouble you now with none of my land
journals; but some adventures that happened to us in this tedious and difficult
journey I must not omit.
When we came to Madrid,
we, being all of us strangers to Spain, were willing to stay some time to see
the court of Spain, and what was worth observing; but it being the latter part
of the summer, we hastened away, and set out from Madrid about the middle of
October; but when we came to the edge of Navarre, we were alarmed, at several
towns on the way, with an account that so much snow was falling on the French
side of the mountains, that several travellers were obliged to come back to
Pampeluna, after having attempted at an extreme hazard to pass on.
When we came to
Pampeluna itself, we found it so indeed; and to me, that had been always used
to a hot climate, and to countries where I could scarce bear any clothes on,
the cold was insufferable; nor, indeed, was it more painful than surprising to
come but ten days before out of Old Castile, where the weather was not only
warm but very hot, and immediately to feel a wind from the Pyrenean Mountains
so very keen, so severely cold, as to be intolerable and to endanger benumbing
and perishing of our fingers and toes.
Poor Friday was really
frightened when he saw the mountains all covered with snow, and felt cold
weather, which he had never seen or felt before in his life. To mend the matter,
when we came to Pampeluna it continued snowing with so much violence and so
long, that the people said winter was come before its time; and the roads,
which were difficult before, were now quite impassable; for, in a word, the
snow lay in some places too thick for us to travel, and being not hard frozen,
as is the case in the northern countries, there was no going without being in
danger of being buried alive every step. We stayed no less than twenty days at
Pampeluna; when (seeing the winter coming on, and no likelihood of its being
better, for it was the severest winter all over Europe that had been known in
the memory of man) I proposed that we should go away to Fontarabia, and there
take shipping for Bordeaux, which was a very little voyage. But, while I was
considering this, there came in four French gentlemen, who, having been stopped
on the French side of the passes, as we were on the Spanish, had found out a
guide, who, traversing the country near the head of Languedoc, had brought them
over the mountains by such ways that they were not much incommoded with the
snow; for where they met with snow in any quantity, they said it was frozen
hard enough to bear them and their horses. We sent for this guide, who told us
he would undertake to carry us the same way, with no hazard from the snow,
provided we were armed sufficiently to protect ourselves from wild beasts; for,
he said, in these great snows it was frequent for some wolves to show
themselves at the foot of the mountains, being made ravenous for want of food,
the ground being covered with snow. We told him we were well enough prepared
for such creatures as they were, if he would insure us from a kind of
two-legged wolves, which we were told we were in most danger from, especially
on the French side of the mountains. He satisfied us that there was no danger
of that kind in the way that we were to go; so we readily agreed to follow him,
as did also twelve other gentlemen with their servants, some French, some
Spanish, who, as I said, had attempted to go, and were obliged to come back
again.
Accordingly, we set out
from Pampeluna with our guide on the 15th of November; and indeed I was
surprised when, instead of going forward, he came directly back with us on the
same road that we came from Madrid, about twenty miles; when, having passed two
rivers, and come into the plain country, we found ourselves in a warm climate
again, where the country was pleasant, and no snow to be seen; but, on a
sudden, turning to his left, he approached the mountains another way; and
though it is true the hills and precipices looked dreadful, yet he made so many
tours, such meanders, and led us by such winding ways, that we insensibly
passed the height of the mountains without being much encumbered with the snow;
and all on a sudden he showed us the pleasant and fruitful provinces of
Languedoc and Gascony, all green and flourishing, though at a great distance,
and we had some rough way to pass still.
We were a little
uneasy, however, when we found it snowed one whole day and a night so fast that
we could not travel; but he bid us be easy; we should soon be past it all: we
found, indeed, that we began to descend every day, and to come more north than
before; and so, depending upon our guide, we went on.
It was about two hours
before night when, our guide being something before us, and not just in sight,
out rushed three monstrous wolves, and after them a bear, from a hollow way
adjoining to a thick wood; two of the wolves made at the guide, and had he been
far before us, he would have been devoured before we could have helped him; one
of them fastened upon his horse, and the other attacked the man with such
violence, that he had not time, or presence of mind enough, to draw his pistol,
but hallooed and cried out to us most lustily. My man Friday being next me, I
bade him ride up and see what was the matter. As soon as Friday came in sight
of the man, he hallooed out as loud as the other, "O master! O
master!" but like a bold fellow, rode directly up to the poor man, and
with his pistol shot the wolf in the head that attacked him.
It was happy for the
poor man that it was my man Friday; for, having been used to such creatures in
his country, he had no fear upon him, but went close up to him and shot him;
whereas, any other of us would have fired at a farther distance, and have
perhaps either missed the wolf or endangered shooting the man.
But it was enough to
have terrified a bolder man than I; and, indeed, it alarmed all our company,
when, with the noise of Friday’s pistol, we heard on both sides the most dismal
howling of wolves; and the noise, redoubled by the echo of the mountains,
appeared to us as if there had been a prodigious number of them; and perhaps
there was not such a few as that we had no cause of apprehension: however, as
Friday had killed this wolf, the other that had fastened upon the horse left
him immediately, and fled, without doing him any damage, having happily
fastened upon his head, where the bosses of the bridle had stuck in his teeth.
But the man was most hurt; for the raging creature had bit him twice, once in
the arm, and the other time a little above his knee; and though he had made
some defence, he was just tumbling down by the disorder of his horse, when
Friday came up and shot the wolf.
It is easy to suppose
that at the noise of Friday’s pistol we all mended our pace, and rode up as
fast as the way, which was very difficult, would give us leave, to see what was
the matter. As soon as we came clear of the trees, which blinded us before, we
saw clearly what had been the case, and how Friday had disengaged the poor
guide, though we did not presently discern what kind of creature it was he had
killed.
BUT never was a fight
managed so hardily, and in such a surprising manner as that which followed
between Friday and the bear, which gave us all, though at first we were
surprised and afraid for him, the greatest diversion imaginable. As the bear is
a heavy, clumsy creature, and does not gallop as the wolf does, who is swift
and light, so he has two particular qualities, which generally are the rule of
his actions; first, as to men, who are not his proper prey (he does not usually
attempt them, except they first attack him, unless he be excessively hungry,
which it is probable might now be the case, the ground being covered with
snow), if you do not meddle with him, he will not meddle with you; but then you
must take care to be very civil to him, and give him the road, for he is a very
nice gentleman; he will not go a step out of his way for a prince; nay, if you
are really afraid, your best way is to look another way and keep going on; for
sometimes if you stop, and stand still, and look steadfastly at him, he takes
it for an affront; but if you throw or toss anything at him, though it were but
a bit of stick as big as your finger, he thinks himself abused, and sets all
other business aside to pursue his revenge, and will have satisfaction in point
of honour - that is his first quality: the next is, if he be once affronted, he
will never leave you, night or day, till he has his revenge, but follows at a
good round rate till he overtakes you.
My man Friday had
delivered our guide, and when we came up to him he was helping him off his
horse, for the man was both hurt and frightened, when on a sudden we espied the
bear come out of the wood; and a monstrous one it was, the biggest by far that
ever I saw. We were all a little surprised when we saw him; but when Friday saw
him, it was easy to see joy and courage in the fellow’s countenance. "O!
O! O!" says Friday, three times, pointing to him; "O master, you give
me te leave, me shakee te hand with him; me makee you good laugh."
I was surprised to see
the fellow so well pleased. "You fool," says I, "he will eat you
up." - "Eatee me up! eatee me up!" says Friday, twice over
again; "me eatee him up; me makee you good laugh; you all stay here, me
show you good laugh." So down he sits, and gets off his boots in a moment,
and puts on a pair of pumps (as we call the flat shoes they wear, and which he
had in his pocket), gives my other servant his horse, and with his gun away he
flew, swift like the wind.
The bear was walking
softly on, and offered to meddle with nobody, till Friday coming pretty near,
calls to him, as if the bear could understand him. "Hark ye, hark
ye," says Friday, "me speakee with you." We followed at a
distance, for now being down on the Gascony side of the mountains, we were entered
a vast forest, where the country was plain and pretty open, though it had many
trees in it scattered here and there. Friday, who had, as we say, the heels of
the bear, came up with him quickly, and took up a great stone, and threw it at
him, and hit him just on the head, but did him no more harm than if he had
thrown it against a wall; but it answered Friday’s end, for the rogue was so
void of fear that he did it purely to make the bear follow him, and show us
some laugh as he called it. As soon as the bear felt the blow, and saw him, he
turns about and comes after him, taking very long strides, and shuffling on at
a strange rate, so as would have put a horse to a middling gallop; away reins
Friday, and takes his course as if he ran towards us for help; so we all
resolved to fire at once upon the bear, and deliver my man; though I was angry
at him for bringing the bear back upon us, when he was going about his own
business another way; and especially I was angry that he had turned the bear
upon us, and then ran away; and I called out, "You dog! is this your
making us laugh? Come away, and take your horse, that we may shoot the
creature." He heard me, and cried out, "No shoot, no shoot; stand
still, and you get much laugh:" and as the nimble creature ran two feet
for the bear’s one, he turned on a sudden on one side of us, and seeing a great
oak-tree fit for his purpose, he beckoned to us to follow; and doubling his
pace, he got nimbly up the tree, laying his gun down upon the ground, at about
five or six yards from the bottom of the tree. The bear soon came to the tree,
and we followed at a distance: the first thing he did he stopped at the gun,
smelt at it, but let it lie, and up he scrambles into the tree, climbing like a
cat, though so monstrous heavy. I was amazed at the folly, as I thought it, of
my man, and could not for my life see anything to laugh at, till seeing the
bear get up the tree, we all rode near to him.
When we came to the
tree, there was Friday got out to the small end of a large branch, and the bear
got about half-way to him. As soon as the bear got out to that part where the
limb of the tree was weaker, "Ha!" says he to us, "now you see
me teachee the bear dance:" so he began jumping and shaking the bough, at
which the bear began to totter, but stood still, and began to look behind him,
to see how he should get back; then, indeed, we did laugh heartily. But Friday
had not done with him by a great deal; when seeing him stand still, he called
out to him again, as if he had supposed the bear could speak English,
"What, you come no farther? pray you come farther;" so he left
jumping and shaking the tree; and the bear, just as if he understood what he
said, did come a little farther; then he began jumping again, and the bear
stopped again. We thought now was a good time to knock him in the head, and
called to Friday to stand still and we should shoot the bear: but he cried out
earnestly, "Oh, pray! Oh, pray! no shoot, me shoot by and then:" he
would have said by-and-by. However, to shorten the story, Friday danced so
much, and the bear stood so ticklish, that we had laughing enough, but still
could not imagine what the fellow would do: for first we thought he depended
upon shaking the bear off; and we found the bear was too cunning for that too;
for he would not go out far enough to be thrown down, but clung fast with his
great broad claws and feet, so that we could not imagine what would be the end
of it, and what the jest would be at last. But Friday put us out of doubt
quickly: for seeing the bear cling fast to the bough, and that he would not be
persuaded to come any farther, "Well, well," says Friday, "you
no come farther, me go; you no come to me, me come to you;" and upon this
he went out to the smaller end, where it would bend with his weight, and gently
let himself down by it, sliding down the bough till he came near enough to jump
down on his feet, and away he ran to his gun, took it up, and stood still.
"Well," said I to him, "Friday, what will you do now? Why don’t
you shoot him?" "No shoot," says Friday, "no yet; me shoot
now, me no kill; me stay, give you one more laugh:" and, indeed, so he
did; for when the bear saw his enemy gone, he came back from the bough, where
he stood, but did it very cautiously, looking behind him every step, and coming
backward till he got into the body of the tree, then, with the same hinder end
foremost, he came down the tree, grasping it with his claws, and moving one
foot at a time, very leisurely. At this juncture, and just before he could set
his hind foot on the ground, Friday stepped up close to him, clapped the muzzle
of his piece into his ear, and shot him dead. Then the rogue turned about to
see if we did not laugh; and when he saw we were pleased by our looks, he began
to laugh very loud. "So we kill bear in my country," says Friday.
"So you kill them?" says I; "why, you have no guns." -
"No," says he, "no gun, but shoot great much long arrow."
This was a good diversion to us; but we were still in a wild place, and our
guide very much hurt, and what to do we hardly knew; the howling of wolves ran
much in my head; and, indeed, except the noise I once heard on the shore of
Africa, of which I have said something already, I never heard anything that
filled me with so much horror.
These things, and the
approach of night, called us off, or else, as Friday would have had us, we
should certainly have taken the skin of this monstrous creature off, which was
worth saving; but we had near three leagues to go, and our guide hastened us;
so we left him, and went forward on our journey.
The ground was still
covered with snow, though not so deep and dangerous as on the mountains; and
the ravenous creatures, as we heard afterwards, were come down into the forest
and plain country, pressed by hunger, to seek for food, and had done a great
deal of mischief in the villages, where they surprised the country people,
killed a great many of their sheep and horses, and some people too. We had one
dangerous place to pass, and our guide told us if there were more wolves in the
country we should find them there; and this was a small plain, surrounded with
woods on every side, and a long, narrow defile, or lane, which we were to pass
to get through the wood, and then we should come to the village where we were
to lodge. It was within half-an-hour of sunset when we entered the wood, and a
little after sunset when we came into the plain: we met with nothing in the
first wood, except that in a little plain within the wood, which was not above
two furlongs over, we saw five great wolves cross the road, full speed, one
after another, as if they had been in chase of some prey, and had it in view;
they took no notice of us, and were gone out of sight in a few moments. Upon
this, our guide, who, by the way, was but a fainthearted fellow, bid us keep in
a ready posture, for he believed there were more wolves a-coming. We kept our
arms ready, and our eyes about us; but we saw no more wolves till we came
through that wood, which was near half a league, and entered the plain. As soon
as we came into the plain, we had occasion enough to look about us. The first
object we met with was a dead horse; that is to say, a poor horse which the
wolves had killed, and at least a dozen of them at work, we could not say
eating him, but picking his bones rather; for they had eaten up all the flesh
before. We did not think fit to disturb them at their feast, neither did they
take much notice of us. Friday would have let fly at them, but I would not
suffer him by any means; for I found we were like to have more business upon
our hands than we were aware of. We had not gone half over the plain when we
began to hear the wolves howl in the wood on our left in a frightful manner,
and presently after we saw about a hundred coming on directly towards us, all
in a body, and most of them in a line, as regularly as an army drawn up by
experienced officers. I scarce knew in what manner to receive them, but found
to draw ourselves in a close line was the only way; so we formed in a moment;
but that we might not have too much interval, I ordered that only every other
man should fire, and that the others, who had not fired, should stand ready to
give them a second volley immediately, if they continued to advance upon us;
and then that those that had fired at first should not pretend to load their fusees
again, but stand ready, every one with a pistol, for we were all armed with a
fusee and a pair of pistols each man; so we were, by this method, able to fire
six volleys, half of us at a time; however, at present we had no necessity; for
upon firing the first volley, the enemy made a full stop, being terrified as
well with the noise as with the fire. Four of them being shot in the head,
dropped; several others were wounded, and went bleeding off, as we could see by
the snow. I found they stopped, but did not immediately retreat; whereupon,
remembering that I had been told that the fiercest creatures were terrified at
the voice of a man, I caused all the company to halloo as loud as they could;
and I found the notion not altogether mistaken; for upon our shout they began
to retire and turn about. I then ordered a second volley to be fired in their
rear, which put them to the gallop, and away they went to the woods. This gave
us leisure to charge our pieces again; and that we might lose no time, we kept
going; but we had but little more than loaded our fusees, and put ourselves in
readiness, when we heard a terrible noise in the same wood on our left, only
that it was farther onward, the same way we were to go.
The night was coming
on, and the light began to be dusky, which made it worse on our side; but the
noise increasing, we could easily perceive that it was the howling and yelling
of those hellish creatures; and on a sudden we perceived three troops of
wolves, one on our left, one behind us, and one in our front, so that we seemed
to be surrounded with them: however, as they did not fall upon us, we kept our
way forward, as fast as we could make our horses go, which, the way being very
rough, was only a good hard trot. In this manner, we came in view of the
entrance of a wood, through which we were to pass, at the farther side of the
plain; but we were greatly surprised, when coming nearer the lane or pass, we
saw a confused number of wolves standing just at the entrance. On a sudden, at
another opening of the wood, we heard the noise of a gun, and looking that way,
out rushed a horse, with a saddle and a bridle on him, flying like the wind,
and sixteen or seventeen wolves after him, full speed: the horse had the
advantage of them; but as we supposed that he could not hold it at that rate,
we doubted not but they would get up with him at last: no question but they
did.
But here we had a most
horrible sight; for riding up to the entrance where the horse came out, we
found the carcasses of another horse and of two men, devoured by the ravenous
creatures; and one of the men was no doubt the same whom we heard fire the gun,
for there lay a gun just by him fired off; but as to the man, his head and the
upper part of his body was eaten up. This filled us with horror, and we knew
not what course to take; but the creatures resolved us soon, for they gathered
about us presently, in hopes of prey; and I verily believe there were three
hundred of them. It happened, very much to our advantage, that at the entrance
into the wood, but a little way from it, there lay some large timber-trees,
which had been cut down the summer before, and I suppose lay there for
carriage. I drew my little troop in among those trees, and placing ourselves in
a line behind one long tree, I advised them all to alight, and keeping that
tree before us for a breastwork, to stand in a triangle, or three fronts,
enclosing our horses in the centre. We did so, and it was well we did; for
never was a more furious charge than the creatures made upon us in this place.
They came on with a growling kind of noise, and mounted the piece of timber,
which, as I said, was our breastwork, as if they were only rushing upon their
prey; and this fury of theirs, it seems, was principally occasioned by their
seeing our horses behind us. I ordered our men to fire as before, every other
man; and they took their aim so sure that they killed several of the wolves at
the first volley; but there was a necessity to keep a continual firing, for
they came on like devils, those behind pushing on those before.
When we had fired a
second volley of our fusees, we thought they stopped a little, and I hoped they
would have gone off, but it was but a moment, for others came forward again; so
we fired two volleys of our pistols; and I believe in these four firings we had
killed seventeen or eighteen of them, and lamed twice as many, yet they came on
again. I was loth to spend our shot too hastily; so I called my servant, not my
man Friday, for he was better employed, for, with the greatest dexterity
imaginable, he had charged my fusee and his own while we were engaged - but, as
I said, I called my other man, and giving him a horn of powder, I had him lay a
train all along the piece of timber, and let it be a large train. He did so, and
had but just time to get away, when the wolves came up to it, and some got upon
it, when I, snapping an unchanged pistol close to the powder, set it on fire;
those that were upon the timber were scorched with it, and six or seven of them
fell; or rather jumped in among us with the force and fright of the fire; we
despatched these in an instant, and the rest were so frightened with the light,
which the night - for it was now very near dark - made more terrible that they
drew back a little; upon which I ordered our last pistols to be fired off in
one volley, and after that we gave a shout; upon this the wolves turned tail,
and we sallied immediately upon near twenty lame ones that we found struggling
on the ground, and fell to cutting them with our swords, which answered our
expectation, for the crying and howling they made was better understood by
their fellows; so that they all fled and left us.
We had, first and last,
killed about threescore of them, and had it been daylight we had killed many
more. The field of battle being thus cleared, we made forward again, for we had
still near a league to go. We heard the ravenous creatures howl and yell in the
woods as we went several times, and sometimes we fancied we saw some of them;
but the snow dazzling our eyes, we were not certain. In about an hour more we
came to the town where we were to lodge, which we found in a terrible fright
and all in arms; for, it seems, the night before the wolves and some bears had
broken into the village, and put them in such terror that they were obliged to
keep guard night and day, but especially in the night, to preserve their
cattle, and indeed their people.
The next morning our
guide was so ill, and his limbs swelled so much with the rankling of his two
wounds, that he could go no farther; so we were obliged to take a new guide
here, and go to Toulouse, where we found a warm climate, a fruitful, pleasant
country, and no snow, no wolves, nor anything like them; but when we told our
story at Toulouse, they told us it was nothing but what was ordinary in the
great forest at the foot of the mountains, especially when the snow lay on the
ground; but they inquired much what kind of guide we had got who would venture
to bring us that way in such a severe season, and told us it was surprising we
were not all devoured. When we told them how we placed ourselves and the horses
in the middle, they blamed us exceedingly, and told us it was fifty to one but
we had been all destroyed, for it was the sight of the horses which made the
wolves so furious, seeing their prey, and that at other times they are really
afraid of a gun; but being excessively hungry, and raging on that account, the
eagerness to come at the horses had made them senseless of danger, and that if
we had not by the continual fire, and at last by the stratagem of the train of
powder, mastered them, it had been great odds but that we had been torn to
pieces; whereas, had we been content to have sat still on horseback, and fired
as horsemen, they would not have taken the horses so much for their own, when
men were on their backs, as otherwise; and withal, they told us that at last,
if we had stood altogether, and left our horses, they would have been so eager
to have devoured them, that we might have come off safe, especially having our
firearms in our hands, being so many in number. For my part, I was never so
sensible of danger in my life; for, seeing above three hundred devils come
roaring and open- mouthed to devour us, and having nothing to shelter us or
retreat to, I gave myself over for lost; and, as it was, I believe I shall
never care to cross those mountains again: I think I would much rather go a
thousand leagues by sea, though I was sure to meet with a storm once a-week.
I have nothing uncommon
to take notice of in my passage through France - nothing but what other
travellers have given an account of with much more advantage than I can. I
travelled from Toulouse to Paris, and without any considerable stay came to
Calais, and landed safe at Dover the 14th of January, after having had a severe
cold season to travel in.
I was now come to the
centre of my travels, and had in a little time all my new-discovered estate
safe about me, the bills of exchange which I brought with me having been
currently paid.
My principal guide and
privy-counsellor was my good ancient widow, who, in gratitude for the money I
had sent her, thought no pains too much nor care too great to employ for me;
and I trusted her so entirely that I was perfectly easy as to the security of
my effects; and, indeed, I was very happy from the beginning, and now to the
end, in the unspotted integrity of this good gentlewoman.
And now, having
resolved to dispose of my plantation in the Brazils, I wrote to my old friend
at Lisbon, who, having offered it to the two merchants, the survivors of my
trustees, who lived in the Brazils, they accepted the offer, and remitted
thirty-three thousand pieces of eight to a correspondent of theirs at Lisbon to
pay for it.
In return, I signed the
instrument of sale in the form which they sent from Lisbon, and sent it to my
old man, who sent me the bills of exchange for thirty-two thousand eight
hundred pieces of eight for the estate, reserving the payment of one hundred
moidores a year to him (the old man) during his life, and fifty moidores
afterwards to his son for his life, which I had promised them, and which the
plantation was to make good as a rent-charge. And thus I have given the first
part of a life of fortune and adventure - a life of Providence’s chequer-work,
and of a variety which the world will seldom be able to show the like of;
beginning foolishly, but closing much more happily than any part of it ever
gave me leave so much as to hope for.
Any one would think
that in this state of complicated good fortune I was past running any more
hazards - and so, indeed, I had been, if other circumstances had concurred; but
I was inured to a wandering life, had no family, nor many relations; nor,
however rich, had I contracted fresh acquaintance; and though I had sold my estate
in the Brazils, yet I could not keep that country out of my head, and had a
great mind to be upon the wing again; especially I could not resist the strong
inclination I had to see my island, and to know if the poor Spaniards were in
being there. My true friend, the widow, earnestly dissuaded me from it, and so
far prevailed with me, that for almost seven years she prevented my running
abroad, during which time I took my two nephews, the children of one of my
brothers, into my care; the eldest, having something of his own, I bred up as a
gentleman, and gave him a settlement of some addition to his estate after my
decease. The other I placed with the captain of a ship; and after five years,
finding him a sensible, bold, enterprising young fellow, I put him into a good
ship, and sent him to sea; and this young fellow afterwards drew me in, as old
as I was, to further adventures myself.
In the meantime, I in
part settled myself here; for, first of all, I married, and that not either to
my disadvantage or dissatisfaction, and had three children, two sons and one
daughter; but my wife dying, and my nephew coming home with good success from a
voyage to Spain, my inclination to go abroad, and his importunity, prevailed,
and engaged me to go in his ship as a private trader to the East Indies; this
was in the year 1694.
In this voyage I
visited my new colony in the island, saw my successors the Spaniards, had the
old story of their lives and of the villains I left there; how at first they
insulted the poor Spaniards, how they afterwards agreed, disagreed, united,
separated, and how at last the Spaniards were obliged to use violence with
them; how they were subjected to the Spaniards, how honestly the Spaniards used
them - a history, if it were entered into, as full of variety and wonderful
accidents as my own part - particularly, also, as to their battles with the
Caribbeans, who landed several times upon the island, and as to the improvement
they made upon the island itself, and how five of them made an attempt upon the
mainland, and brought away eleven men and five women prisoners, by which, at my
coming, I found about twenty young children on the island.
Here I stayed about
twenty days, left them supplies of all necessary things, and particularly of
arms, powder, shot, clothes, tools, and two workmen, which I had brought from
England with me, viz. a carpenter and a smith.
Besides this, I shared
the lands into parts with them, reserved to myself the property of the whole,
but gave them such parts respectively as they agreed on; and having settled all
things with them, and engaged them not to leave the place, I left them there.
From thence I touched
at the Brazils, from whence I sent a bark, which I bought there, with more
people to the island; and in it, besides other supplies, I sent seven women,
being such as I found proper for service, or for wives to such as would take
them. As to the Englishmen, I promised to send them some women from England,
with a good cargo of necessaries, if they would apply themselves to planting -
which I afterwards could not perform. The fellows proved very honest and
diligent after they were mastered and had their properties set apart for them.
I sent them, also, from the Brazils, five cows, three of them being big with
calf, some sheep, and some hogs, which when I came again were considerably
increased.
But all these things,
with an account how three hundred Caribbees came and invaded them, and ruined
their plantations, and how they fought with that whole number twice, and were at
first defeated, and one of them killed; but at last, a storm destroying their
enemies’ canoes, they famished or destroyed almost all the rest, and renewed
and recovered the possession of their plantation, and still lived upon the
island.
All these things, with
some very surprising incidents in some new adventures of my own, for ten years
more, I shall give a farther account of in the Second Part of my Story.